Selected quad for the lemma: kingdom_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
kingdom_n glorious_a great_a king_n 1,863 5 3.5347 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A22507 A commentarie vpon the fourth booke of Moses, called Numbers Containing, the foundation of the church and common-wealth of the Israelites, while they walked and wandered in the vvildernesse. Laying before vs the vnchangeable loue of God promised and exhibited to this people ... Heerein also the reader shall finde more then fiue hundred theologicall questions, decided and determined by William Attersoll, minister of the word. Attersoll, William, d. 1640.; Attersoll, William, d. 1640. Pathway to Canaan.; Attersoll, William, d. 1640. Continuation of the exposition of the booke of Numbers. 1618 (1618) STC 893; ESTC S106852 2,762,938 1,336

There are 52 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

of_o god_n for_o john_n describe_v the_o state_n of_o glory_n after_o this_o life_n say_v i_o see_v no_o temple_n therein_o for_o the_o lord_n god_n almighty_a 2d_o re._n 21_o 22_o 23_o 24_o 25_o 26_o 2d_o and_o the_o lamb_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o it_o and_o this_o city_n have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o sun_n neither_o of_o the_o moon_n to_o shine_v in_o it_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n do_v light_v it_o and_o the_o lamb_n be_v the_o light_n of_o it_o happy_a be_v they_o that_o enter_v into_o this_o city_n where_o god_n be_v the_o temple_n where_o god_n be_v the_o sun_n where_o god_n be_v the_o moon_n where_o god_n be_v all_o the_o light_v thereof_o and_o all_o the_o glory_n and_o defence_n thereof_o it_o be_v a_o glorious_a thing_n in_o this_o life_n to_o be_v king_n and_o prince_n and_o to_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o majesty_n but_o when_o they_o shall_v inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n they_o shall_v lay_v down_o all_o earthly_a pomp_n and_o magnificence_n receive_v so_o great_a glory_n in_o that_o glorious_a city_n that_o the_o glory_n which_o they_o have_v as_o king_n and_o prince_n shall_v vanish_v away_o as_o the_o light_n of_o a_o candle_n at_o the_o shine_a of_o the_o sun_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o least_o of_o god_n saint_n be_v so_o excellent_a that_o solomon_n in_o all_o his_o glory_n be_v never_o array_v nor_o advance_v like_o one_o of_o these_o the_o end_n of_o all_o this_o be_v to_o teach_v we_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v even_o ravish_v with_o a_o earnest_n and_o long_a desire_n to_o dwell_v in_o this_o heavenly_a tabernacle_n and_o to_o labour_v to_o have_v our_o heart_n purge_v from_o a_o evil_a conscience_n know_v that_o no_o unclean_a thing_n shall_v enter_v into_o it_o 21.27_o ●●uel_a 21.27_o neither_o whatsoever_o work_v abomination_n and_o lie_n every_o one_o will_v seem_v desirous_a to_o dwell_v in_o the_o lord_n tabernacle_n and_o to_o come_v to_o heaven_n but_o they_o be_v loath_a to_o leave_v their_o sin_n but_o let_v we_o not_o deceive_v ourselves_o neither_o let_v we_o sooth_n and_o flatter_v ourselves_o in_o our_o evil_n if_o we_o follow_v our_o ungodly_a way_n with_o greediness_n and_o will_v not_o forsake_v our_o wickedness_n we_o shall_v have_v the_o door_n of_o god_n kingdom_n shut_v against_o us._n 18_o the_o standard_n of_o the_o camp_n of_o ephraim_n shall_v be_v towards_o the_o west_n according_a to_o their_o army_n and_o the_o captain_n over_o the_o son_n of_o ephraim_n shall_v be_v elishama_n the_o son_n of_o ammihud_o 19_o and_o the_o host_n and_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v forty_o thousand_o and_o five_o hundred_o 20_o and_o by_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o tribe_n of_o manasseh_n and_o the_o captain_n over_o the_o son_n of_o manasseh_n shall_v be_v gamliel_n the_o son_n of_o pedahzur_n 21_o and_o his_o host_n and_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v two_o and_o thirty_o thousand_o and_o two_o hundred_o 22_o and_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n and_o the_o captain_n over_o the_o son_n of_o benjamin_n shall_v be_v abidan_n the_o son_n of_o gideoni_n 23_o and_o his_o host_n and_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v five_o and_o thirty_o thousand_o and_o four_o hundred_o 24_o all_o the_o number_n of_o the_o camp_n of_o ephraim_n be_v a_o hundred_o and_o eight_o thousand_o and_o one_o hundred_o according_a to_o their_o army_n and_o they_o shall_v go_v in_o the_o three_o place_n we_o have_v hear_v before_o how_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n be_v place_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o host_n and_o compass_v about_o both_o in_o front_n and_o flank_n stand_v strong_a in_o battle_v in_o their_o array_n ready_a to_o receive_v a_o shock_n if_o any_o enemy_n shall_v offer_v to_o enter_v upon_o they_o in_o these_o word_n be_v lay_v before_o we_o the_o three_o company_n of_o this_o mighty_a army_n the_o principal_a whereof_o be_v ephraim_n and_o his_o partisan_n be_v manasseh_n and_o benjamin_n appoint_v to_o march_v under_o his_o ensign_n and_o to_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n range_v under_o his_o colour_n it_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o any_o that_o be_v mean_o conversant_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o joseph_n and_o benjamin_n be_v the_o only_a child_n of_o rahel_n the_o true_a and_o belove_a wife_n of_o jacob_n and_o that_o both_o manasseh_n and_o ephraim_n be_v the_o child_n of_o joseph_n and_o that_o the_o elder_a be_v manasseh_n the_o young_a ephraim_n who_o notwithstanding_o have_v the_o first_o place_n of_o honour_n and_o pre-eminence_n assign_v unto_o he_o and_o manasseh_n the_o first_o bear_v be_v compel_v to_o be_v his_o underling_n what_o can_v ephraim_n claim_v above_o his_o brother_n or_o what_o have_v manasseh_n do_v to_o be_v put_v behind_o it_o please_v god_n oftentimes_o to_o make_v the_o first_o last_o and_o the_o last_o first_o to_o thrust_v down_o the_o elder_a into_o the_o place_n of_o the_o young_a and_o to_o advance_v the_o young_a into_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o elder_a this_o appear_v in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n and_o be_v so_o ordinary_a and_o common_a as_o it_o need_v not_o to_o be_v set_v down_o to_o insist_v only_o upon_o the_o present_a example_n we_o read_v that_o when_o joseph_n bring_v his_o two_o child_n before_o his_o sick_a father_n 48.14.18.20_o gene._n 48.14.18.20_o jacob_n stretch_v out_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o lay_v it_o on_o ephraim_n head_n and_o his_o left_a hand_n upon_o manasseh_n head_n direct_v his_o hand_n of_o purpose_n neither_o can_v be_v draw_v to_o remove_v they_o but_o bless_v they_o that_o day_n and_o say_v in_o thou_o israel_n shall_v bless_v and_o say_v god_n make_v thou_o as_o ephraim_n and_o as_o manasseh_n and_o he_o set_v ephraim_n before_o manasseh_n thus_o god_n judgement_n be_v oftentimes_o contrary_a to_o man_n and_o he_o prefer_v that_o which_o man_n despise_v a_o notable_a example_n whereof_o we_o have_v in_o samuel_n when_o he_o be_v send_v to_o anoint_v david_n king_n and_o have_v the_o elder_a son_n of_o ishai_n before_o he_o he_o say_v 16.6_o 1_o sam._n 16.6_o sure_o the_o lord_n anoint_a be_v before_o he_o but_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o samuel_n look_v not_o on_o his_o countenance_n nor_o on_o the_o height_n of_o his_o stature_n because_o i_o have_v refuse_v he_o for_o god_n see_v not_o as_o man_n see_v for_o man_n look_v on_o the_o outward_a appearance_n but_o the_o lord_n behold_v the_o heart_n samuel_n be_v a_o holy_a prophet_n of_o god_n yet_o he_o fail_v in_o bind_v god_n grace_n to_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o nature_n doctrine_n 5_o we_o learn_v from_o hence_o please_v god_n bestow_v his_o gift_n and_o grace_n free_o to_o who_o he_o please_v that_o god_n bestow_v his_o gift_n free_o both_o when_o he_o will_v and_o where_o he_o will_v and_o to_o who_o he_o will_n he_o give_v as_o a_o bountiful_a and_o gracious_a father_n the_o grace_n of_o election_n adoption_n justification_n sanctification_n and_o all_o other_o his_o benefit_n of_o his_o free_a love_n and_o favour_n he_o lift_v up_o who_o he_o will_v he_o pass_v by_o he_o forsake_v he_o put_v and_o pull_v down_o who_o he_o please_v some_o gift_n be_v temporal_a and_o some_o eternal_a some_o earthly_a and_o other_o heavenly_a and_o of_o both_o sort_n it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v who_o separate_v thou_o 4.7_o 1_o cor._n 4.7_o and_o what_o have_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v if_o thou_o have_v receive_v it_o why_o reioyc_a thou_o as_o though_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v it_o this_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o song_n of_o hannah_n the_o lord_n make_v poor_a 2.7.8_o 1_o sam._n 2.7.8_o and_o make_v rich_a he_o bring_v low_a and_o exalt_v he_o raise_v up_o the_o poor_a out_o of_o the_o dust_n &_o lift_v up_o the_o beggar_n from_o the_o dunghill_n to_o set_v they_o among_o prince_n and_o to_o make_v they_o inherit_v the_o seat_n of_o glory_n this_o appear_v most_o plain_o and_o evident_o in_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n grace_n our_o whole_a salvation_n be_v of_o god_n free_a grace_n belong_v to_o a_o better_a life_n and_o accompany_v salvation_n the_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v the_o fountain_n from_o whence_o salvation_n flow_v yea_o it_o be_v the_o beginning_n continuance_n &_o end_v of_o our_o salvation_n the_o truth_n hereof_o may_v be_v make_v plain_a by_o the_o particular_a rehearsal_n of_o the_o several_a part_n thereof_o if_o we_o consider_v our_o election_n redemption_n call_v faith_n justification_n regeneration_n love_n good_a work_n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o perseverance_n in_o good_a thing_n unto_o the_o end_n no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v and_o obtain_v eternal_a life_n except_o he_o be_v predestinate_v and_o elect_v thereunto_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o
the_o wicked_a into_o shard_n like_o a_o potter_n vessel_n psal_n 2_o 9_o we_o see_v how_o man_n admire_v the_o proud_a and_o haughty_a of_o the_o world_n and_o esteem_v the_o ungodly_a as_o the_o great_a magnifico_n that_o may_v not_o be_v contemn_v or_o control_v the_o poor_a and_o mean_a saint_n of_o god_n shall_v in_o time_n to_o come_v be_v their_o judge_n &_o sit_v with_o christ_n upon_o the_o bench_n in_o glory_n when_o they_o shall_v stand_v as_o their_o vassal_n at_o the_o bar_n and_o be_v judge_v as_o most_o wretched_a caitiff_n and_o malefactor_n and_o receive_v their_o wage_n according_a to_o their_o work_n then_o they_o shall_v say_v with_o horror_n of_o conscience_n we_o fool_v think_v their_o life_n madness_n &_o their_o end_n without_o honour_n but_o now_o they_o be_v count_v among_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o have_v their_o portion_n among_o his_o saint_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n reprove_v the_o corinthian_n that_o abase_v and_o abuse_v their_o dignity_n that_o do_v bring_v their_o cause_n to_o be_v try_v and_o judge_v before_o the_o wicked_a do_v you_o not_o know_v that_o the_o saint_n shall_v judge_v the_o world_n if_o then_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v judge_v by_o you_o be_v you_o unworthy_a to_o judge_v the_o small_a matter_n &_o c_o 1_o cor._n 6._o verse_n 2_o 3._o this_o be_v a_o great_a honour_n vouchsafe_v to_o the_o faithful_a no_o earthly_a honour_n can_v be_v compare_v unto_o it_o all_o temporal_a glory_n have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o show_n or_o shadow_n of_o it_o on_o the_o other_o side_n great_a shall_v be_v the_o dishonour_n and_o disgrace_n the_o shame_n and_o contempt_n that_o shall_v be_v pour_v out_o upon_o the_o ungodly_a dan._n 12_o 2._o they_o have_v here_o the_o riches_n of_o the_o world_n the_o pleasure_n of_o this_o life_n the_o praise_n of_o man_n they_o be_v fear_v of_o some_o and_o flatter_v of_o other_o but_o when_o this_o glory_n shall_v pass_v away_o as_o the_o wind_n and_o fly_v as_o a_o arrow_n that_o be_v shoot_v at_o a_o mark_n than_o they_o shall_v be_v arraign_v as_o evil_a doer_n and_o every_o servant_n of_o god_n shall_v tread_v they_o under_o their_o foot_n then_o they_o shall_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n then_o they_o shall_v see_v all_o the_o godly_a who_o they_o have_v scorn_v and_o deride_v receyve_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o themselves_o shut_v out_o of_o the_o door_n then_o they_o shall_v have_v the_o continual_a fellowship_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o of_o his_o angel_n in_o hell_n fire_n where_o shall_v be_v weep_a and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n use_v 2_o second_o we_o must_v all_o be_v careful_a to_o walk_v worthy_a of_o so_o great_a a_o call_n we_o must_v be_v as_o spiritual_a king_n to_o rule_v and_o bear_v sway_n over_o our_o thought_n will_n and_o affection_n overmaster_v they_o as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v proclaim_v continual_a war_n against_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n against_o the_o devil_n and_o against_o the_o world_n and_o very_o he_o that_o can_v bear_v rule_n over_o his_o own_o heart_n be_v a_o true_a king_n indeed_o and_o shall_v sure_o reign_v for_o evermore_o with_o christ_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v 6._o revelat._n 1_o 6._o he_o that_o have_v beat_v down_o the_o kingdom_n of_o sin_n and_o sathan_n and_o receive_v some_o measure_n of_o grace_n to_o reign_v over_o himself_o have_v perform_v a_o great_a and_o more_o glorious_a work_n than_o he_o that_o have_v subdue_v a_o kingdom_n for_o all_o these_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n be_v horrible_a &_o hideous_a monster_n and_o fearful_a serpent_n their_o sting_n be_v deadly_a their_o poison_n be_v mortal_a it_o be_v a_o hard_a labour_n to_o pull_v out_o their_o sting_n and_o take_v away_o their_o poison_n from_o they_o but_o they_o which_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o the_o swinge_n of_o their_o corruption_n as_o with_o a_o violent_a stream_n have_v blindness_n &_o ignorance_n to_o reign_v in_o their_o mind_n rebellion_n in_o their_o will_n and_o looseness_n in_o their_o whole_a life_n be_v not_o spiritual_a king_n but_o base_a slave_n and_o bondman_n the_o strong_a man_n sathan_n keep_v the_o hold_n of_o their_o heart_n 21._o luke_n 11_o 21._o and_o as_o lord_n and_o king_n set_v up_o his_o sceptre_n there_o wherefore_o my_o brethren_n in_o respect_n of_o this_o our_o high_a call_n we_o must_v make_v conscience_n of_o every_o sin_n we_o hear_v before_o that_o we_o be_v make_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n for_o a_o judge_n to_o be_v a_o thief_n that_o sit_v in_o judgement_n to_o condemn_v a_o thief_n so_o be_v it_o a_o shame_n for_o we_o to_o be_v give_v to_o wickedness_n that_o must_v judge_v the_o wicked_a world_n when_o the_o just_a shall_v appear_v a_o judge_n must_v take_v heed_n of_o those_o sin_n in_o himself_o which_o he_o must_v condemn_v in_o other_o lest_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o he_o thou_o which_o teach_v another_o teach_v thou_o not_o thyself_o rom._n 2_o 21_o 22._o this_o be_v that_o use_n which_o the_o apostle_n make_v to_o the_o thessalonian_o chap._n 1_o 10_o 11_o after_o he_o have_v show_v that_o at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o might_n and_o majesty_n he_o will_v be_v glorious_a in_o his_o saint_n &_o make_v marvelous_a in_o they_o that_o believe_v he_o intreat_v that_o god_n will_v make_v they_o to_o walk_v worthy_a of_o their_o call_n and_o sure_o if_o we_o have_v any_o the_o least_o spark_n of_o grace_n or_o any_o feel_n of_o our_o natural_a condition_n when_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o wrath_n and_o the_o firebrand_n of_o hell_n it_o can_v not_o but_o work_v in_o we_o a_o marvelous_a love_n unto_o god_n a_o desire_n to_o please_v he_o and_o a_o delight_n to_o bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o righteousness_n three_o our_o victory_n in_o christ_n offer_v comfort_n use_v 3_o unto_o we_o in_o all_o trouble_n tentation_n poverty_n and_o in_o death_n itself_o we_o be_v to_o arm_v ourselves_o with_o this_o power_n of_o christ_n against_o all_o terror_n and_o fear_n that_o seek_v to_o dismay_v us._n we_o be_v in_o christ_n appoint_v king_n and_o judge_n over_o those_o that_o trouble_v we_o conqueror_n over_o sathan_n and_o death_n our_o fear_n then_o be_v already_o past_a let_v we_o lift_v up_o our_o head_n and_o be_v of_o good_a comfort_n this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n be_v bold_a to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o 1_o cor._n 15_o 56_o 57_o o_o death_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n o_o grave_n where_o be_v thy_o victory_n now_o thanks_n be_v unto_o god_n who_o have_v give_v we_o the_o victory_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n we_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o fear_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o then_o our_o redemption_n draw_v never_o we_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o judge_n for_o he_o shall_v be_v our_o saviour_n howsoever_o therefore_o we_o seem_v base_a unto_o the_o world_n and_o of_o vile_a account_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o carnal_a man_n who_o portion_n be_v in_o this_o life_n yet_o we_o be_v indeed_o advance_v into_o the_o high_a honour_n about_o he_o receyve_v by_o our_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n with_o he_o a_o communication_n of_o his_o kingly_a power_n and_o glory_n to_o subdue_v under_o we_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n for_o if_o we_o fight_v with_o he_o and_o under_o his_o banner_n we_o can_v lose_v the_o field_n but_o shall_v be_v assure_v to_o reign_v with_o he_o they_o then_o be_v deceive_v that_o think_v they_o the_o scum_n and_o offscouring_a of_o the_o world_n this_o shall_v also_o persuade_v all_o careless_a and_o backward_a person_n to_o embrace_v true_a religion_n and_o give_v it_o the_o chief_a seat_n in_o their_o heart_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o make_v they_o of_o the_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n and_o vassal_n of_o sathan_n glorious_a king_n and_o triumphant_a conqueror_n over_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n furthermore_o it_o shall_v encourage_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o make_v they_o glad_a to_o labour_v in_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o in_o win_a soul_n unto_o god_n be_v set_v apart_o by_o god_n mercy_n to_o consecrate_v man_n king_n and_o priest_n unto_o he_o which_o be_v a_o great_a privilege_n for_o they_o have_v mighty_a weapon_n give_v they_o by_o their_o captain_n christ_n to_o wit_n the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o the_o vigour_n of_o his_o mighty_a word_n which_o cause_v they_o to_o prevail_v therefore_o the_o lord_n say_v by_o his_o prophet_n hosea_n chap._n 6_o 5._o i_o have_v cut_v down_o this_o people_n by_o the_o prophet_n &_o slay_v they_o by_o the_o word_n of_o my_o mouth_n and_o the_o apostle_n teach_v 2_o cor._n 10_o 5_o 6_o that_o the_o weapon_n
servant_n of_o corruption_n but_o the_o lord_n freeman_n let_v they_o rejoice_v and_o be_v glad_a because_o their_o name_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n christ_n will_v the_o seventy_o disciple_n to_o rejoice_v in_o this_o and_o not_o so_o much_o that_o the_o devil_n be_v subdue_v unto_o they_o 10._o luke_n 10._o so_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v with_o we_o we_o shall_v find_v no_o joy_n or_o comfort_n in_o our_o riches_n &_o treasure_n and_o in_o our_o store_n and_o abundance_n of_o earthly_a thing_n in_o comparison_n of_o those_o unspeakable_a benefit_n which_o we_o receive_v from_o christ_n and_o enjoy_v by_o christ_n if_o we_o have_v all_o thing_n without_o he_o they_o may_v delight_v the_o eye_n and_o outward_a man_n but_o they_o can_v not_o comfort_v the_o heart_n nor_o refresh_v the_o weary_a soul_n 26._o math._n 16_o 26._o for_o what_o be_v a_o man_n profit_v if_o he_o shall_v gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n or_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n give_v in_o exchange_n for_o his_o soul_n let_v we_o then_o learn_v hereby_o what_o true_a comfort_n be_v and_o wherein_o it_o consist_v there_o be_v no_o comfort_n without_o christ_n he_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o there_o be_v no_o glad_a tiding_n can_v come_v to_o the_o soul_n where_o he_o be_v not_o verse_n 9_o 10._o and_o every_o offering_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a thing_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n which_o they_o bring_v unto_o the_o priest_n shall_v be_v he_o &_o every_o man_n hallow_a thing_n etc._n etc._n in_o these_o last_o word_n of_o this_o division_n we_o have_v the_o application_n or_o conclusion_n of_o the_o former_a law_n amplify_v by_o a_o argument_n of_o the_o like_a god_n have_v appoint_v in_o his_o law_n that_o the_o priest_n shall_v receive_v the_o oblation_n and_o hallow_a thing_n to_o sustain_v they_o levit._n 10_o 12._o now_o even_o as_o these_o thing_n belong_v unto_o they_o so_o god_n appoint_v that_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v steal_v and_o have_v no_o owner_n or_o heir_n alive_a shall_v be_v bring_v to_o they_o in_o case_n the_o person_n be_v dead_a or_o not_o know_v to_o who_o they_o may_v of_o right_o belong_v thus_o do_v god_n provide_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o they_o that_o serve_v he_o we_o learn_v from_o hence_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n that_o labour_n therein_o maintain_v doctrine_n the_o mini●●●_n of_o the_o ch●●●_n ought_v to_o be_v maintain_v aught_o to_o be_v maintain_v of_o the_o church_n i_o will_v not_o handle_v in_o this_o place_n whether_o tithe_n be_v due_a by_o a_o divine_a right_n or_o not_o but_o rather_o come_v to_o the_o equity_n of_o it_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o live_v of_o the_o gospel_n for_o if_o in_o time_n of_o the_o law_n the_o priest_n that_o serve_v at_o the_o altar_n have_v a_o plentiful_a allowance_n as_o it_o be_v a_o liberal_a diet_n as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o forasmuch_o as_o they_o have_v benefit_n by_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n by_o first_o fruit_n and_o ten_o and_o such_o like_a than_o it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n shall_v have_v also_o a_o good_a reward_n and_o recompense_v for_o their_o pain_n and_o labour_n and_o it_o follow_v not_o by_o equal_a comparison_n but_o from_o the_o less_o to_o the_o great_a see_v their_o office_n be_v great_a the_o least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v great_a than_o john_n baptist_n math._n 11.11_o and_o therefore_o the_o hire_n of_o their_o labour_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v less_o to_o this_o purpose_n speak_v the_o lord_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o moses_n in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o law_n in_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n when_o abraham_n return_v from_o the_o slaughter_n of_o the_o king_n 4_o gen._n 14._o ●●_o heb._n 7_o 4_o he_o give_v he_o tithe_n of_o all_o the_o spoil_n that_o he_o have_v take_v in_o war_n god_n have_v disperse_v the_o levite_n among_o all_o the_o tribe_n and_o assign_v they_o city_n to_o inhabit_v in_o all_o their_o quarter_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o sound_a doctrine_n shall_v be_v teach_v throughout_o the_o whole_a country_n they_o have_v no_o inheritance_n allot_v and_o assign_v unto_o they_o god_n promise_v to_o become_v their_o portion_n and_o therefore_o the_o people_n ought_v not_o to_o defraud_v they_o 12._o deut_n 12_o 12._o the_o levite_n be_v ever_o to_o be_v with_o they_o that_o be_v within_o their_o gate_n he_o assign_v also_o to_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n a_o worthy_a portion_n so_o that_o none_o that_o serve_v at_o the_o altar_n have_v any_o want_n to_o this_o purpose_n the_o apostle_n speak_v to_o the_o galatian_n chapter_n 6_o verse_n 6._o let_v he_o that_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o word_n communicate_v unto_o he_o that_o teach_v in_o all_o good_a thing_n this_o precept_n the_o apostle_n give_v to_o they_o that_o be_v teach_v towards_o their_o teacher_n wherein_o he_o lay_v down_o these_o particular_n first_o that_o the_o minister_n be_v to_o be_v maintain_v second_o they_o be_v to_o be_v provide_v for_o at_o the_o cost_n and_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n three_o that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v sustain_v honest_o liberal_o and_o bountiful_o to_o the_o end_n the_o mouth_n of_o the_o ox_n that_o tread_v out_o the_o corn_n may_v appear_v not_o to_o be_v muzzle_v the_o elder_n that_o rule_v well_o aught_o to_o have_v double_a honour_n give_v unto_o they_o 1._o tim._n 5.18_o not_o that_o all_o aught_o to_o be_v give_v into_o the_o minister_n hand_n that_o they_o shall_v abound_v and_o other_o want_n that_o they_o shall_v live_v rich_o or_o riotous_o &_o other_o beggarly_a as_o hypocrite_n deal_v among_o the_o pharisy_n and_o as_o it_o be_v now_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n where_o they_o devour_v widow_n house_n and_o under_o a_o colour_n of_o this_o commandment_n have_v draw_v dry_a the_o treasure_n of_o prince_n and_o eat_v up_o the_o fat_a of_o the_o land_n as_o their_o abbey_n and_o monastery_n every_o where_n testify_v so_o that_o they_o have_v build_v they_o palace_n and_o castle_n like_o prince_n of_o the_o spoil_n of_o other_o man_n but_o the_o apostle_n meaning_n be_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v a_o honest_a pension_n and_o contribution_n give_v unto_o they_o not_o abound_v in_o superfluity_n but_o content_v themselves_o with_o a_o sufficiency_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v food_n and_o raiment_n let_v they_o be_v content_a reason_n 1_o this_o truth_n be_v far_o confirm_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o force_n of_o reason_n as_o it_o be_v by_o strong_a cord_n that_o can_v be_v break_v first_o the_o apostle_n write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n handle_v this_o argument_n at_o large_a where_o he_o set_v down_o sundry_a similitude_n which_o serve_v fit_o and_o notable_o to_o illustrate_v the_o same_o as_o it_o be_v so_o many_o light_n bring_v forth_o to_o open_a and_o discover_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v dark_a and_o doubtful_a the_o soldier_n that_o go_v forth_o to_o battle_n 9.7_o ●or_a 9.7_o fight_v not_o at_o his_o own_o cost_n but_o have_v his_o pay_n and_o wage_n of_o his_o captain_n that_o have_v call_v he_o the_o planter_n that_o plant_v tree_n eat_v of_o the_o labour_n of_o his_o hand_n and_o taste_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o thing_n he_o have_v set_v and_o graft_v the_o shepherd_n that_o feed_v a_o flock_n eat_v of_o the_o milk_n of_o the_o flock_n the_o sour_a that_o go_v out_o to_o sow_v reap_v that_o which_o he_o have_v sow_v and_o gather_v it_o into_o the_o barn_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o lord_n soldier_n to_o fight_v his_o battle_n against_o sin_n and_o satan_n by_o the_o two-edged_a sword_n of_o the_o word_n they_o be_v the_o chariot_n and_o horseman_n of_o israel_n 13.14_o king_n 2.12_o ●_o 13.14_o they_o plant_v as_o gardiner_n they_o sow_v as_o husbandman_n they_o feed_v as_o shepherd_n and_o therefore_o they_o all_o ought_v to_o have_v a_o recompense_n for_o their_o labour_n and_o maintenance_n for_o their_o person_n answerable_a or_o agreeable_a to_o the_o work_n that_o be_v in_o their_o hand_n reason_n 2_o second_o such_o as_o be_v teach_v and_o instruct_v by_o the_o minister_n be_v debtor_n unto_o they_o all_o honest_a man_n be_v bind_v to_o pay_v their_o debt_n or_o else_o they_o be_v no_o better_a than_o thief_n there_o be_v a_o mutual_a band_n and_o conjunction_n between_o the_o minister_n and_o the_o people_n and_o either_o of_o they_o owe_v a_o necessary_a duty_n unto_o the_o other_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o natural_a equity_n that_o when_o we_o have_v receive_v a_o benefit_n we_o shall_v recompense_v our_o benefactor_n they_o that_o have_v receive_v much_o be_v bind_v to_o
〈◊〉_d 35_o ●●_o and_o hearken_v not_o to_o the_o word_n of_o necho_n which_o be_v of_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n the_o like_a we_o may_v consider_v oftentimes_o in_o the_o book_n of_o daniel_n when_o nabuchadnezzar_n have_v dream_v a_o dream_n which_o be_v not_o humane_a but_o divine_a neither_o of_o a_o natural_a cause_n but_o of_o a_o supernatural_a wherewith_o his_o spirit_n be_v trouble_v daniel_n say_v unto_o he_o dan._n 2_o 28._o there_o be_v a_o god_n in_o heaven_n that_o reveal_v secret_n and_o show_v the_o king_n what_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o latter_a day_n the_o reason_n be_v evident_a first_o to_o set_v down_o his_o great_a love_n and_o favour_n to_o his_o child_n 1._o 〈◊〉_d 1._o for_o as_o god_n do_v show_v himself_o in_o sundry_a manner_n and_o speak_v by_o lively_a voice_n to_o the_o ungodly_a so_o in_o all_o the_o manifestation_n of_o himself_o unto_o they_o he_o have_v respect_n and_o reference_n to_o his_o church_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o former_a example_n herein_o therefore_o appear_v the_o wonderful_a love_n of_o god_n to_o his_o choose_a people_n who_o have_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o turn_v they_o about_o as_o please_v he_o this_o be_v that_o reason_n which_o the_o prophet_n point_v unto_o psal_n 105_o 13_o 14_o 15_o where_o speak_v of_o abraham_n &_o his_o posterity_n he_o say_v albeit_o they_o be_v few_o in_o number_n yea_o very_o few_o and_o stranger_n in_o the_o land_n and_o walk_v about_o from_o nation_n to_o nation_n from_o one_o kingdom_n to_o another_o people_n yet_o suffer_v he_o no_o man_n to_o do_v they_o wrong_n but_o reproove_v king_n for_o their_o sake_n say_v touch_v not_o my_o anointed_n and_o do_v my_o prophet_n no_o harm_n second_o it_o please_v god_n to_o make_v himself_o and_o his_o great_a name_n know_v out_o of_o the_o limit_n and_o circuit_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 2._o to_o constrain_v even_o the_o wicked_a to_o clear_v he_o in_o his_o proceed_n to_o acknowledge_v his_o judgement_n to_o be_v just_a and_o righteous_a &_o to_o give_v sentence_n against_o themselves_o for_o god_n be_v holy_a in_o all_o his_o way_n and_o pure_a in_o all_o his_o work_n he_o cause_v their_o own_o conscience_n to_o be_v witness_n against_o they_o to_o accuse_v and_o to_o convince_v they_o inasmuch_o as_o they_o become_v unthankful_a 2d_o 〈◊〉_d ●_o 2d_o and_o do_v not_o glorify_v he_o as_o god_n who_o be_v worthy_a of_o all_o glory_n and_o never_o leave_v himself_o without_o witness_n 17._o act_n 14_o 17._o no_o not_o among_o the_o infidel_n three_o he_o declare_v and_o reveal_v himself_o reason_n 3_o to_o infidel_n not_o because_o they_o be_v worthy_a but_o because_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o very_a infidel_n he_o will_v strengthen_v and_o confirm_v his_o child_n true_a it_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o principal_a mean_n which_o he_o use_v be_v to_o teach_v they_o by_o his_o servant_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n by_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n which_o he_o have_v set_v in_o his_o church_n but_o he_o will_v also_o use_v the_o tongue_n of_o profane_a man_n to_o his_o own_o glory_n &_o comfort_n of_o his_o child_n this_o we_o see_v evident_o show_v judg._n 7_o 13._o when_o gideon_n come_v to_o the_o outside_n of_o the_o host_n of_o the_o enemy_n behold_v a_o man_n tell_v a_o dream_n unto_o his_o neighbour_n and_o say_v behold_v i_o dream_v a_o dream_n and_o lo_o a_o cake_n of_o barley-bread_n tumble_v from_o above_o into_o the_o host_n of_o midian_a and_o come_v unto_o a_o tent_n and_o smite_v it_o that_o it_o fall_v down_o &_o be_v overturn_v and_o his_o fellow_n answer_v this_o be_v nothing_o else_o save_v the_o sword_n of_o gideon_n for_o into_o his_o hand_n have_v god_n deliver_v midian_a and_o all_o his_o host_n when_o gideon_n hear_v the_o dream_n deliver_v and_o the_o interpretation_n open_v he_o worship_v and_o return_v into_o the_o host_n of_o israel_n and_o say_v up_o for_o the_o lord_n have_v deliver_v into_o your_o hand_n the_o host_n of_o midian_a whereby_o we_o see_v that_o god_n make_v know_v his_o purpose_n to_o these_o unbeliever_n for_o the_o strengthen_v of_o gideon_n weak_a faith_n and_o the_o enable_v of_o he_o to_o the_o work_n whereunto_o he_o be_v appoint_v the_o use_n follow_v first_o confess_v from_o this_o use_v 1_o deal_v of_o god_n not_o only_o that_o he_o be_v great_a in_o ●ion_n and_o high_a above_o all_o the_o people_n but_o ●hat_n his_o name_n be_v great_a &_o glorious_a among_o his_o enemy_n he_o reign_v as_o king_n 1_o psal_n 120.2_o 1_o not_o only_o over_o his_o church_n but_o over_o all_o creature_n and_o he_o make_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v his_o greatness_n &_o stoop_v down_o under_o his_o hand_n ●his_v we_o see_v in_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n chap._n 6_o 26_o 27_o by_o the_o decree_n that_o darius_n write_v unto_o all_o the_o people_n nation_n and_o language_n that_o dwell_v in_o all_o the_o world_n i_o make_v a_o decree_n that_o in_o all_o the_o dominion_n of_o my_o kingdom_n man_n tremble_v and_o fear_v the_o god_n of_o daniel_n for_o he_o be_v the_o live_a god_n and_o remain_v for_o ever_o and_o his_o kingdom_n shall_v not_o perish_v and_o his_o dominion_n shall_v be_v everlasting_a he_o refuse_v and_o he_o deliver_v he_o work_v sign_n and_o wonder_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n who_o have_v deliver_v daniel_n from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o lion_n the_o like_a confession_n nabuchadnezzar_n make_v before_o chap._n 3_o 32_o 33._o i_o think_v it_o good_a to_o declare_v the_o sign_n &_o wonder_n that_o the_o high_a god_n have_v wrought_v towards_o i_o how_o great_a be_v his_o sign_n and_o how_o mighty_a be_v his_o wonder_n his_o kingdom_n be_v a_o everlasting_a kingdom_n and_o his_o dominion_n be_v from_o generation_n to_o generation_n second_o we_o see_v that_o god_n leave_v not_o man_n use_v 2_o with_o out_o excuse_v because_o he_o make_v know_v his_o truth_n unto_o they_o they_o have_v some_o mean_n or_o other_o offer_v unto_o they_o to_o teach_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v god_n and_o to_o glorify_v he_o who_o they_o have_v acknowledge_v rom._n 1.20.24_o so_o christ_n our_o saviour_n speak_v to_o the_o obstinate_a jew_n john_n chapter_n fifteen_o verse_n 22._o if_o i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o speak_v unto_o they_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v have_v sin_n but_o now_o have_v they_o no_o cloak_n nor_o colour_n for_o their_o sin_n thus_o be_v pilate_n the_o judge_n of_o jewry_n convince_v in_o his_o own_o conscience_n of_o wrongful_a judgement_n against_o christ_n be_v warn_v of_o his_o wife_n to_o who_o god_n have_v reveal_v his_o innocency_n that_o he_o be_v a_o just_a man_n as_o a_o lamb_n unspotted_a and_o undefiled_a for_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n testify_v that_o when_o pilate_n be_v set_v down_o on_o the_o judgement_n seat_n his_o wife_n send_v to_o he_o say_v have_v thou_o nothing_o to_o do_v with_o that_o just_a man_n for_o i_o have_v suffer_v many_o thing_n this_o day_n in_o a_o dream_n by_o reason_n of_o he_o mat._n 27_o 19_o this_o be_v no_o mere_a humane_a or_o natural_a dream_n 2._o eccles_n 5_o 2._o arise_v from_o multitude_n of_o business_n or_o proceed_v from_o a_o evil_a constitution_n of_o the_o body_n or_o evil_a digestion_n of_o meat_n or_o such_o like_a ordinary_a cause_n as_o daily_o befall_v we_o but_o it_o be_v divine_a from_o the_o special_a instinct_n of_o god_n and_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o almighty_a for_o as_o god_n the_o father_n diverse_a way_n approve_v the_o innocency_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v he_o die_v not_o for_o his_o own_o offence_n but_o for_o we_o &_o for_o our_o redemption_n so_o do_v god_n send_v terror_n and_o trouble_n upon_o the_o judge_n wife_n in_o the_o night_n season_n to_o discover_v his_o hypocrisy_n &_o make_v he_o without_o excuse_n altogether_o in_o condemn_v the_o innocent_a that_o all_o the_o water_n in_o the_o wide_a sea_n be_v not_o able_a to_o wash_v away_o the_o guilt_n of_o his_o sin_n much_o less_o the_o water_n he_o call_v for_o to_o wash_v his_o hand_n before_o the_o multitude_n when_o he_o say_v i_o be_o innocent_a of_o the_o blood_n of_o this_o just_a man_n look_v you_o to_o it_o math._n 27_o 24._o the_o stain_n of_o sin_n soyl_v the_o soul_n and_o defile_v the_o conscience_n &_o can_v be_v wash_v away_o with_o water_n which_o only_o put_v away_o the_o filth_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o cleanse_v the_o body_n but_o can_v enter_v any_o further_o three_o see_v god_n have_v show_v and_o manifest_v use_v 3_o himself_o to_o wicked_a man_n unworthy_a of_o his_o favour_n we_o may_v be_v certain_a and_o well_o assure_v that_o he_o will_v never_o leave_v his_o own_o child_n destitute_a of_o instruction_n that_o call_v upon_o his_o
word_n and_o sacrament_n he_o will_v have_v his_o minister_n also_o under_o the_o gospel_n sufficient_o provide_v not_o only_o of_o sustenance_n and_o maintenance_n but_o also_o of_o house_n and_o habitation_n fit_a for_o they_o that_o they_o may_v wait_v upon_o their_o office_n without_o disturbance_n or_o distraction_n this_o teach_v we_o they_o doctrine_n the_o minister_n must_v be_v provide_v of_o all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o they_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v provide_v of_o food_n &_o raiment_n of_o house_n and_o dwelling_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o they_o this_o be_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o this_o place_n here_o it_o be_v command_v &_o in_o the_o book_n of_o joshua_n it_o be_v perform_v and_o execute_v as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o chap._n 2.1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o etc._n etc._n where_o we_o see_v particular_o what_o city_n every_o tribe_n give_v as_o the_o lord_n command_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n the_o like_a we_o see_v in_o the_o prophecy_n of_o ezekiel_n chapter_n 45._o verse_n 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o etc._n etc._n that_o when_o the_o messiah_n be_v exhibit_v and_o the_o gospel_n preach_v throughout_o the_o world_n the_o land_n shall_v be_v otherwise_o divide_v so_o that_o part_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v assign_v to_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n part_n shall_v belong_v unto_o the_o priest_n and_o to_o the_o levite_n verse_n 4_o and_o 5._o show_v thereby_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n must_v be_v maintain_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n every_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o give_v something_o for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o god_n service_n of_o such_o temporal_a good_n as_o god_n have_v give_v he_o gen._n 14._o verse_n 18._o and_o 28._o verse_n 20_o 22._o levit._fw-la 27._o verse_n 30_o numb_a 18._o ver_fw-la 28_o deut._n 14._o verse_n 28_o 29._o 2_o chron_n 31._o verse_n 4_o 5._o it_o be_v note_v touch_v the_o zeal_n of_o good_a king_n hezekiah_n when_o he_o have_v appoint_v the_o course_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o service_n he_o command_v the_o people_n to_o give_v the_o portion_n to_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n and_o by_o and_o by_o they_o bring_v in_o abundance_n the_o first_o fruit_n of_o corn_n and_o wine_n and_o oil_n and_o honey_n and_o of_o all_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o field_n and_o the_o tithe_n of_o all_o thing_n bring_v they_o in_o abundant_o neither_o do_v this_o belong_v only_o unto_o the_o reason_n 1_o time_n of_o the_o law_n but_o likewise_o of_o the_o gospel_n for_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v much_o more_o glorious_a then_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o call_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v great_a than_o of_o those_o that_o serve_v at_o the_o altar_n for_o as_o john_n be_v far_o great_a than_o any_o of_o the_o prophet_n that_o go_v before_o he_o so_o he_o that_o be_v least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v great_a than_o he_o as_o matth._n chap._n 11._o verse_n 11._o if_o then_o the_o levite_n be_v so_o bountiful_o and_o liberal_o deal_v withal_o who_o service_n be_v to_o take_v end_n at_o the_o exhibit_v of_o the_o messiah_n then_o much_o more_o ought_v they_o who_o ministry_n and_o service_n must_v stand_v and_o continue_v for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n till_o we_o all_o come_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o faith_n unto_o a_o perfect_a man_n unto_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o stature_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n eph._n 4_o 12_o 13._o second_o that_o they_o may_v attend_v to_o the_o holy_a thing_n of_o god_n &_o be_v no_o way_n disturb_v for_o see_v the_o apostle_n give_v it_o in_o charge_n that_o they_o must_v give_v attendance_n to_o read_v to_o exhortation_n &_o to_o doctrine_n 1._o tim._n 4_o 13._o how_o can_v they_o watch_v over_o the_o flock_n and_o give_v themselves_o to_o these_o duty_n except_o they_o have_v provision_n make_v for_o they_o according_o or_o how_o can_v they_o prepare_v a_o table_n well_o furnish_v for_o the_o people_n in_o the_o church_n when_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o set_v on_o their_o table_n in_o their_o own_o house_n or_o deal_v bread_n unto_o the_o hungry_a when_o they_o be_v hungry_a themselves_n or_o how_o can_v they_o fill_v the_o people_n with_o the_o food_n of_o the_o soul_n when_o the_o people_n suffer_v they_o to_o be_v empty_a and_o to_o want_v the_o food_n of_o the_o body_n last_o it_o be_v require_v of_o the_o minister_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o hospitality_n as_o well_o as_o to_o teach_v 1_o tim._n 3_o 2._o the_o apostle_n join_v both_o these_o together_o but_o how_o shall_v they_o show_v work_n of_o charity_n when_o they_o have_v not_o to_o supply_v their_o own_o necessity_n or_o how_o shall_v they_o entertain_v stranger_n when_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o maintain_v their_o own_o family_n or_o how_o shall_v they_o do_v this_o good_a unto_o the_o church_n when_o they_o themselves_o want_v it_o in_o their_o own_o private_a house_n use_v 1_o the_o use_v remain_v first_o this_o reprove_v the_o corrupt_a deal_n of_o wretched_a and_o miserable_a people_n who_o detain_v from_o the_o minister_n their_o livelihood_n whereby_o they_o shall_v help_v themselves_o and_o relieve_v other_o the_o popish_a sort_n think_v nothing_o too_o good_a for_o their_o priest_n and_o shaveling_n but_o we_o have_v those_o that_o think_v every_o thing_n too_o good_a for_o god_n faithful_a minister_n their_o maintenance_n be_v too_o stately_a their_o diet_n too_o dainty_a their_o apparel_n too_o costly_a their_o house_n too_o lofty_a they_o can_v be_v content_a they_o be_v put_v to_o earn_v their_o live_n with_o the_o spade_n and_o shovell_n they_o will_v not_o willing_o afford_v they_o any_o thing_n and_o they_o think_v it_o well_o save_v which_o be_v purloin_v from_o they_o they_o be_v account_v the_o best_a husband_n that_o can_v most_o cunning_o and_o crafty_o go_v beyond_o they_o and_o such_o as_o can_v thrust_v a_o new_a custom_n though_o it_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o before_o upon_o they_o to_o defeat_v and_o defraud_v they_o of_o that_o which_o be_v due_a unto_o they_o do_v account_v himself_o to_o leave_v his_o land_n in_o the_o best_a state_n &_o to_o provide_v exceed_v well_o for_o his_o posterity_n and_o to_o rid_v his_o demean_n of_o a_o very_a great_a bondage_n in_o former_a time_n tithe_n be_v count_v as_o a_o debt_n to_o the_o minister_n now_o it_o be_v hold_v a_o bondage_n or_o slavery_n to_o pay_v they_o and_o yet_o these_o be_v they_o that_o cry_v out_o with_o open_a mouth_n against_o the_o cruelty_n and_o covetousness_n of_o the_o clergy_n like_o judah_n that_o exclaim_v against_o the_o incontinency_n of_o tamar_n when_o himself_o be_v guilty_a of_o no_o less_o crime_n gen._n 38._o second_o it_o reprove_v such_o patron_n as_o enrich_v themselves_o with_o the_o live_n of_o the_o church_n who_o present_a other_o to_o the_o place_n but_o retain_v to_o themselves_o a_o share_n out_o of_o the_o same_o these_o do_v bestow_v the_o benefice_n but_o they_o keep_v the_o benefit_n never_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v a_o snare_n to_o the_o man_n who_o devour_v that_o which_o be_v holy_a and_o after_o vow_n to_o inquire_v prou._n 20_o 25._o now_o that_o be_v to_o be_v account_v holy_a which_o be_v dedicate_v to_o holy_a use_n whether_o it_o be_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o minister_n to_o the_o furtherance_n of_o school_n and_o good_a learning_n or_o to_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o therefore_o the_o abolish_n or_o diminish_n of_o these_o be_v condemn_v as_o sacrilege_n against_o god_n deut._n 23_o 23._o their_o forefather_n be_v liberal_a in_o further_a the_o worship_n of_o image_n nay_o of_o the_o devil_n himself_o imagine_v it_o to_o be_v the_o service_n of_o the_o true_a god_n they_o spare_v not_o to_o enrich_v those_o that_o be_v seducer_n and_o ringleader_n to_o eternal_a damnation_n though_o they_o be_v also_o unlearned_a and_o ungodly_a &_o unfit_a for_o that_o call_n yet_o somewhat_o they_o give_v they_o out_o of_o baptizing_n and_o the_o other_o counterfeit_a sacrament_n out_o of_o burial_n trental_n mass_n month_n mind_n every_o thing_n yield_v some_o see_v and_o stipend_n whereby_o they_o grow_v rich_a in_o the_o world_n whereas_o the_o child_n of_o these_o grudge_n to_o give_v any_o thing_n to_o their_o learned_a and_o godly_a pastor_n which_o god_n have_v in_o mercy_n bestow_v as_o a_o special_a gift_n upon_o the_o church_n but_o give_v they_o cause_n to_o complain_v of_o their_o want_n of_o mere_a thing_n necessary_a the_o prophet_n malachi_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o pronounce_v that_o such_o unconscionable_a deal_n
rule_v over_o he_o but_o all_o the_o laity_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v as_o sheep_n to_o the_o shepherd_n therefore_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n may_v not_o be_v judge_v or_o censure_v of_o lay_v man_n i_o answer_v answer_v this_o whole_a argument_n be_v figurative_a and_o therefore_o can_v be_v demonstrative_a by_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o own_o school_n a_o figurative_a speech_n can_v conclude_v necessary_o but_o only_o probable_o if_o we_o take_v the_o word_n sheep_n and_o shepherd_n in_o their_o proper_a signification_n the_o sheep_n be_v brutish_a and_o unreasonable_a can_v judge_v the_o their_o shepherd_n but_o if_o the_o word_n be_v take_v metaphorical_o or_o by_o way_n of_o similitude_n the_o magistrate_n be_v not_o a_o sheep_n in_o all_o thing_n but_o only_o in_o spiritual_a thing_n belong_v to_o doctrine_n and_o faith_n and_o a_o good_a conscience_n wherein_o the_o minister_n be_v shepherd_n if_o we_o speak_v of_o civil_a thing_n and_o provide_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v do_v decent_o and_o orderly_o in_o the_o church_n the_o magistrate_n be_v shepherd_n of_o the_o people_n and_o all_o the_o clergy_n be_v his_o sheep_n because_o they_o be_v citizen_n and_o subject_n of_o his_o city_n and_o sovereignty_n as_o then_o the_o magistrate_n can_v prescribe_v to_o the_o minister_n what_o doctrine_n he_o shall_v teach_v so_o it_o be_v pride_n and_o presumption_n for_o the_o minister_n to_o set_v down_o rule_v to_o tie_v the_o magistrate_n to_o his_o lure_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o call_n for_o then_o the_o sheep_n indeed_o shall_v judge_v their_o pastor_n three_o object_n 3_o it_o seem_v absurd_a that_o a_o earthly_a judge_n shall_v take_v and_o punish_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o chief_a and_o high_a judge_n and_o those_o man_n that_o be_v consecrate_v unto_o he_o i_o answer_v answer_v a_o earthly_a judge_n that_o sit_v upon_o a_o earthly_a bench_n be_v also_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o heavenly_a judge_n 19.5.6_o rom._n 13.4_o 2_o chron._n 19.5.6_o and_o the_o lieutenant_n of_o the_o almighty_a exercise_v the_o judgement_n not_o of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n it_o belong_v to_o his_o office_n to_o judge_v other_o that_o be_v god_n servant_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o he_o as_o sheep_n to_o their_o shepherd_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n if_o one_o of_o the_o clergy_n break_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o kingdom_n wherein_o they_o live_v by_o commit_v murder_n theft_n perjury_n false_a witnesse-bearing_a or_o such_o like_a he_o be_v punish_v not_o as_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n but_o as_o the_o servant_n of_o sin_n and_o a_o offender_n against_o the_o commonwealth_n against_o those_o suppose_a reason_n we_o oppose_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n that_o subiect_v all_o person_n to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a 2.13.14_o rom._n 13.1_o ti._n 3.1_o 1_o pet._n 2.13.14_o put_v they_o in_o remembrance_n that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o that_o they_o be_v obedient_a and_o ready_a to_o every_o good_a work_n therefore_o submit_v yourselves_o unto_o all_o manner_n ordinance_n of_o man_n for_o the_o lord_n sake_n whether_o it_o be_v unto_o the_o king_n as_o unto_o the_o superior_a or_o unto_o governor_n as_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v send_v of_o he_o for_o the_o punishment_n of_o evil_a doer_n and_o for_o the_o praise_n of_o they_o that_o do_v well_o we_o hear_v before_o that_o christ_n require_v obedience_n and_o as_o he_o command_v it_o to_o other_o so_o he_o practise_v it_o himself_o for_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o his_o parent_n 17.27_o luk._n 2.51_o matth._n 17.27_o and_o to_o the_o magistrate_n he_o pay_v polle_a money_n for_o himself_o and_o for_o peter_n not_o use_v the_o privilege_n he_o have_v and_o the_o liberty_n he_o may_v use_v for_o offence_n sake_n lest_o another_o embolden_v by_o his_o example_n shall_v use_v the_o pretence_n of_o liberty_n that_o indeed_o he_o have_v not_o paul_n also_o teach_v subjection_n both_o by_o word_n and_o deed_n by_o his_o doctrine_n &_o practice_n for_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o magistrate_n and_o use_v their_o authority_n for_o his_o safety_n when_o he_o appeal_v from_o the_o malicious_a pharise_n unto_o caesar_n 26.32_o act._n 26.32_o 42._o chrysost_n homil_n in_o roman_a bernard_n ept_v 42._o thus_o we_o see_v what_o christ_n do_v what_o the_o apostle_n do_v what_o the_o christian_n do_v they_o exempt_v not_o themselves_o from_o the_o secular_a power_n but_o whether_o they_o be_v apostle_n or_o evangelist_n or_o prophet_n they_o submit_v themselves_o and_o claim_v no_o freedom_n from_o their_o jurisdiction_n wherefore_o they_o be_v lead_v by_o another_o spirit_n that_o broach_v and_o practice_v a_o contrary_a doctrine_n proof_n the_o three_o res_fw-la proof_n three_o they_o be_v reprove_v that_o be_v seditious_a person_n and_o move_v rebellion_n and_o insurrection_n against_o prince_n who_o always_o or_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v meet_v with_o all_o in_o this_o life_n and_o receive_v according_a to_o their_o deserve_n of_o such_o person_n jezabel_n speak_v true_o 9.31_o 2_o king_n 9.31_o have_v zimri_n peace_n that_o slay_v his_o master_n as_o if_o she_o shall_v have_v say_v can_v any_o rebel_n or_o traitor_n or_o any_o that_o rise_v against_o his_o superior_a and_o sovereign_a prosper_v and_o have_v good_a success_n for_o z●mri_n a_o captain_n of_o the_o host_n conspire_v against_o elah_n the_o son_n of_o baasha_n king_n of_o israel_n &_o smite_v he_o that_o he_o die_v &_o usurp_v the_o kingdom_n but_o the_o time_n of_o his_o reign_n &_o the_o continuance_n of_o his_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n can_v not_o be_v number_v nor_o reckon_v by_o year_n 16.9.15.18_o 1_o king_n 16.9.15.18_o nor_o by_o month_n nor_o by_o week_n he_o reign_v only_o seven_o day_n and_o then_o be_v hardly_o besiege_v he_o be_v constrain_v to_o burn_v himself_o and_o the_o king_n house_n with_o fire_n so_o that_o as_o he_o come_v to_o his_o kingdom_n by_o usurpation_n and_o hold_v it_o a_o while_n by_o effusion_n of_o blood_n so_o he_o end_v his_o day_n in_o desperation_n read_v to_o this_o purpose_n 2_o kin._n 15._o where_o we_o have_v set_v before_o we_o the_o example_n of_o shallum_n 15.10.13.25.30_o 2._o king_n 15.10.13.25.30_o who_o conspire_v against_o zachariah_n the_o son_n of_o the_o second_o jeroboam_fw-la and_o smite_v he_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o people_n and_o reign_v in_o his_o stead_n do_v not_o long_o enjoy_v his_o kingdom_n but_o sit_v in_o his_o throne_n the_o space_n of_o a_o month_n and_o then_o himself_o be_v slay_v &_o so_o he_o find_v according_a to_o his_o work_n so_o that_o as_o he_o spare_v not_o to_o shed_v blood_n so_o his_o blood_n be_v not_o spare_v likewise_o the_o example_n of_o pekah_n who_o conspire_v against_o pekahiah_n and_o smite_v he_o in_o samaria_n in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o king_n palace_n but_o do_v he_o escape_v for_o this_o treason_n and_o end_v his_o day_n in_o peace_n no_o as_o he_o do_v evil_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o depart_v not_o from_o the_o sin_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la the_o son_n of_o nebal_n so_o hoshea_n wrought_v treason_n against_o he_o smite_v he_o and_o slay_v he_o and_o pay_v he_o home_o in_o his_o own_o kind_n so_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n we_o see_v that_o when_o the_o servant_n of_o joash_n king_n of_o judah_n wrought_v treason_n against_o their_o master_n &_o slay_v he_o his_o son_n do_v not_o suffer_v their_o hoar_a head_n to_o go_v down_o to_o the_o grave_n in_o peace_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o kingdom_n be_v confirm_v in_o his_o hand_n he_o slay_v his_o servant_n which_o have_v kill_v the_o king_n his_o father_n 5._o 2_o kin_n 14_o 5._o thus_o it_o appear_v that_o a_o discontent_a head_n a_o mutter_a spirit_n and_o a_o seditious_a mind_n be_v dangerous_a and_o bring_v a_o just_a reward_n of_o rebellion_n upon_o their_o head_n that_o be_v the_o contriver_n of_o it_o so_o that_o they_o fall_v into_o the_o pit_n of_o confusion_n that_o they_o make_v for_o other_o this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o rebellion_n and_o such_o recompense_n have_v rebel_n against_o prince_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o such_o pernicious_a person_n be_v the_o common_a plague_n of_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n be_v hate_v of_o god_n and_o man_n &_o odious_a to_o every_o one_o yea_o even_o to_o those_o that_o use_v they_o to_o serve_v their_o own_o turn_n in_o disloyal_a and_o wicked_a action_n romulus_n plutarch_n in_o the_o life_n of_o romulus_n so_o that_o albeit_o they_o love_v treason_n well_o yet_o they_o hate_v the_o traitor_n for_o he_o that_o betray_v his_o prince_n his_o country_n and_o kindred_n into_o their_o hand_n to_o who_o he_o be_v not_o tie_v
with_o such_o near_a and_o necessary_a band_n will_v not_o keep_v his_o faith_n entire_a to_o they_o but_o betray_v they_o also_o when_o occasion_n and_o opportunity_n shall_v serve_v the_o law_n of_o god_n say_v 22.28_o exod._n 22.28_o thou_o shall_v not_o rail_v upon_o the_o judge_n neither_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o ruler_n of_o thy_o people_n if_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o punishment_n that_o rail_v and_o revile_v they_o what_o punishment_n and_o revenge_n be_v sufficient_a for_o he_o that_o seek_v after_o their_o life_n and_o plot_v after_o their_o death_n we_o have_v a_o notable_a example_n of_o a_o loyal_a heart_n in_o david_n towards_o saul_n who_o albeit_o he_o be_v elect_v and_o anoint_a king_n and_o be_v persecute_v and_o pursue_v of_o saul_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o his_o person_n nor_o seek_v to_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o kingdom_n the_o lord_n say_v he_o keep_v i_o from_o do_v that_o thing_n to_o my_o master_n the_o lord_n anoint_v 26.9.10_o 1_o sam_n 24.7_o and_o 26.9.10_o to_o lay_v my_o hand_n upon_o he_o for_o who_o can_v lay_v his_o hand_n on_o the_o lord_n anoint_v and_o be_v guiltless_a as_o the_o lord_n live_v either_o the_o lord_n shall_v smite_v he_o or_o his_o day_n shall_v come_v to_o die_v or_o he_o shall_v descend_v into_o battle_n and_o perish_v the_o lord_n keep_v i_o from_o lay_v my_o hand_n upon_o the_o lord_n anoint_v this_o be_v the_o protestation_n of_o david_n but_o it_o be_v a_o word_n of_o direction_n to_o all_o that_o prince_n person_n shall_v be_v inviolable_a as_o sacred_a and_o send_v of_o god_n whether_o they_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n whether_o they_o be_v just_a or_o unjust_a whether_o godly_a or_o ungodly_a it_o be_v not_o unknown_a what_o manner_n of_o king_n nabuchadnezzar_n be_v even_o he_o that_o take_v jerusalem_n namely_o a_o great_a oppressor_n robber_n &_o cruel_a tyrant_n yet_o the_o prophet_n ezekiel_n affirm_v that_o god_n give_v he_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n 4.14_o ezek._n 29.18.19_o dan._n 2.37_o and_o 4.14_o for_o the_o reward_n of_o his_o work_n and_o for_o the_o wage_n of_o his_o army_n wherewith_o he_o have_v serve_v he_o and_o daniel_n declare_v that_o god_n change_v the_o time_n and_o season_n he_o take_v away_o king_n he_o set_v uppe_o king_n that_o live_a man_n may_v know_v that_o the_o most_o high_a have_v power_n over_o the_o kingdom_n of_o man_n and_o give_v it_o to_o whosoever_o he_o w●ll_n and_o appoint_v over_o it_o the_o most_o abject_a among_o man_n and_o in_o the_o second_o chapter_n he_o say_v o_o king_n thou_o be_v a_o king_n of_o king_n for_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n have_v give_v thou_o a_o kingdom_n power_n and_o strength_n and_o glory_n who_o can_v be_v a_o great_a tyrant_n than_o pharaoh_n who_o can_v enact_v more_o barbarous_a and_o bloody_a decree_n than_o he_o do_v or_o what_o people_n can_v be_v in_o great_a misery_n or_o endure_v hard_a bondage_n and_o slavery_n than_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n in_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n 7._o exod._n 2.23_o &_o 3.7.17_o &_o 5_o 7._o yet_o they_o perform_v obedience_n they_o never_o prepare_v or_o provide_v to_o resist_v the_o king_n they_o never_o take_v up_o arm_n their_o only_a weapon_n be_v supplication_n to_o god_n &_o to_o man_n let_v we_o consider_v a_o little_a what_o the_o lord_n himself_o say_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n ●1_n ●rremy_n 27_o ●6_n 7_o 8_o 9_o 10_o ●1_n i_o have_v make_v the_o earth_n the_o man_n and_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o ground_n by_o my_o great_a power_n and_o by_o my_o outstretch_v arm_n and_o have_v give_v it_o unto_o who_o it_o please_v it_o i_o but_o now_o i_o have_v give_v all_o these_o land_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n my_o servant_n and_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n have_v i_o also_o give_v he_o to_o serve_v he_o and_o all_o nation_n shall_v serve_v he_o and_o his_o son_n and_o his_o son_n son_n until_o the_o very_a time_n of_o his_o land_n come_v also_o and_o the_o nation_n &_o kingdom_n which_o will_v not_o serve_v the_o same_o nabuchadnezzar_n king_n of_o babel_n and_o that_o will_v not_o put_v their_o neck_n under_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o king_n of_o babel_n the_o same_o nation_n will_v i_o visit_v say_v the_o lord_n with_o the_o sword_n famine_n and_o pestilence_n wherefore_o serve_v the_o king_n of_o babel_n and_o live_v out_o of_o these_o word_n we_o observe_v these_o three_o point_n who_o it_o be_v that_o divide_v &_o bestow_v kingdom_n to_o who_o he_o give_v they_o and_o what_o end_n remain_v for_o those_o that_o resist_v they_o he_o that_o set_v the_o crown_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o man_n be_v god_n all_o power_n be_v from_o he_o for_o promotion_n come_v not_o from_o the_o east_n nor_o from_o the_o west_n he_o set_v up_o and_o he_o pull_v down_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n he_o give_v the_o same_o sometime_o to_o evil_a man_n and_o these_o he_o make_v his_o servant_n to_o serve_v his_o providence_n and_o to_o do_v his_o will_n which_o he_o have_v to_o be_v do_v by_o they_o and_o therefore_o such_o as_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o they_o do_v set_v themselves_o against_o god_n and_o all_o that_o resist_v shall_v receive_v to_o themselves_o condemnation_n 2_o ●om_n 13_o 2_o he_o will_v have_v tyrant_n to_o be_v obey_v and_o honour_v because_o they_o be_v lift_v up_o to_o the_o seat_n of_o honour_n and_o throne_n of_o majesty_n by_o his_o hand_n use_v 2_o second_o we_o learn_v that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a blessing_n to_o have_v good_a and_o godly_a prince_n set_v over_o we_o to_o rule_v we_o in_o justice_n peace_n and_o righteousness_n 20._o ●say_n 32_o 2._o ●am_n 4_o 20._o they_o be_v a_o cover_n against_o the_o heat_n the_o breath_n of_o our_o nostril_n a_o hide_v place_n from_o the_o wind_n and_o a_o refuge_n from_o the_o tempest_n as_o river_n of_o water_n in_o a_o dry_a land_n &_o as_o the_o shadow_n of_o a_o great_a rock_n in_o a_o weary_a land_n where_o they_o be_v want_v the_o sun_n be_v as_o it_o be_v pull_v out_o of_o the_o firmament_n and_o all_o thing_n be_v leave_v in_o miserable_a darkness_n the_o weak_a be_v a_o prey_n to_o the_o strong_a and_o mighty_a as_o the_o lesser_a fish_n be_v devour_v of_o the_o great_a and_o every_o one_o do_v that_o which_o seem_v good_a in_o his_o own_o eye_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o queen_n of_o sheba_n see_v the_o power_n and_o magnificence_n of_o solomon_n who_o god_n have_v set_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o father_n david_n 8._o kin._n 10_o 8._o say_v happy_a be_v thy_o man_n happy_a be_v these_o thy_o servant_n which_o stand_v ever_o before_o thou_o and_o hear_v thy_o join_a sedome_n to_o this_o purpose_n speak_v the_o wise_a man_n eccl._n 10_o 16_o 17._o woe_n to_o thou_o o_o land_n when_o thy_o king_n be_v a_o child_n and_o thy_o prince_n eat_v in_o the_o morning_n bless_a art_n thou_o o_o land_n when_o thy_o king_n be_v the_o son_n of_o noble_n and_o thy_o prince_n eat_v in_o time_n for_o strength_n and_o not_o for_o drunkenness_n we_o must_v therefore_o acknowledge_v it_o as_o a_o great_a blessing_n and_o mercy_n upon_o a_o land_n when_o he_o give_v faithful_a magistrate_n wise_a king_n wise_a counsellor_n wise_a noble_n wise_a judge_n wise_a justice_n wise_a officer_n to_o govern_v the_o state_n &_o to_o sway_v the_o commonwealth_n bless_a be_v such_o ruler_n nay_o blessed_a be_v the_o people_n that_o be_v under_o such_o ruler_n and_o bless_a be_v that_o government_n and_o policy_n so_o well_o and_o wise_o order_v it_o be_v a_o token_n of_o god_n heavy_a judgement_n upon_o a_o kingdom_n when_o he_o take_v away_o the_o overseer_n of_o it_o it_o be_v a_o token_n of_o the_o ruin_n of_o a_o house_n when_o the_o shore_n and_o stay_v that_o underprop_a it_o be_v remove_v when_o the_o tree_n be_v pull_v up_o by_o the_o root_n the_o branch_n must_v needs_o die_v the_o leave_v wither_v and_o the_o fruit_n fall_v away_o when_o the_o foot_n of_o a_o man_n fail_v that_o bear_v up_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n he_o can_v but_o fall_v and_o when_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o nostril_n be_v stop_v he_o be_v go_v 29._o psal_n 104_o 29._o &_o quick_o return_v to_o the_o dust_n out_o of_o which_o he_o be_v take_v our_o ruler_n and_o magistrate_n be_v as_o the_o prop_n &_o pillar_n that_o keep_v the_o house_n upright_o they_o be_v as_o the_o root_n of_o the_o tree_n that_o give_v life_n and_o send_v forth_o sap_n and_o ivice_n into_o all_o part_n and_o corner_n of_o the_o land_n which_o be_v as_o the_o body_n of_o this_o tree_n they_o be_v as_o the_o head_n that_o be_v the_o choice_a part_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o yet_o
samaria_n be_v devour_v of_o lion_n he_o command_v that_o one_o of_o the_o priest_n which_o have_v be_v bring_v from_o thence_o 27._o 2_o ki._n 17_o 26_o 27._o shall_v be_v carry_v thither_o to_o teach_v they_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o god_n of_o the_o country_n so_o that_o the_o superstitious_a king_n think_v it_o his_o duty_n to_o see_v they_o instruct_v in_o the_o truth_n a_o notable_a example_n of_o a_o godly_a and_o religious_a care_n this_o way_n be_v in_o jehosaphat_n who_o 10._o 2_o chron._n 17_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10._o so_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v take_v away_o the_o high_a place_n and_o the_o grove_n out_o of_o judah_n he_o send_v out_o sundry_a of_o the_o levite_n that_o they_o shall_v teach_v in_o the_o city_n and_o they_o teach_v in_o judah_n and_o have_v the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n with_o they_o and_o go_v about_o throughout_o all_o the_o city_n of_o judah_n and_o teach_v the_o people_n this_o be_v the_o foundation_n and_o stay_n of_o all_o kingdom_n to_o give_v entertainment_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o make_v a_o wise_a king_n and_o a_o wise_a people_n so_o long_o as_o magistrate_n countenance_v the_o truth_n and_o preacher_n of_o it_o they_o secure_v their_o own_o estate_n and_o be_v bless_v of_o god_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o encouragement_n unto_o they_o not_o to_o be_v slack_a or_o slothful_a in_o spread_v abroad_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n last_o because_o it_o be_v troublesome_a and_o tedious_a to_o go_v about_o to_o rehearse_v all_o their_o duty_n we_o brief_o number_v up_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v their_o duty_n therefore_o to_o be_v good_a example_n of_o piety_n and_o godliness_n of_o life_n to_o the_o people_n and_o to_o provide_v for_o they_o all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o the_o body_n to_o ask_v counsel_n of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o their_o weighty_a affair_n that_o be_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o to_o yield_v obedience_n unto_o it_o to_o exhort_v their_o inferior_n in_o time_n of_o public_a calamity_n to_o earnest_a repentance_n and_o to_o express_v the_o same_o by_o prayer_n and_o fast_v to_o know_v the_o cause_n thorough_o before_o they_o proceed_v to_o give_v sentence_n to_o punish_v evil_a doer_n and_o defend_v the_o innocent_a and_o to_o establish_v such_o positive_a law_n as_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o order_n and_o decency_n in_o the_o commonwealth_n use_v 4_o last_o see_v magistrate_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n it_o put_v those_o that_o be_v under_o they_o in_o mind_n of_o their_o duty_n partly_o in_o regard_n of_o themselves_o partly_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o magistrate_n and_o partly_o in_o respect_n of_o god_n touch_v themselves_o they_o must_v know_v they_o be_v no_o burden_n to_o the_o commonwealth_n nor_o superfluous_a part_n that_o may_v be_v spare_v they_o be_v as_o the_o head_n or_o heart_n of_o the_o body_n or_o as_o the_o eye_n in_o the_o head_n all_o depend_v upon_o their_o welfare_n so_o all_o depend_v upon_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n welfare_n if_o he_o be_v uphold_v the_o commonwealth_n stand_v if_o he_o be_v unregarded_a the_o commonwealth_n fall_v he_o be_v as_o necessary_a as_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o firmament_n yea_o as_o fire_n and_o water_n and_o breathe_v without_o which_o we_o can_v live_v if_o we_o judge_v otherwise_o of_o this_o ordinance_n of_o god_n we_o be_v deceive_v &_o wrong_a both_o they_o and_o ourselves_o again_o we_o learn_v that_o their_o life_n and_o continuance_n be_v great_o to_o be_v desire_v of_o god_n servant_n it_o be_v the_o part_n and_o duty_n of_o all_o subject_n to_o crave_v their_o safety_n and_o protection_n that_o they_o may_v safeguard_n and_o protect_v both_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n yea_o ruler_n themselves_o in_o regard_n of_o this_o end_n which_o ought_v daily_o to_o be_v before_o their_o eye_n may_v desire_v of_o god_n to_o lengthen_v their_o day_n and_o to_o continue_v their_o happy_a reign_n that_o together_o with_o the_o saint_n they_o may_v do_v service_n to_o god_n in_o his_o church_n in_o this_o respect_n i_o say_v they_o may_v desire_v life_n not_o so_o much_o aim_v at_o their_o own_o private_a good_a for_o in_o that_o respect_n it_o be_v better_a to_o be_v dissolve_v &_o to_o be_v with_o the_o lord_n as_o respect_v the_o general_a utility_n of_o their_o people_n what_o great_a glory_n what_o high_a honour_n can_v they_o have_v then_o this_o to_o be_v the_o stay_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o church_n that_o otherwise_o be_v like_a to_o decay_v and_o go_v to_o ruin_v and_o to_o continue_v the_o several_a part_n of_o it_o in_o well-doing_n that_o good_a king_n hezekiah_n foresee_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o miserable_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n that_o shall_v be_v after_o his_o death_n and_o consider_v with_o great_a anguish_n of_o heart_n the_o woeful_a effect_n that_o be_v like_a to_o follow_v he_o turn_v himself_o in_o his_o bed_n to_o the_o wall_n and_o weep_v and_o be_v greeve_v to_o depart_v hence_o ●_o esay_n 38_o 18_o ●_o say_v the_o grave_n can_v confess_v thou_o death_n can_v praise_v thou_o they_o that_o go_v down_o into_o the_o pit_n can_v hope_v for_o thy_o truth_n but_o the_o live_n the_o live_n he_o shall_v confess_v thou_o as_o i_o do_v this_o day_n the_o father_n to_o the_o child_n shall_v declare_v thy_o truth_n he_o desire_v of_o god_n to_o live_v and_o pray_v unto_o god_n to_o prolong_v his_o day_n not_o to_o lift_v up_o himself_o above_o his_o brethren_n not_o to_o glory_v in_o the_o smoke_n of_o lofty_a title_n not_o to_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o people_n not_o to_o command_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v unjust_a or_o to_o punish_v such_o as_o do_v not_o deserve_v it_o but_o to_o do_v good_a to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o set_v forth_o god_n praise_n death_n indeed_o which_o bring_v the_o dissolution_n of_o nature_n be_v a_o welcome_a guest_n to_o they_o that_o be_v the_o lord_n all_o the_o godly_a do_v make_v themselves_o ready_a to_o receive_v he_o to_o meet_v and_o entertain_v he_o and_o so_o king_n &_o prince_n among_o the_o rest_n howbeit_o in_o this_o respect_n that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v benefit_v by_o they_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o impiety_n to_o desire_v a_o long_a continuance_n among_o god_n people_n much_o more_o than_o be_v it_o the_o duty_n of_o such_o as_o be_v under_o they_o and_o govern_v by_o they_o to_o desire_v their_o continuance_n as_o the_o day_n of_o heaven_n and_o as_o the_o course_n of_o the_o sun_n to_o be_v nurse_n to_o the_o godly_a this_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v a_o common_a salutation_n use_v of_o the_o people_n towards_o their_o prince_n not_o only_o of_o the_o infidel_n but_o by_o the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n 10._o dan._n 2_o 4_o and_z 6_o 21_o and_o 3_o 9_o and_z 5_o 10._o when_o the_o king_n come_v to_o visit_v daniel_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o den_n of_o lion_n the_o prophet_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o hear_v he_o say_v o_o king_n live_v for_o ever_o that_o be_v god_n grant_v unto_o thou_o a_o long_a life_n last_o of_o all_o whensoever_o we_o have_v a_o wise_a and_o worthy_a a_o godly_a and_o religious_a prince_n give_v to_o we_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o be_v thankful_a if_o the_o lord_n grant_v unto_o a_o land_n a_o prudent_a and_o provident_a prince_n to_o reign_v over_o they_o who_o heart_n be_v bend_v to_o seek_v the_o lord_n and_o to_o serve_v the_o god_n of_o his_o father_n the_o people_n that_o breathe_v under_o his_o shadow_n must_v praise_v the_o holy_a name_n of_o god_n it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o pray_v that_o prince_n may_v be_v such_o and_o to_o commend_v they_o to_o god_n with_o all_o faithfulness_n for_o if_o they_o must_v pray_v for_o other_o much_o more_o for_o they_o when_o solomon_n be_v anoint_v with_o oil_n take_v out_o of_o the_o sanctuary_n they_o blow_v the_o trumpet_n and_o all_o the_o people_n say_v god_n save_o king_n solomon_n 39_o 1_o king_n 1_o 39_o so_o the_o apostle_n write_v to_o timothy_n exhort_v that_o first_o of_o all_o supplication_n prayer_n intercession_n and_o give_v of_o thanks_n be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n for_o king_n and_o for_o all_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n 3_o 1_o tim._n 2_o 1_o 2_o 3_o that_o we_o may_v lead_v a_o quiet_a and_o a_o peaceable_a life_n in_o all_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n for_o this_o be_v good_a and_o acceptable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n now_o as_o we_o be_v to_o pray_v for_o they_o so_o we_o be_v to_o praise_n god_n for_o they_o we_o be_v not_o to_o forget_v the_o least_o blessing_n nor_o to_o be_v unmindful_a of_o small_a benefit_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v much_o more_o bind_v to_o be_v thankful_a
for_o the_o great_a among_o which_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a the_o prophet_n pray_v for_o the_o prosperous_a estate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o solomon_n say_v give_v thy_o judgement_n to_o the_o king_n o_o god_n 2._o psal_n 72_o 1_o 2._o and_o thy_o righteousness_n unto_o the_o king_n son_n then_o shall_v he_o judge_v thy_o people_n in_o righteousness_n and_o thy_o poor_a with_o equity_n this_o duty_n belong_v to_o we_o and_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v our_o prayer_n and_o petition_n and_o as_o god_n have_v bless_v we_o with_o a_o gracious_a prince_n &_o his_o hopeful_a issue_n contrary_a to_o the_o expectation_n of_o many_o malcontent_n and_o hollow-hearted_a enemy_n of_o we_o and_o our_o religion_n so_o we_o be_v often_o to_o call_v to_o remembrance_n the_o joyful_a and_o happy_a time_n when_o god_n in_o his_o great_a goodness_n bring_v he_o to_o this_o kingdom_n and_o to_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n lineal_o descend_v unto_o he_o so_o that_o we_o may_v say_v with_o the_o psalmist_n 24._o psal_n 118_o 23_o 24._o this_o be_v the_o lord_n do_v &_o it_o be_v marvelous_a in_o our_o eye_n this_o be_v the_o day_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v let_v we_o rejoice_v &_o be_v glad_a in_o it_o hereby_o do_v god_n allay_v the_o bitterness_n of_o sorrow_n worthy_o conceive_v for_o the_o decease_n of_o our_o late_a sovereign_n so_o that_o the_o set_n as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o moon_n be_v recompense_v with_o the_o bright_a shine_a of_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o close_n of_o the_o eye_n as_o it_o be_v shut_v the_o window_n of_o decline_a age_n with_o a_o great_a perfection_n of_o age_n of_o sex_n of_o gift_n and_o many_o other_o prerogative_n thus_o do_v one_o and_o the_o same_o day_n minister_v matter_n and_o occasion_n both_o of_o sorrow_n and_o of_o gladness_n 1603._o the_o 24._o day_n of_o march_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1603._o of_o discomfort_n yet_o of_o comfort_n of_o weep_v yet_o of_o rejoice_v as_o a_o medicine_n compose_v of_o contrary_a ingredient_n so_o that_o we_o may_v say_v &_o sing_v with_o the_o poet_n jamque_fw-la dies_fw-la nisi_fw-la fallor_fw-la adest_fw-la quem_fw-la semper_fw-la acerbun_fw-la semper_fw-la honorandum_fw-la sic_fw-la dij_fw-la voluistis_fw-la habebo_fw-la 3._o virgil._n eneid_n lib._n 3._o hunc_fw-la ego_fw-la getulis_fw-la agerem_fw-la si_fw-la syrtibus_fw-la exul_fw-la argolicove_n mari_fw-fr deprensus_fw-la &_o urbe_fw-la mycenae_n annua_fw-la vota_fw-la tamen_fw-la solennesque_fw-la ordine_fw-la pompas_fw-la exequerer_fw-la strueremqque_fw-la suis_fw-la altaria_fw-la donis_fw-la that_o be_v this_o this_o day_n ever-dolefull_a shall_v and_o ever_o joyful_a be_v yea_o merry-sad_a and_o bitter_a sweet_a thus_o god_n do_v it_o decree_n if_o i_o be_v cast_v among_o the_o moor_n and_o live_v a_o captive_a slave_n yet_o yearly_a vow_n and_o duty_n due_a the_o altar_n high_a shall_v have_v thus_o may_v we_o and_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o just_o say_v of_o the_o day_n above_o name_v which_o be_v heavy_a and_o yet_o happy_a threaten_v a_o storm_n and_o yet_o shine_v clear_o who_o do_v not_o great_o fear_v and_o who_o heart_n be_v not_o full_a of_o perplex_a thought_n to_o consider_v what_o danger_n be_v likely_a to_o fall_v upon_o our_o head_n when_o god_n shall_v call_v unto_o himself_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o gather_v she_o unto_o her_o father_n but_o behold_v god_n great_a providence_n deal_v in_o mercy_n towards_o we_o who_o shut_v up_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lion_n and_o put_v up_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o enemy_n and_o quench_v the_o violence_n of_o the_o fire_n so_o that_o no_o noise_n no_o tumult_n no_o cry_n be_v hear_v in_o our_o street_n no_o sack_n of_o city_n no_o tumbling_n of_o garment_n in_o blood_n be_v see_v no_o alarm_n of_o battle_n be_v discern_v of_o any_o not_o a_o dog_n lift_v up_o his_o tongue_n 5._o esay_n 9_o 5._o but_o all_o thing_n be_v submiss_a and_o quiet_a thus_o god_n bring_v king_n james_n unto_o the_o kingdom_n with_o a_o train_n of_o all_o estate_n degree_n calling_n company_n and_o condition_n with_o olive_n branch_n of_o peace_n in_o their_o hand_n sinesudore_fw-la &_o sanguine_fw-la that_o be_v without_o sweat_v and_o bloodshedding_n no_o man_n lose_v his_o good_n no_o man_n lose_v his_o life_n no_o babilonish_a confusion_n follow_v but_o every_o one_o hold_v his_o own_o with_o great_a certainty_n and_o security_n then_o before_o whereat_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o peace_n and_o religion_n fret_v and_o rage_n and_o gnash_v their_o tooth_n for_o anger_n and_o be_v like_a to_o burst_v for_o envy_n see_v their_o expectation_n be_v frustate_v &_o all_o their_o hope_n be_v defeat_v yea_o lord_n disappoint_v they_o more_o and_o more_o cast_v they_o into_o the_o pit_n which_o they_o have_v dig_v and_o roll_v the_o stone_n upon_o themselves_o which_o they_o have_v stir_v let_v they_o be_v consume_v and_o confound_v in_o their_o own_o device_n and_o taste_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o their_o own_o malice_n let_v their_o eye_n look_v for_o a_o day_n of_o comfort_n and_o refresh_n until_o they_o fall_v out_o of_o their_o head_n according_a to_o that_o say_n rusticus_n expectat_fw-la dum_fw-la defluat_fw-la amnis_fw-la 2._o horat._n lib._n 1._o epist_n 2._o at_o ille_fw-la labitur_fw-la &_o labetur_fw-la in_o omne_fw-la volubilis_fw-la aewm_fw-la that_o be_v they_o wait_v until_o the_o river_n wax_v dry_a but_o he_o do_v run_v and_o shall_v eternal_o so_o then_o to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n esay_n ch_n 5_o 24._o as_o the_o flame_n of_o fire_n devour_v the_o stubble_n &_o as_o the_o chaff_n be_v consume_v of_o the_o flame_n so_o their_o root_n shall_v be_v as_o rottenness_n and_o their_o bud_n shall_v rise_v up_o like_o dust_n because_o they_o have_v cast_v off_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o contemn_v the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n on_o the_o other_o side_n let_v we_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o render_v humble_a and_o hearty_a thanks_n to_o god_n for_o his_o goodness_n towards_o we_o in_o deliver_v we_o from_o the_o danger_n that_o do_v hang_v over_o we_o in_o frustrate_v the_o policy_n of_o the_o ungodly_a in_o continue_v among_o we_o the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n in_o maintain_v concord_n and_o unity_n among_o we_o &_o all_o these_o by_o place_v our_o dread_a sovereign_n over_o we_o and_o thereby_o remove_v a_o thousand_o calamity_n that_o threaten_a shipwreck_n and_o final_a desolation_n let_v we_o not_o now_o grow_v secure_a but_o oftentimes_o remember_v the_o benefit_n that_o we_o have_v receive_v it_o be_v note_v that_o when_o solomon_n be_v set_v upon_o the_o seat_n of_o david_n his_o father_n 48._o 1_o kin._n 1_o 48._o the_o people_n come_v up_o after_o he_o yea_o they_o pipe_v with_o pipe_n and_o rejoice_v with_o great_a joy_n so_o that_o the_o earth_n ring_v with_o the_o sound_n of_o they_o so_o when_o hiram_n king_n of_o tyrus_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o solomon_n he_o rejoice_v great_o and_o say_v 7._o 1_o kin._n 5_o 7._o bless_a be_v the_o lord_n this_o day_n which_o have_v give_v unto_o david_n a_o wise_a son_n over_o this_o mighty_a people_n likewise_o when_o the_o queen_n of_o sheba_n see_v the_o glory_n of_o solomon_n and_o know_v it_o to_o be_v a_o chief_a sign_n of_o god_n favour_n to_o have_v godly_a and_o wise_a ruler_n sit_v in_o the_o throne_n of_o justice_n and_o judgement_n she_o break_v forth_o not_o only_o into_o a_o admiration_n of_o his_o wisdom_n and_o his_o servant_n happiness_n but_o also_o into_o a_o open_a thanksgiving_n bless_a be_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n which_o love_v thou_o to_o set_v thou_o on_o the_o throne_n of_o israel_n 9_o 1_o kin._n 10_o 9_o because_o the_o lord_n love_v israel_n for_o ever_o and_o make_v thou_o king_n to_o do_v equity_n and_o righteousness_n these_o be_v good_a example_n for_o we_o to_o follow_v and_o teach_v we_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v when_o god_n bless_v we_o with_o a_o upright_o david_n with_o a_o wise_a solomon_n with_o a_o zealous_a hezekiah_n with_o a_o religious_a josiah_n with_o a_o reforming_a jehosaphat_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o return_v praise_n and_o glory_n to_o god_n and_o withal_o to_o pray_v hearty_o for_o the_o prosperous_a and_o happy_a continuance_n of_o such_o among_o we_o that_o they_o may_v live_v long_o upon_o earth_n to_o promote_v his_o glory_n to_o advance_v the_o gospel_n &_o to_o establish_v peace_n plenty_n and_o prosperity_n among_o their_o people_n 10._o on_o the_o southside_n shall_v be_v the_o standard_n of_o the_o host_n of_o reuben_n according_a to_o their_o army_n and_o the_o captain_n over_o the_o son_n of_o reuben_n shall_v be_v elizur_n the_o son_n of_o shedeur_n 11._o and_o his_o host_n and_o the_o number_n thereof_o be_v six_o and_o forty_o thousand_o and_o five_o hundred_o 12._o and_o by_o he_o shall_v the_o
family_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n not_o only_a isaac_n the_o son_n of_o promise_n in_o who_o seed_n the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v bless_v but_o ishmael_n that_o be_v bear_v after_o the_o flesh_n that_o mock_v his_o brother_n &_o persecute_v he_o that_o be_v bear_v after_o the_o spirit_n and_o in_o the_o end_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n gen._n 21.9_o 10._o 21.9.10_o gen._n 21.9.10_o gal._n 4.30_o 3.30_o gal._n 3.30_o and_o as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o father_n so_o be_v it_o with_o the_o son_n for_o we_o see_v this_o in_o the_o child_n of_o isaac_n who_o strive_v and_o struggle_v within_o the_o womb_n of_o their_o mother_n gen._n 25.22_o and_o when_o the_o time_n of_o her_o deliverance_n come_v she_o bring_v forth_o not_o only_a jacob_n 32.24_o gen._n 32.24_o who_o afterward_o be_v surname_v israel_n obtain_v a_o far_o more_o honourable_a name_n then_o all_o the_o affricani_fw-la or_o germanici_fw-la or_o asiatici_n among_o the_o roman_n who_o praise_n be_v whole_o from_o the_o earth_n and_o a_o blast_n of_o the_o mouth_n of_o mortal_a man_n whereas_o he_o wrestle_v with_o god_n in_o peniel_n and_o prevail_v but_o also_o profane_a esau_n 16._o heb._n 12_o 16._o so_o brand_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o forehead_n by_o a_o mark_n of_o iron_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o sell_v his_o birthright_n for_o a_o mess_n of_o pottage_n for_o the_o child_n be_v not_o yet_o bear_v neither_o have_v do_v any_o good_a or_o evil_a that_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o election_n may_v stand_v not_o of_o work_n but_o of_o he_o that_o call_v it_o be_v say_v unto_o she_o jacob_n have_v i_o love_v but_o esau_n have_v i_o hate_v rom._n 9.11.13_o 9.11.13_o rom._n 9.11.13_o samuel_n be_v a_o man_n that_o fear_v god_n exceed_o and_o govern_v the_o people_n upright_o so_o that_o he_o appeal_v to_o the_o people_n and_o to_o the_o conscience_n of_o all_o man_n to_o witness_v his_o innocency_n and_o integrity_n what_o wrong_v he_o have_v do_v they_o who_o ox_n he_o have_v take_v and_o who_o ass_n he_o have_v take_v or_o at_o who_o hand_n he_o have_v receive_v any_o bribe_n to_o blind_v his_o eye_n 1_o sam._n 12.3_o 12.3_o 1_o sam._n 12.3_o yet_o when_o he_o be_v old_a and_o make_v his_o son_n judge_n over_o israel_n they_o walk_v not_o in_o his_o way_n but_o turn_v aside_o after_o lucre_n they_o take_v bribe_n and_o pervert_v judgement_n 1_o sam._n 8.3_o 8.3_o 1_o sam._n 8.3_o david_n be_v a_o man_n after_o god_n own_o heart_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o only_a solomon_n that_o be_v belove_v of_o god_n 1.5_o 2._o sam._n 13.14_o and_o 15.16_o 1_o kin._n 1.5_o but_o also_o incestuous_a amnon_n ambitious_a absalon_n and_o treacherous_a adonijah_n the_o first_o defile_v his_o own_o sister_n and_o wrought_v folly_n in_o israel_n the_o other_o two_o rebel_v against_o their_o father_n and_o seek_v to_o take_v away_o the_o kingdom_n from_o he_o the_o like_a we_o may_v say_v of_o eli_n who_o sit_v upon_o a_o seat_n by_o a_o post_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o by_o his_o residence_n on_o his_o charge_n and_o daily_a attendance_n to_o give_v answer_n to_o the_o people_n that_o come_v unto_o he_o give_v testimony_n of_o his_o godliness_n yet_o his_o son_n be_v the_o son_n of_o belial_n and_o know_v not_o the_o lord_n 1_o sam._n 2.12_o 2.12_o 1_o sam._n 2.12_o to_o conclude_v for_o the_o example_n that_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o this_o purpose_n be_v infinite_a who_o be_v more_o godly_a than_o josiah_n who_o remember_v his_o creator_n in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o youth_n and_o reform_a religion_n betimes_o in_o his_o kingdom_n yet_o his_o child_n follow_v not_o the_o way_n of_o their_o father_n but_o do_v evil_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n according_a to_o all_o that_o their_o wicked_a forefather_n have_v do_v 2_o king_n 23.32_o 37._o 23._o 2_o king_n 23._o jere._n 22.18_o 22.18_o jere._n 22.18_o to_o all_o these_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n if_o we_o add_v also_o the_o testimony_n of_o common_a experience_n of_o all_o age_n and_o time_n and_o place_n and_o person_n we_o may_v gather_v that_o all_o the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a have_v not_o be_v always_o continue_v under_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n nor_o follow_v the_o step_n of_o their_o faithful_a parent_n to_o be_v like_a unto_o they_o now_o because_o this_o be_v a_o point_n diligent_o to_o reason_n 1_o be_v mark_v of_o we_o let_v we_o consider_v the_o reason_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v better_o confirm_v unto_o us._n first_o to_o show_v the_o election_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o high_a step_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o stand_v upon_o the_o free_a will_n and_o purpose_n of_o god_n and_o not_o upon_o ordinary_a succession_n or_o natural_a generation_n or_o any_o cause_n in_o our_o own_o self_n to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o both_o parent_n and_o child_n shall_v confess_v that_o such_o as_o have_v receive_v this_o power_n and_o prerogative_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n jesus_n be_v bear_v not_o of_o blood_n nor_o of_o the_o will_n of_o the_o flesh_n nor_o of_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n joh._n 1.13_o 1.13_o joh._n 1.13_o this_o reason_n be_v note_v concern_v jacob_n 9.11_o rom._n 9.11_o that_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n may_v stand_v according_a to_o election_n not_o of_o any_o work_n but_o by_o he_o that_o call_v this_o be_v it_o that_o make_v difference_n between_o he_o and_o his_o brother_n second_o that_o the_o best_a servant_n of_o god_n reason_n 2_o may_v acknowledge_v that_o they_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n convey_v to_o their_o posterity_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n the_o gift_n of_o sanctification_n &_o repentance_n from_o dead_a work_n which_o themselves_o have_v receive_v from_o god_n by_o supernatural_a mean_n and_o not_o by_o natural_a they_o beget_v natural_o child_n of_o wrath_n as_o well_o as_o other_o man_n even_o sinful_a child_n taint_v and_o defile_v with_o original_a corruption_n adam_n beget_v seth_n in_o his_o own_o image_n that_o be_v in_o his_o natural_a inclination_n to_o evil_a gen._n 5.3_o 5.3_o gen._n 5.3_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o david_n acknowledge_v he_o be_v shape_v in_o iniquity_n and_o that_o in_o sin_n his_o mother_n do_v conceive_v he_o psal_n 51._o 51._o psal_n 51._o so_o then_o as_o the_o corn_n that_o be_v purge_v from_o the_o chaff_n and_o make_v clean_o bring_v up_o corn_n again_o together_o with_o the_o chaff_n and_o as_o the_o father_n that_o be_v circumcise_v beget_v child_n that_o be_v uncircumcised_a so_o such_o parent_n as_o be_v sanctify_v themselves_o can_v leave_v to_o their_o issue_n any_o sanctify_a grace_n which_o must_v come_v only_o from_o above_o from_o the_o father_n of_o light_n reason_n 3_o three_o god_n have_v a_o purpose_n to_o show_v his_o justice_n in_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o stubborn_a and_o disobedient_a as_o he_o do_v his_o mercy_n in_o the_o salvation_n of_o those_o that_o be_v godly_a and_o obedient_a this_o be_v the_o reason_n render_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o albeit_o the_o son_n of_o eli_n be_v reprove_v by_o their_o father_n yet_o they_o hearken_v not_o unto_o his_o voice_n because_o the_o lord_n will_v slay_v they_o 1_o sam._n 2.25_o 2.25_o ●_o sam._n 2.25_o god_n be_v determine_v to_o glorify_v himself_o and_o his_o great_a name_n in_o their_o destruction_n as_o they_o resolve_v and_o settle_a themselves_o &_o their_o whole_a life_n to_o dishonour_v he_o to_o their_o confusion_n reason_n 4_o last_o the_o child_n even_o of_o faithful_a and_o godly_a parent_n do_v oftentimes_o want_v the_o good_a mean_n of_o a_o godly_a education_n and_o therefore_o no_o marvel_n if_o their_o heart_n not_o be_v plough_v up_o do_v bring_v forth_o cockle_n and_o darnel_n in_o stead_n of_o good_a corn_n for_o the_o child_n of_o god_n do_v themselves_o through_o humane_a frailty_n and_o infirmity_n sometime_o fail_v in_o the_o performance_n of_o this_o duty_n they_o cocker_v they_o and_o be_v too_o choice_n and_o nice_a over_o they_o they_o dare_v not_o offend_v they_o or_o speak_v a_o word_n against_o they_o which_o overween_a and_o suffer_v of_o they_o to_o have_v their_o will_n too_o much_o god_n punish_v in_o their_o child_n whereof_o we_o have_v a_o worthy_a example_n in_o david_n towards_o adonijah_n who_o exalt_v himself_o against_o his_o father_n say_v i_o will_v be_v king_n and_o he_o prepare_v he_o chariot_n and_o horseman_n and_o fifty_o man_n to_o run_v before_o he_o the_o occasion_n of_o this_o presumption_n and_o rebellion_n be_v note_v to_o be_v thus_o 1.6_o king_n 1.6_o his_o father_n have_v not_o displease_v he_o at_o any_o time_n in_o say_v why_o have_v thou_o do_v so_o he_o fail_v towards_o he_o more_o than_o eli_n do_v towards_o his_o son_n for_o he_o say_v
sin_n that_o be_v their_o offering_n strange_a fire_n with_o strange_a fire_n we_o shall_v speak_v afterward_o in_o the_o five_o chapter_n here_o we_o will_v observe_v that_o this_o fact_n of_o these_o may_v seem_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o many_o to_o be_v a_o small_a offence_n and_o not_o to_o deserve_v so_o heavy_a a_o censure_n and_o so_o grievous_a a_o punishment_n for_o it_o may_v be_v say_v in_o defence_n or_o they_o either_o that_o they_o have_v a_o good_a intent_n and_o meaning_n though_o they_o miss_v in_o the_o manner_n or_o that_o this_o fire_n which_o they_o offer_v will_v serve_v to_o burn_v the_o incense_n as_o well_o as_o any_o other_o and_o what_o skill_v it_o by_o what_o fire_n it_o be_v do_v but_o all_o these_o be_v doctrine_n 3_o vain_a pretence_n forasmuch_o as_o god_n have_v command_v the_o contrary_n di●ection_n a_o god_n worship_n we_o must_v ●ot_n be_v lead_v ●our_n own_o device_n but_o ●y_a god_n di●ection_n we_o learn_v from_o hence_o that_o nothing_o in_o matter_n or_o form_n concern_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n or_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n aught_o to_o be_v add_v or_o alter_v or_o detract_v but_o all_o must_v be_v do_v as_o god_n have_v determine_v and_o direct_v our_o own_o dream_n and_o devise_n must_v not_o sway_v we_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v his_o will_n and_o word_n that_o must_v will_n and_o govern_v us._n the_o lord_n himself_o challenge_v and_o defend_v his_o authority_n in_o lay_v down_o the_o manner_n and_o way_n of_o his_o own_o service_n not_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o liberty_n of_o any_o creature_n man_n or_o angel_n to_o intermeddle_v with_o it_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o will_v have_v all_o thing_n do_v as_o himself_o have_v prescribe_v he_o be_v well_o please_v and_o content_v that_o man_n shall_v make_v law_n and_o statute_n for_o humane_a matter_n concern_v their_o temporal_a estate_n in_o this_o world_n as_o shall_v be_v fit_a for_o the_o place_n where_o they_o rule_v and_o for_o the_o person_n who_o they_o rule_v as_o touch_v treason_n murder_n theft_n oppression_n slander_n rout_n riot_n and_o such_o disorder_n but_o for_o the_o divine_a worship_n how_o god_n shall_v be_v serve_v we_o must_v leave_v it_o unto_o he_o he_o only_o can_v prescribe_v what_o must_v be_v do_v he_o only_o will_v appoint_v what_o must_v be_v leave_v undo_v it_o be_v true_a the_o strange_a fire_n that_o nadab_n and_o abihu_n take_v be_v as_o well_o able_a to_o burn_v the_o incense_n as_o that_o which_o burn_v evermore_o upon_o the_o altar_n and_o yet_o because_o god_n have_v not_o sanctify_v it_o for_o that_o purpose_n they_o be_v fearful_o and_o dreadful_o devour_v with_o fire_n from_o god_n when_o god_n institute_v the_o passeover_n in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o merciful_a deliverance_n in_o pass_v over_o the_o house_n of_o the_o israelite_n when_o the_o first_o bear_v of_o the_o egyptian_n be_v destroy_v 12.3_o exod._n 12.3_o the_o whole_a order_n be_v set_v down_o both_o for_o the_o matter_n and_o manner_n of_o celebrate_v and_o solemnize_n that_o ordinance_n he_o instruct_v what_o they_o shall_v take_v what_o ceremony_n they_o shall_v use_v what_o gesture_n they_o shall_v observe_v and_o what_o he_o will_v have_v they_o not_o to_o do_v moses_n do_v many_o time_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n give_v this_o direction_n deuter._n 4.2_o 12.8.32_o deut._n 4.2_o and_o 12.8.32_o you_o shall_v not_o add_v unto_o the_o word_n which_o i_o command_v you_o neither_o shall_v you_o diminish_v aught_o from_o it_o that_o you_o may_v keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n which_o i_o command_v you_o and_o in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n you_o shall_v not_o do_v after_o after_o all_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o do_v here_o this_o day_n every_o man_n whatsoever_o be_v right_a in_o his_o own_o eye_n and_o afterward_o what_o thing_n soever_o i_o command_v you_o observe_v and_o do_v it_o thou_o shall_v not_o add_v thereto_o nor_o diminish_v from_o it_o on_o the_o contrary_a we_o see_v how_o saul_n be_v punish_v with_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o kingdom_n because_o he_o will_v offer_v sacrifice_n contrary_a to_o the_o express_a will_n of_o god_n make_v know_v unto_o he_o 1_o sam._n 15.23_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o jeroboam_n two_o golden_a calf_n erect_v at_o dan_n and_o bethel_n without_o warrant_n and_o worship_v without_o warrant_n it_o be_v the_o overthrow_n of_o himself_o and_o his_o posterity_n 1_o king_n 14.7_o etc._n etc._n for_o this_o cause_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n say_v 1_o corin._n 11._o 11.23_o 1_o cor._n 11.23_o i_o receive_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o which_o also_o i_o deliver_v unto_o you_o that_o the_o lord_n the_o same_o night_n in_o which_o he_o be_v betray_v take_v bread_n etc._n etc._n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v no_o small_a matter_n it_o be_v no_o toy_n or_o trifle_n to_o worship_n god_n otherwise_o then_o he_o in_o his_o word_n appoint_v unto_o we_o consider_v the_o say_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n add_v not_o thou_o unto_o his_o word_n 30.6_o prou._n 30.6_o lest_o he_o reproove_v thou_o and_o thou_o be_v find_v a_o liar_n this_o cross_v man_n devise_n which_o be_v reason_n 1_o bold_a to_o step_v up_o in_o god_n place_n and_o therefore_o let_v we_o see_v the_o reason_n first_o god_n will_v be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o only_a lawgiver_n the_o king_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o only_a prophet_n to_o instruct_v it_o in_o the_o will_n of_o god_n this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n james_n witness_v 4.12_o jam._n 4.12_o chap._n 4._o there_o be_v one_o lawgiver_n who_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o to_o destroy_v that_o can_v cast_v body_n and_o soul_n into_o hell_n fire_n matth._n 10._o he_o be_v the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n that_o must_v set_v down_o order_n for_o the_o government_n of_o his_o house_n none_o can_v make_v a_o law_n in_o the_o kingdom_n but_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n none_o can_v alter_v it_o be_v make_v but_o the_o king_n so_o be_v it_o in_o the_o church_n none_o can_v appoint_v any_o word_n any_o sacrament_n any_o worship_n but_o god_n himself_o none_o can_v reverse_v any_o institution_n without_o he_o so_o that_o addition_n or_o detraction_n or_o alteration_n or_o any_o mixture_n whatsoever_o be_v so_o many_o abuse_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o word_n and_o of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n reason_n 2_o second_o there_o be_v promise_n of_o blessing_n to_o they_o that_o serve_v he_o with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n and_o there_o be_v threaten_v of_o most_o heavy_a curse_n and_o judgement_n to_o come_v upon_o their_o soul_n that_o worship_v he_o after_o the_o commandment_n and_o precept_n of_o man_n our_o saviour_n charge_v his_o disciple_n to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o he_o command_v they_o 28.20_o matth._n 28.20_o and_o then_o he_o add_v loe_o i_o be_o with_o you_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n matth._n 28.20_o it_o appear_v in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n the_o israelite_n be_v deliver_v over_o to_o their_o adversary_n for_o transgress_v in_o this_o kind_n 19_o judge_n 2.12.14.15_o 2._o chron._n 26.18_o 19_o even_o for_o worship_v he_o after_o other_o way_n than_o he_o have_v appoint_v there_o be_v a_o fearful_a denunciation_n in_o the_o shut_n up_o of_o the_o revelation_n against_o all_o that_o shall_v dare_v either_o to_o add_v or_o detract_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o holy_a thing_n of_o god_n 19_o revel_v 22.18_o 19_o i_o testify_v unto_o every_o man_n that_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o this_o book_n if_o any_o man_n shall_v add_v unto_o these_o thing_n god_n shall_v add_v unto_o he_o the_o plague_n that_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n and_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v take_v away_o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o book_n of_o this_o prophecy_n god_n shall_v take_v away_o his_o part_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a city_n and_o from_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o small_a matter_n to_o follow_v the_o private_a will_n of_o man_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o not_o to_o suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v guide_v and_o direct_v by_o his_o word_n and_o commandment_n objection_n this_o may_v seem_v to_o tie_v up_o the_o desire_n of_o man_n too_o strict_o and_o therefore_o his_o wisdom_n that_o he_o have_v by_o nature_n minister_v many_o objection_n against_o this_o truth_n to_o which_o we_o be_v to_o give_v answer_n as_o brief_o as_o we_o can_v first_o the_o question_n may_v be_v ask_v whether_o prince_n have_v not_o power_n to_o make_v law_n in_o the_o church_n have_v they_o nothing_o to_o do_v with_o the_o church_n may_v they_o
in_o heaven_n that_o not_o one_o of_o these_o little_a one_o shall_v perish_v mat._n 18_o 14._o he_o command_v that_o not_o one_o of_o these_o little_a one_o shall_v perish_v mat._n 18_o 10._o he_o make_v we_o to_o lie_v down_o in_o green_a pasture_n he_o lead_v we_o beside_o the_o still_a water_n he_o restore_v our_o soul_n and_o lead_v we_o in_o the_o path_n of_o righteousness_n for_o his_o name_n sake_n psal_n 23_o 2_o 3._o jacob_n that_o feed_v the_o sheep_n of_o his_o father_n in_o law_n testify_v touch_v his_o care_n that_o the_o drought_n consume_v he_o in_o the_o day_n 31.40_o gen._n 31.40_o and_o the_o frost_n pinch_v he_o in_o the_o night_n and_o sleep_v depart_v from_o his_o eye_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v tear_v of_o beast_n or_o steal_v of_o thief_n be_v require_v at_o his_o hand_n he_o bear_v the_o loss_n of_o it_o much_o more_o than_o will_v the_o lord_n care_n for_o the_o sheep_n of_o his_o pasture_n his_o rod_n and_o his_o staff_n shall_v comfort_v they_o and_o although_o they_o walk_v through_o the_o valley_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n they_o shall_v fear_v no_o evil_n will_v a_o king_n regard_v only_o the_o chief_a city_n and_o most_o populous_a place_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o suffer_v the_o rest_n to_o live_v as_o they_o listen_v without_o law_n &_o good_a order_n or_o will_v the_o master_n of_o a_o house_n look_v to_o some_o in_o his_o family_n and_o not_o to_o all_o if_o then_o god_n be_v our_o king_n if_o he_o be_v our_o master_n he_o will_v look_v to_o all_o his_o subject_n and_o servant_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v their_o meat_n in_o due_a season_n second_o such_o be_v the_o grace_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v have_v all_o his_o people_n reason_n 2_o come_v to_o knowledge_n such_o as_o know_v not_o his_o will_n be_v none_o of_o his_o servant_n if_o then_o he_o require_v the_o understanding_n &_o knowledge_n of_o his_o way_n not_o only_o of_o rich_a man_n of_o great_a man_n of_o learned_a man_n and_o of_o the_o minister_n but_o of_o all_o the_o people_n of_o what_o calling_n and_o condition_n soever_o they_o be_v how_o mean_a and_o simple_a soever_o they_o be_v we_o must_v hereof_o conclude_v that_o he_o have_v ordain_v that_o all_o of_o they_o shall_v have_v the_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n and_o salvation_n offer_v unto_o they_o and_o publish_v among_o they_o to_o this_o purpose_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o will_v that_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v and_o come_v unto_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o truth_n 1_o tim._n 2_o 4._o and_o peter_n in_o his_o second_o epistle_n chap._n 3._o teach_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o slack_a concern_v his_o promise_n as_o some_o man_n count_v slackness_n but_o be_v long_o suffer_v to_o we_o ward_n 9_o 2_o pet._n 3_o 9_o not_o willing_a that_o any_o shall_v perish_v but_o that_o all_o shall_v come_v to_o repentance_n this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o prophet_n ezekiel_n set_v down_o chap._n 18_o 11_o 23_o 32_o and_o 33._o have_v i_o any_o pleasure_n at_o all_o that_o the_o wicked_a shall_v die_v say_v the_o lord_n and_o not_o that_o he_o shall_v return_v from_o his_o way_n and_o live_v three_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v pen_v for_o all_o estate_n degree_n and_o condition_n of_o man_n it_o reason_v 3_o serve_v as_o eye-salue_n to_o clear_v the_o eye_n of_o all_o person_n and_o to_o make_v the_o simple_a wise_a psal_n 19_o 7._o and_o 119_o 99_o 100_o it_o cleanse_v the_o way_n of_o the_o young_a man_n if_o he_o take_v heed_n thereunto_o with_o all_o diligence_n psal_n 119_o 9_o the_o book_n of_o the_o proverbe_n of_o solomon_n the_o son_n of_o david_n king_n of_o israel_n be_v write_v to_o give_v subtlety_n to_o the_o simple_a and_o to_o the_o young_a man_n knowledge_n and_o discretion_n prou._n 1_o 4._o the_o apostle_n john_n 13._o 1_o john_n 2_o 13._o write_v to_o the_o father_n because_o they_o have_v know_v he_o that_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n he_o write_v unto_o young_a man_n because_o they_o have_v overcome_v the_o wicked_a one_o he_o write_v to_o little_a child_n because_o they_o have_v know_v the_o father_n if_o then_o the_o word_n do_v serve_v for_o all_o sort_n and_o sex_n and_o age_n whatsoever_o it_o follow_v that_o all_o must_v be_v teach_v from_o the_o great_a to_o the_o least_o from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a four_o all_o person_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v have_v soul_n to_o save_v simple_a person_n small_a congregation_n reason_n 4_o little_a assembly_n as_o well_o as_o other_o that_o be_v many_o in_o number_n we_o consist_v not_o only_o of_o body_n we_o must_v not_o only_o provide_v for_o this_o present_a life_n but_o we_o have_v also_o soul_n to_o save_v and_o must_v prepare_v for_o the_o life_n to_o come_v we_o shall_v all_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o have_v do_v in_o this_o life_n whether_o they_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o lord_n will_v reward_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n rom._n 2.6_o the_o day_n of_o our_o particular_a death_n and_o the_o day_n of_o the_o general_a judgement_n be_v both_o of_o they_o day_n of_o reckon_n and_o account_n and_o as_o the_o soul_n be_v most_o precious_a so_o the_o account_n to_o be_v give_v for_o it_o be_v very_o great_a and_o therefore_o from_o these_o premise_n we_o may_v necessary_o deduct_v this_o conclusion_n that_o it_o be_v the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n that_o every_o place_n and_o person_n shall_v be_v careful_o instruct_v use_v 1_o it_o remain_v therefore_o that_o we_o come_v to_o the_o use_n and_o as_o from_o a_o good_a tree_n gather_v such_o fruit_n as_o grow_v from_o thence_o first_o we_o learn_v that_o it_o be_v god_n ordinance_n and_o appointment_n that_o every_o congregation_n shall_v have_v a_o learned_a minister_n to_o teach_v they_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o there_o be_v a_o settle_a &_o stand_a ministry_n in_o one_o place_n or_o corner_n of_o the_o land_n or_o in_o every_o great_a city_n but_o he_o will_v have_v his_o people_n in_o all_o place_n whether_o great_a or_o small_a to_o be_v care_v and_o provide_v for_o &_o every_o church_n have_v a_o sufficient_a minister_n to_o instruct_v every_o member_n of_o it_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o evangelist_n declare_v act_v 14.23_o that_o the_o apostle_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n ordain_v elder_n by_o election_n in_o every_o church_n and_o then_o they_o commend_v they_o to_o the_o lord_n in_o who_o they_o believe_v and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n paul_n say_v unto_o he_o chap._n 1._o verse_n 5._o for_o this_o cause_n leave_v i_o thou_o in_o creta_n that_o thou_o shall_v continue_v to_o redress_v thing_n that_o remain_v and_o shall_v ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n as_o i_o appoint_v thou_o by_o every_o church_n and_o every_o city_n in_o those_o place_n we_o must_v understand_v that_o wheresoever_o there_o be_v a_o body_n of_o people_n gather_v together_o fit_a for_o a_o congregation_n there_o ought_v a_o minister_n to_o be_v choose_v appoint_a and_o set_v over_o the_o same_o for_o whersoever_o a_o church_n be_v plant_v and_o a_o distinct_a congregation_n establish_v there_o be_v a_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o a_o settle_a ministry_n as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n so_o that_o it_o be_v altogether_o unpossible_a that_o without_o it_o religion_n shall_v prosper_v or_o continue_v the_o lord_n have_v no_o soon_o give_v his_o law_n concern_v the_o erect_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n but_o aaron_n &_o his_o son_n be_v anoint_v and_o the_o whole_a tribe_n sanctify_v to_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n to_o attend_v on_o holy_a thing_n to_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n &_o to_o perform_v such_o duty_n as_o be_v require_v of_o they_o he_o know_v that_o every_o man_n stand_v in_o as_o great_a need_n of_o food_n for_o the_o soul_n aa_o he_o do_v of_o nourishment_n for_o the_o body_n and_o that_o as_o the_o body_n decay_v without_o sustenance_n so_o the_o soul_n famish_v and_o pine_v away_o without_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n wheresoever_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v want_v there_o want_v one_o of_o god_n ordinance_n one_o of_o his_o special_a blessing_n we_o see_v by_o common_a and_o continual_a experience_n when_o the_o corn_n be_v blast_v and_o the_o harvest_n of_o the_o field_n be_v perish_v and_o the_o labour_n of_o the_o husbandman_n be_v destroy_v what_o cry_v &_o lamentation_n be_v make_v how_o much_o more_o ought_v we_o to_o be_v greeve_v to_o see_v the_o famine_n of_o the_o word_n bring_v upon_o we_o and_o thousand_o perish_v through_o want_n of_o this_o ordinance_n of_o god_n
whensoever_o any_o even_o of_o the_o low_a that_o pertain_v unto_o their_o flock_n when_o the_o tradesman_n the_o shoemaker_n the_o weaver_n the_o husbandman_n when_o the_o servant_n &_o the_o poor_a soul_n that_o have_v scarce_o what_o to_o eat_v or_o what_o to_o drink_v or_o what_o to_o put_v on_o shall_v resort_v unto_o they_o for_o comfort_n or_o counsel_n then_o be_v there_o place_n especial_o for_o this_o grace_n of_o humbleness_n and_o lowliness_n of_o mind_n they_o must_v make_v much_o of_o such_o as_o come_v unto_o they_o and_o bear_v themselves_o familiar_o and_o plain_o towards_o they_o entertain_v they_o with_o all_o gentleness_n and_o give_v they_o encouragement_n with_o all_o patience_n in_o hear_v of_o they_o and_o in_o bear_v with_o their_o want_n and_o imperfection_n but_o many_o there_o be_v that_o take_v themselves_o to_o be_v such_o profound_a doctor_n such_o learned_a clerk_n such_o deep_a divine_n and_o jolly_a fellow_n that_o they_o think_v it_o be_v a_o great_a disparagement_n unto_o they_o to_o bestow_v their_o labour_n and_o learning_n among_o such_o sot_n they_o say_v i_o can_v be_v content_a to_o take_v great_a pain_n to_o teach_v gentleman_n and_o those_o that_o be_v more_o civil_a but_o these_o rudesby_n and_o russet_a coat_n who_o can_v abide_v to_o live_v withal_o who_o can_v endure_v to_o spend_v his_o day_n among_o clown_n and_o clout_a shoe_n thus_o they_o deal_v with_o gops_n people_n thus_o they_o speak_v of_o god_n people_n for_o who_o christ_n die_v thus_o they_o account_v of_o those_o that_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o knowledge_n thus_o they_o bewray_v the_o pride_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n and_o testify_v against_o themselves_o the_o little_a love_n they_o bear_v to_o the_o sheep_n to_o the_o sheepfold_n and_o to_o the_o shepherd_n of_o the_o sheep_n let_v they_o step_v but_o one_o step_n forward_o and_o then_o they_o will_v plain_o discover_v their_o own_o hypocrisy_n and_o evident_o show_v that_o they_o differ_v little_a or_o nothing_o from_o the_o papist_n themselves_o for_o they_o to_o discourage_v simple_a people_n from_o read_v the_o scripture_n 13._o ce●s●_n c●●●_n ●_o 13._o call_v they_o dog_n and_o swine_n to_o who_o holy_a thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v deliver_v and_o to_o that_o purpose_n allege_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n 7.6_o matth_n 7.6_o give_v not_o that_o which_o be_v holy_a unto_o the_o dog_n neither_o cast_v you_o your_o pearl_n before_o swine_n lest_o they_o trample_v they_o under_o their_o foot_n and_o turn_v again_o and_o rend_v you_o so_o these_o man_n account_v they_o as_o clown_n and_o coridon_n and_o cast_v out_o what_o word_n of_o contempt_n they_o can_v against_o they_o they_o bid_v they_o follow_v the_o plough_n tail_n get_v they_o into_o their_o shop_n and_o busy_v themselves_o in_o their_o trade_n as_o though_o conference_n and_o communication_n with_o they_o be_v in_o no_o sort_n to_o be_v admit_v or_o as_o though_o they_o have_v no_o soul_n to_o save_v so_o that_o in_o short_a time_n peradventure_o these_o high_a mind_a man_n will_v esteem_v they_o as_o dog_n and_o swine_n also_o which_o ought_v not_o to_o tread_v in_o the_o lord_n court_n these_o be_v far_o from_o the_o mind_n and_o example_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n make_v himself_o of_o no_o reputation_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n he_o vouchsafe_v to_o confer_v with_o rude_a and_o simple_a man_n he_o teach_v man_n and_o woman_n high_a and_o low_a rich_a and_o poor_a he_o refuse_v none_o he_o teach_v indeed_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o in_o great_a city_n and_o in_o populous_a assembly_n but_o he_o disdain_v not_o to_o teach_v also_o in_o their_o village_n and_o town_n and_o to_o instruct_v plain_a countryman_n and_o have_v oftentimes_o more_o comfort_n of_o his_o labour_n among_o such_o then_o among_o man_n of_o great_a calling_n in_o like_a manner_n we_o that_o be_v call_v to_o this_o office_n and_o have_v our_o special_a and_o particular_a place_n of_o teach_v assign_v unto_o we_o aught_o to_o know_v that_o we_o must_v be_v no_o chooser_n when_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o harvest_n have_v send_v we_o into_o his_o field_n the_o chief_a shepherd_n of_o the_o sheep_n have_v set_v we_o over_o his_o flock_n and_o the_o householder_n have_v hire_v we_o to_o labour_v in_o his_o vineyard_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o master_n and_o to_o apply_v ourselves_o in_o our_o charge_n that_o we_o may_v discharge_v they_o faithful_o zealous_o careful_o and_o diligent_o let_v we_o not_o dislike_v our_o place_n in_o the_o country_n which_o we_o have_v take_v because_o the_o people_n be_v few_o or_o rude_a or_o simple_a or_o poor_a or_o of_o mean_a conceit_n and_o understanding_n in_o they_o these_o man_n will_v do_v nothing_o in_o secret_a but_o seek_v to_o be_v famous_a and_o to_o be_v know_v open_o they_o affect_v honour_n and_o promotion_n they_o resort_v to_o great_a place_n and_o solemn_a assembly_n and_o desire_v to_o preach_v in_o the_o university_n at_o the_o court_n at_o paul_n at_o the_o spital_n or_o to_o be_v hear_v of_o great_a man_n and_o noble_a personage_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n absent_v themselves_o from_o their_o own_o cure_n of_o soul_n which_o be_v like_a to_o perish_v for_o who_o they_o must_v give_v account_n and_o come_v to_o their_o reckon_n and_o so_o disdain_v to_o have_v any_o deal_n with_o such_o as_o be_v simple_a as_o if_o they_o be_v too_o good_a and_o the_o people_n too_o base_a let_v we_o seek_v to_o shake_v off_o this_o high_a conceit_n of_o ourselves_o and_o take_v heed_n of_o a_o scornful_a and_o disdainful_a heart_n which_o natural_o accompany_v all_o and_o especial_o those_o of_o great_a gift_n &_o of_o high_a place_n we_o see_v this_o in_o christ_n own_o disciple_n notwithstanding_o his_o own_o example_n of_o humility_n daily_o before_o their_o eye_n even_o when_o he_o be_v preach_v most_o serious_o and_o earnest_o unto_o they_o of_o his_o death_n and_o departure_n of_o his_o cross_n and_o passion_n of_o love_n and_o humility_n luke_n 22.22_o 23._o they_o begin_v to_o strive_v for_o superiority_n &_o contend_v which_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v account_v the_o great_a three_o we_o have_v warrant_n and_o direction_n use_v 3_o from_o hence_o to_o desire_v most_o earnest_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n may_v flourish_v every_o where_n christ_n our_o saviour_n teach_v we_o to_o pray_v that_o his_o kingdom_n may_v come_v matth._n 6.10_o and_o so_o to_o be_v erect_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n it_o be_v a_o holy_a affection_n in_o moses_n to_o desire_v that_o all_o the_o lord_n people_n be_v prophet_n num._n 11.29_o so_o ought_v we_o to_o crave_v that_o god_n word_n may_v be_v establish_v among_o all_o man_n and_o make_v manifest_a to_o all_o people_n of_o the_o world_n this_o use_n consist_v of_o many_o branch_n use_n branch_n of_o this_o use_n first_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o bewail_v such_o place_n and_o person_n as_o lie_v in_o darkness_n and_o ignorance_n and_o consequent_o in_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n christ_n have_v compassion_n of_o such_o and_o his_o bowel_n yearn_v within_o he_o such_o as_o have_v not_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n shine_v among_o they_o be_v say_v to_o sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o to_o live_v in_o the_o region_n of_o death_n matth._n 4.16_o there_o be_v many_o place_n of_o the_o land_n &_o many_o thousand_o poor_a desolate_a soul_n that_o lie_v in_o great_a ignorance_n and_o have_v no_o knowledge_n of_o the_o way_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o they_o the_o field_n be_v overgrow_v with_o briar_n and_o nettle_n which_o shall_v be_v white_a unto_o the_o harvest_n joh._n 4.35_o the_o devil_n smile_v at_o it_o and_o rejoice_v to_o behold_v the_o desolation_n of_o the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v the_o exalt_v of_o his_o throne_n and_o the_o set_n up_o of_o his_o kingdom_n he_o be_v the_o king_n of_o the_o world_n as_o christ_n be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o his_o sceptre_n be_v ignorance_n as_o the_o sceptre_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n be_v his_o word_n and_o therefore_o when_o the_o seat_n of_o wickedness_n be_v overthrow_v by_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n we_o may_v see_v satan_n as_o lightning_n fall_v down_o from_o heaven_n luke_n 10.18_o if_o then_o we_o can_v behold_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o many_o of_o our_o brethren_n through_o want_n of_o knowledge_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o grieve_v at_o it_o nor_o lament_v for_o it_o we_o have_v not_o the_o affection_n in_o we_o of_o christ_n the_o head_n neither_o the_o grace_n of_o compassion_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o we_o towards_o our_o fellow_n member_n second_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o desire_n that_o wheresoever_o there_o be_v a_o candlestick_n there_o
of_o high_a descent_n that_o ever_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n who_o be_v not_o only_o of_o the_o lineage_n and_o stock_n of_o david_n and_o heir_n unto_o the_o crown_n &_o kingdom_n but_o the_o son_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n yet_o he_o disdain_v not_o to_o serve_v but_o vouchsafe_v to_o minister_v in_o this_o office_n and_o have_v give_v example_n to_o all_o posterity_n that_o none_o shall_v account_v themselves_o unworthy_a of_o it_o or_o it_o unworthy_a of_o they_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o gospel_n begin_v to_o be_v preach_v of_o he_o heb._n 2_o 3_o who_o be_v the_o brightness_n of_o glory_n and_o the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o person_n and_o uphold_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o power_n heb._n 1_o 3._o see_v then_o prince_n and_o peer_n and_o noble_a man_n yea_o such_o as_o have_v be_v of_o the_o king_n blood_n have_v employ_v themselves_o to_o the_o lord_n service_n see_v sundry_a of_o these_o among_o both_o pagan_n and_o papist_n have_v exercise_v this_o function_n see_v some_o of_o the_o elect_a angel_n be_v preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n what_o a_o slander_n and_o reproach_n be_v it_o for_o we_o that_o be_v dust_n and_o ash_n and_o worm_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o no_o better_o that_o be_v call_v christian_n and_o will_v be_v account_v great_a professer_n who_o in_o so_o great_a want_n of_o labourer_n and_o harvest_n man_n to_o reap_v down_o the_o corn_n do_v bestow_v our_o youth_n rather_o any_o way_n then_o this_o that_o be_v the_o best_a way_n it_o be_v incredible_a what_o great_a good_a such_o may_v do_v in_o the_o church_n o_o what_o a_o furtherance_n will_v it_o be_v to_o true_a religion_n and_o a_o notable_a mean_n to_o gain_v many_o soul_n to_o god_n for_o how_o many_o be_v there_o that_o contemn_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o consequent_o the_o word_n itself_o because_o for_o the_o most_o part_n they_o be_v mean_a and_o poor_a man_n that_o be_v the_o minister_n and_o preacher_n of_o it_o even_o as_o when_o the_o professer_n of_o the_o truth_n consist_v of_o the_o low_a sort_n it_o hinder_v the_o faith_n of_o diverse_a to_o consider_v that_o none_o of_o the_o rich_a or_o of_o the_o ruler_n believe_v in_o he_o but_o the_o people_n that_o be_v accurse_v 4●_n john_n 7_o 4●_n so_o be_v it_o in_o the_o ministry_n also_o when_o such_o as_o be_v ignorant_a of_o true_a religion_n cast_v their_o eye_n upon_o the_o poor_a condition_n of_o the_o teacher_n of_o it_o and_o behold_v the_o worshipful_a and_o noble_a shun_v it_o and_o shake_v it_o from_o their_o shoulder_n they_o be_v offend_v and_o grow_v into_o hatred_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o call_v and_o regard_v not_o such_o as_o have_v take_v it_o upon_o they_o whereas_o if_o the_o man_n of_o great_a place_n will_v stoop_v down_o unto_o it_o if_o this_o may_v be_v account_v a_o stoop_v down_o and_o as_o well_o preach_v christ_n as_o believe_v in_o he_o it_o may_v be_v a_o forcible_a and_o effectual_a mean_n to_o further_o and_o foster_v true_a religion_n be_v it_o not_o a_o comfort_n to_o all_o godly_a parent_n to_o see_v their_o child_n well_o bestow_v can_v we_o have_v they_o better_o bestow_v then_o to_o serve_v the_o lord_n and_o to_o labour_v in_o his_o harvest_n and_o to_o be_v make_v ruler_n or_o steward_n in_o his_o house_n be_v there_o any_o thing_n we_o shall_v rejoice_v more_o to_o see_v than_o our_o son_n put_v in_o trust_n with_o the_o price_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o preach_v to_o win_v many_o soul_n and_o send_v they_o to_o heaven_n how_o do_v man_n seek_v to_o shroud_v themselves_o under_o the_o cloth_n of_o noble_a man_n and_o be_v glad_a of_o place_n and_o office_n under_o they_o like_v to_o zebedees_n child_n that_o will_v sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o at_o the_o left_a hand_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o kingdom_n but_o the_o minister_n be_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o most_o high_a they_o serve_v the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o lord_n than_o which_o what_o service_n can_v be_v more_o holy_a or_o honourable_a the_o prophet_n haggai_n complain_v chap._n 1_o 4_o that_o the_o whole_a people_n from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a neglect_v the_o build_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o follow_v their_o own_o profit_n &_o pleasure_n be_v it_o time_n for_o you_o o_o you_o to_o dwell_v in_o your_o siel_v house_n and_o his_o house_n lie_v waste_v and_o therefore_o he_o threaten_v in_o the_o word_n follow_v to_o punish_v those_o greevous_o that_o be_v so_o reckless_a and_o careless_a for_o the_o help_a forward_o of_o this_o build_n let_v zerobabel_n and_o jehoshua_n with_o the_o remnant_n of_o the_o people_n diligent_o consider_v this_o point_n and_o meditate_v serious_o upon_o these_o thing_n and_o let_v all_o have_v a_o tender_a regard_n to_o employ_v and_o set_v apart_o some_o of_o they_o to_o work_v in_o the_o lord_n vineyard_n as_o painful_a labourer_n true_a it_o be_v some_o go_v about_o by_o pill_v and_o poll_n to_o bring_v the_o church_n to_o beggary_n and_o slavery_n but_o this_o ought_v not_o to_o discourage_v any_o from_o serve_v in_o this_o call_n nor_o to_o withdraw_v any_o of_o his_o child_n from_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n the_o earth_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o the_o fullness_n thereof_o psal_n 24_o 1._o all_o the_o silver_n and_o gold_n in_o the_o world_n be_v at_o his_o commandment_n hag._n 2_o 8._o he_o will_v never_o leave_v nor_o forsake_v those_o that_o be_v he_o he_o will_v pay_v good_a wage_n to_o all_o that_o be_v his_o servant_n they_o shall_v be_v sure_a of_o their_o pay_n that_o reap_v his_o corn_n and_o bear_v the_o burden_n of_o the_o work_n and_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o day_n he_o have_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o prince_n and_o potentate_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n he_o move_v the_o mind_n of_o pagan_a and_o heathen_a king_n to_o contribute_v thing_n necessary_a for_o the_o repair_n of_o the_o material_a temple_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o book_n of_o ezra_n and_o nehemiah_n 8._o ●zra_fw-la 3_o 7._o ●eh_n 2_o 8._o and_o therefore_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v such_o to_o lack_v which_o labour_n in_o his_o spiritual_a temple_n under_o godly_a and_o christian_n prince_n see_v then_o we_o ought_v to_o make_v a_o great_a account_n and_o have_v a_o reverend_a estimation_n of_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o word_n and_o esteem_v the_o call_v give_v they_o a_o honourable_a office_n inasmuch_o as_o christ_n the_o everlasting_a son_n of_o the_o father_n the_o wise_a the_o worthy_a the_o noble_a the_o notable_a person_n beyond_o all_o comparison_n of_o all_o that_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v or_o be_v in_o heaven_n or_o earth_n have_v take_v up_o the_o office_n of_o a_o preacher_n priest_n and_o prophet_n to_o teach_v the_o people_n and_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o let_v we_o also_o further_o this_o work_n by_o all_o the_o mean_n we_o can_v and_o let_v the_o minister_n comfort_v themselves_o in_o this_o their_o holy_a vocation_n have_v a_o multitude_n of_o such_o excellent_a predecessor_n as_o it_o be_v a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n go_v before_o they_o to_o be_v example_n to_o encourage_v they_o and_o let_v we_o not_o be_v discourage_v by_o the_o taunt_n &_o opprobious_a term_n of_o the_o ungodly_a to_o dislike_v and_o forsake_v our_o function_n or_o to_o be_v ashamed_a of_o it_o or_o to_o think_v scorn_n to_o labour_n in_o it_o howsoever_o many_o scorn_n at_o it_o as_o too_o mean_a and_o base_a a_o thing_n for_o themselves_o for_o albeit_o the_o ministry_n above_o all_o other_o calling_n be_v most_o subject_a to_o the_o contempt_n and_o disgrace_n of_o profane_a and_o godless_a man_n yet_o let_v we_o be_v assure_v that_o as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o &_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n as_o also_o of_o the_o benefit_n of_o it_o unto_o mankind_n a_o worthy_a and_o excellent_a call_n so_o they_o that_o enter_v into_o it_o shall_v be_v honour_v of_o all_o those_o which_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n let_v we_o tread_v those_o disgrace_n &_o contumely_n under_o our_o foot_n and_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v dismay_v at_o they_o that_o rather_o we_o ought_v to_o account_v ourselves_o happy_a for_o they_o mat._n 5_o 11_o 12._o see_v we_o be_v thereby_o make_v conformable_a not_o only_o to_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n of_o christ_n but_o to_o our_o saviour_n himself_o and_o shall_v in_o the_o end_n be_v like_a unto_o he_o in_o glory_n and_o eternal_a life_n yea_o we_o be_v assure_v that_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o disgrace_n and_o defacing_n of_o we_o we_o be_v the_o sweet_a savour_n of_o god_n not_o only_o in_o they_o that_o be_v save_v but_o in_o they_o also_o that_o perish_v 16_o ●_o cor_fw-la 2_o 15_o 16_o and_o albeit_o we_o
under_o other_o and_o every_o one_o shall_v continue_v in_o his_o state_n and_o stand_a without_o break_v the_o bound_n limit_v unto_o he_o if_o he_o be_v curse_v of_o god_n and_o man_n 17._o deut._n 27_o 17._o that_o remove_v his_o neighbour_n landmark_a much_o more_o be_v they_o to_o be_v reprove_v that_o exalt_v themselves_o beyond_o their_o calling_n like_o the_o servant_n that_o break_v from_o their_o master_n the_o element_n keep_v their_o place_n and_o the_o whole_a frame_n of_o heaven_n &_o earth_n stand_v by_o the_o appointment_n of_o he_o that_o set_v they_o and_o set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n therein_o so_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v with_o we_o 1._o psal_n 19_o 1._o we_o have_v our_o place_n assign_v unto_o us._n in_o every_o estate_n whether_o we_o want_v or_o abound_v whether_o we_o be_v full_a or_o empty_a we_o shall_v be_v content_a philip._n 4._o and_o not_o witting_o murmur_v against_o god_n or_o envious_o grudge_v against_o our_o brother_n or_o fradulent_o purloin_v away_o his_o good_n for_o first_o of_o all_o may_v not_o the_o lord_n of_o all_o do_v with_o his_o own_o what_o he_o will_v math._n 20_o verse_n 15._o or_o be_v our_o eye_n evil_a and_o our_o hand_n false_a because_o his_o eye_n be_v good_a and_o his_o hand_n liberal_a and_o bountiful_a or_o who_o be_v we_o that_o thus_o dispute_v with_o he_o be_v it_o not_o enough_o to_o be_v of_o the_o king_n household_n but_o we_o must_v also_o climb_v high_a and_o seek_v to_o be_v of_o his_o privy_a counsel_n or_o be_v it_o not_o sufficient_a to_o be_v servant_n in_o the_o family_n but_o we_o must_v also_o be_v steward_n over_o other_o be_v it_o not_o foolishness_n and_o extreme_a madness_n to_o refuse_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n because_o we_o may_v not_o be_v chooser_n of_o our_o own_o way_n as_o if_o a_o servant_n shall_v scorn_v to_o do_v his_o master_n service_n except_o he_o may_v wait_v upon_o he_o in_o a_o better_a coat_n than_o his_o fellow_n we_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v in_o a_o common_a proverb_n that_o beggar_n must_v be_v no_o chooser_n we_o be_v all_o of_o we_o poor_a beggar_n and_o live_v by_o alm_n for_o albeit_o other_o beg_v of_o we_o yet_o we_o all_o stand_v at_o the_o gate_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o beg_v our_o bread_n of_o he_o say_v 11._o math._n 6_o 11._o give_v we_o this_o day_n and_o this_o day_n our_o daily_a bread_n we_o can_v live_v one_o hour_n without_o he_o nay_o in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v act_v 17_o 28._o if_o he_o stop_v our_o breath_n we_o be_v go_v and_o therefore_o we_o must_v depend_v on_o he_o again_o it_o be_v the_o preserve_n of_o humane_a society_n &_o commonwealth_n that_o some_o shall_v be_v superior_n and_o some_o inferior_n some_o shall_v honour_v and_o some_o be_v honour_v some_o rich_a 7._o 1_o sam._n 2_o 7._o and_o some_o poor_a some_o weak_a and_o some_o be_v strong_a some_o learned_a and_o some_o unlearned_a some_o noble_a and_o some_o unnoble_a without_o this_o no_o policy_n can_v stand_v no_o man_n must_v think_v the_o condition_n wherein_o he_o be_v place_v more_o unfit_a for_o he_o then_o for_o another_o nor_o imagine_v that_o he_o have_v deserve_v better_a than_o another_o at_o god_n hand_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o he_o nor_o surmise_n that_o he_o have_v any_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v not_o receive_v nor_o judge_v by_o overvalue_v himself_o and_o his_o own_o worth_n that_o he_o have_v merit_v much_o more_o than_o he_o enjoy_v 18._o 1_o cor._n 12_o 18._o we_o see_v how_o it_o be_v with_o we_o in_o our_o natural_a body_n every_o part_n be_v not_o a_o head_n or_o a_o hart_n or_o a_o eye_n we_o have_v also_o hand_n and_o foot_n and_o these_o be_v necessary_a in_o their_o place_n some_o member_n be_v more_o excellent_a and_o some_o less_o excellent_a but_o none_o can_v be_v spare_v such_o then_o as_o lift_v themselves_o up_o above_o their_o brethren_n and_o disdain_v the_o place_n appoint_v for_o they_o because_o they_o be_v not_o high_a enough_o do_v carry_v about_o they_o even_o in_o their_o own_o body_n a_o sufficient_a witness_n against_o themselves_o three_o the_o lord_n thus_o deal_v to_o manifest_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o wisdom_n and_o power_n he_o will_v cast_v down_o those_o who_o he_o purpose_v to_o advance_v and_o many_o time_n afflict_v they_o with_o poverty_n who_o he_o mean_v to_o enrich_v with_o endless_a glory_n the_o apostle_n james_n call_v we_o to_o the_o consideration_n of_o this_o point_n ch_n 2_o 5._o harken_v my_o belove_a brethren_n have_v not_o god_n choose_v the_o poor_a of_o this_o world_n rich_a in_o faith_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o it_o be_v a_o general_a rule_n set_v down_o by_o christ_n our_o saviour_n in_o the_o gospel_n whosoever_o lift_v up_o himself_o shall_v be_v cast_v down_o and_o he_o that_o humble_v himself_o shall_v be_v exalt_v thus_o he_o deal_v with_o joseph_n with_o david_n with_o moses_n with_o hannah_n and_o diverse_a other_o yea_o with_o his_o own_o son_n luke_n 24_o to_o who_o image_n we_o must_v be_v like_a who_o must_v suffer_v many_o thing_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o sinner_n before_o he_o enter_v into_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o like_a we_o be_v make_v to_o he_o the_o more_o happy_a be_v we_o four_o let_v we_o consider_v that_o we_o be_v here_o as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o prison_n or_o pilgrimage_n in_o a_o place_n of_o bondage_n or_o banishment_n this_o world_n be_v not_o make_v to_o be_v our_o heaven_n or_o paradise_n where_o we_o shall_v have_v joy_n without_o sorrow_n pleasure_n without_o pain_n abundance_n without_o want_n health_n without_o sickness_n riches_n without_o poverty_n and_o happiness_n without_o misery_n we_o be_v here_o as_o pilgrim_n and_o stranger_n when_o we_o come_v into_o our_o country_n and_o enter_v into_o that_o city_n 10._o heb._n 11_o 10._o the_o builder_n and_o maker_n whereof_o be_v god_n we_o shall_v rest_v from_o our_o labour_n and_o receive_v a_o incorruptible_a crown_n of_o glory_n it_o be_v too_o great_a covetousness_n to_o desire_v two_o heaven_n one_o in_o earth_n another_o above_o the_o earth_n one_o in_o this_o life_n another_o after_o this_o life_n our_o saviour_n speak_v unto_o we_o as_o unto_o his_o child_n fear_v not_o little_a flock_n for_o it_o be_v your_o father_n good_a pleasure_n to_o give_v you_o the_o kingdom_n luke_n 12_o 32._o we_o be_v not_o now_o at_o home_n but_o from_o home_n neither_o can_v we_o obtain_v any_o thing_n here_o that_o can_v make_v we_o happy_a we_o be_v like_a to_o vanity_n and_o our_o day_n be_v as_o a_o shadow_n that_o vanish_v away_o we_o sigh_v and_o be_v burden_v because_o we_o will_v be_v in_o our_o own_o habitation_n this_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n in_o it_o shall_v have_v a_o end_n and_o there_o be_v no_o trust_n in_o it_o five_o it_o be_v god_n will_v to_o prove_v our_o patience_n how_o we_o will_v bear_v affliction_n and_o take_v up_o our_o cross_n follow_v he_o as_o become_v the_o good_a disciple_n of_o christ_n not_o thereby_o to_o gain_v any_o knowledge_n unto_o himself_o but_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o ourselves_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n james_n 4._o james_n 1●_n rom._n 5_o 4._o say_v the_o try_v of_o your_o faith_n work_v patience_n and_o patience_n experience_n and_o experience_n hope_v and_o hope_n make_v not_o ashamed_a we_o think_v ourselves_o strong_a before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o battle_n but_o what_o our_o courage_n be_v can_v be_v know_v until_o the_o field_n be_v fight_v if_o we_o have_v resist_v the_o enemy_n in_o the_o face_n and_o not_o give_v back_o when_o we_o have_v be_v assault_v we_o have_v seal_v up_o to_o our_o own_o soul_n what_o we_o can_v suffer_v for_o christ_n sake_n know_v that_o which_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v afterward_o bless_a be_v the_o man_n that_o endure_v tentation_n for_o when_o he_o be_v try_v 12_o james_n 1_o 12_o he_o shall_v receive_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o last_o let_v we_o set_v before_o we_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o heir_n apparent_a of_o god_n glorious_a kingdom_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n humble_v himself_o 2.7_o phil._n 2.7_o and_o become_v obedient_a unto_o death_n even_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n as_o his_o birth_n be_v so_o be_v his_o life_n and_o as_o his_o life_n be_v so_o be_v his_o death_n he_o be_v conceive_v of_o a_o poor_a virgin_n he_o be_v bear_v in_o a_o stable_n he_o be_v wrap_v in_o swaddle_a clothes_n
dominion_n to_o who_o he_o please_v this_o be_v high_o to_o abuse_v this_o high_a censure_n as_o they_o do_v also_o other_o ordinance_n of_o god_n what_o be_v more_o comfortable_a than_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o they_o have_v horrible_o and_o shameful_o profane_v it_o nay_o they_o have_v altogether_o abolish_v it_o and_o bring_v it_o to_o nothing_o by_o the_o abominable_a idol_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o they_o have_v set_v up_o in_o stead_n thereof_o suppose_v this_o man_n of_o sin_n have_v jurisdiction_n and_o authority_n to_o excommunicate_v for_o sin_n yet_o from_o whence_o have_v he_o right_a to_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o deposition_n of_o king_n and_o alienation_n of_o subject_n and_o other_o temporal_a matter_n but_o from_o he_o that_o be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n to_o wit_n the_o devil_n consider_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr consider_n it_o be_v well_o say_v of_o bernard_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n your_o power_n stand_v in_o censure_v crime_n not_o in_o take_v away_o possession_n but_o a_o kingdom_n be_v a_o possession_n and_o therefore_o his_o power_n extend_v not_o unto_o it_o beside_o the_o commit_n of_o any_o heinous_a crime_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a cause_n to_o deprive_v they_o of_o their_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n when_o a_o private_a person_n be_v censure_v with_o excommunication_n according_a to_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o offence_n he_o lose_v not_o his_o substance_n he_o forfeit_v not_o either_o house_n or_o land_n he_o lose_v no_o part_n or_o parcel_n of_o his_o possession_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o cause_n why_o he_o shall_v neither_o be_v there_o ever_o any_o such_o claim_v or_o challenge_v or_o practise_v or_o assay_v what_o then_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o this_o censure_n change_v when_o the_o bull_n roar_v against_o prince_n &_o shall_v it_o take_v from_o he_o his_o possession_n which_o it_o do_v not_o from_o any_o other_o the_o law_n of_o god_n say_v thou_o shall_v judge_v the_o small_a as_o well_o as_o the_o great_a and_o not_o respect_v person_n in_o judgement_n deut._n 1.17_o but_o according_a to_o the_o corrupt_a proceed_n in_o their_o court_n it_o be_v better_a to_o be_v a_o private_a man_n then_o a_o prince_n to_o ascend_v a_o step_n high_o that_o we_o may_v pull_v down_o the_o pride_n of_o rome_n a_o step_n low_a be_v it_o otherwise_o in_o the_o degree_n of_o honour_n and_o dignity_n whereunto_o man_n be_v advance_v then_o with_o private_a person_n when_o a_o knight_n be_v excommunicate_v be_v he_o disgrade_v of_o his_o knighthood_n have_v he_o his_o spur_n smite_v off_o with_o a_o knife_n hard_a by_o the_o heel_n have_v he_o his_o coat_n of_o arm_n tear_v from_o his_o body_n 4._o stow_n annal._n in_o the_o reign_n of_o edw._n 4._o and_o other_o ornament_n and_o ensign_n of_o renown_n and_o worship_n take_v from_o he_o ●r_o do_v the_o noble_a man_n forfeit_v his_o nobility_n &_o lose_v his_o barony_n or_o of_o a_o baron_n be_v he_o make_v no_o baron_n this_o be_v never_o attempt_v or_o hear_v off_o the_o lightning_n that_o descend_v from_o the_o vatican_n never_o touch_v either_o the_o private_a man_n possession_n or_o the_o noble_a man_n honour_n how_o then_o shall_v it_o go_v worse_o with_o the_o king_n himself_o then_o with_o all_o his_o subject_n that_o he_o shall_v lose_v his_o royalty_n and_o not_o the_o baron_n his_o barony_n moreover_o it_o be_v the_o apostle_n rule_v that_o god_n judge_v those_o that_o be_v without_o the_o church_n can_v give_v sentence_n against_o such_o as_o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n 1_o cor._n 5.12_o 13._o as_o we_o note_v before_o some_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o some_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n be_v the_o house_n and_o city_n of_o god_n the_o faithful_a be_v his_o household_n servant_n they_o live_v and_o abide_v under_o his_o roof_n they_o eat_v of_o his_o meat_n and_o therefore_o happy_a be_v their_o condition_n such_o as_o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o of_o his_o house_n and_o therefore_o must_v perish_v as_o all_o they_o be_v drown_v that_o enter_v not_o into_o the_o ark_n and_o as_o all_o perish_a in_o the_o sack_n of_o jericho_n that_o be_v not_o in_o rahabs_n house_n and_o therefore_o their_o condition_n be_v woeful_a and_o miserable_a as_o revel_v 22.15_o these_o shall_v not_o go_v unpunished_a god_n shall_v enter_v into_o judgement_n with_o they_o the_o church_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o they_o god_n will_v proceed_v against_o they_o so_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o escape_v let_v we_o therefore_o remit_v they_o to_o his_o seat_n of_o justice_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v that_o we_o be_v heretic_n &_o schismatics_n and_o i_o wot_v not_o what_o else_o and_o so_o out_o of_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n for_o so_o many_o as_o do_v not_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n he_o they_o adjudge_v and_o condemn_v of_o heresy_n if_o then_o we_o be_v none_o of_o the_o church_n they_o can_v smite_v we_o with_o their_o censure_n nor_o thunder_n against_o we_o with_o their_o excommunication_n whereby_o notwithstanding_o they_o have_v especial_o raise_v up_o their_o state_n to_o the_o top_n of_o greatness_n and_o have_v lay_v such_o a_o burden_n upon_o their_o head_n that_o in_o time_n be_v likely_a to_o break_v their_o neck_n excommunication_n then_o be_v a_o cut_n off_o from_o the_o church_n of_o such_o as_o be_v of_o the_o church_n it_o can_v touch_v we_o even_o in_o their_o own_o judgement_n who_o they_o teach_v in_o all_o their_o book_n of_o controversy_n to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n furthermore_o this_o be_v such_o a_o censure_n as_o never_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n nor_o their_o successor_n practise_v to_o meddle_v with_o such_o as_o be_v heathen_a &_o pagan_n or_o to_o touch_v their_o person_n or_o to_o take_v away_o their_o possession_n this_o be_v a_o bar_n or_o block_n that_o lie_v in_o the_o way_n to_o hinder_v the_o conversion_n of_o king_n that_o be_v gentile_n for_o who_o among_o they_o will_v willing_o embrace_v the_o christian_a religion_n who_o be_v before_o a_o absolute_a prince_n shall_v by_o his_o embrace_v the_o faith_n and_o receive_v the_o gospel_n put_v his_o head_n under_o the_o pope_n girdle_n and_o offer_v his_o neck_n to_o be_v lead_v up_o and_o down_o in_o a_o string_n at_o the_o discretion_n of_o his_o good_a lord_n and_o master_n and_o be_v a_o king_n no_o long_a than_o it_o please_v he_o he_o shall_v make_v his_o estate_n much_o worse_o than_o 〈◊〉_d his_o people_n as_o if_o the_o church_n be_v a_o tender_a mother_n to_o private_a man_n but_o a_o step_n mother_n unto_o prince_n again_o god_n have_v provide_v by_o this_o ordinance_n that_o none_o shall_v be_v censure_v but_o he_o only_o that_o have_v commit_v the_o fault_n and_o that_o such_o as_o have_v not_o offend_v shall_v not_o be_v punish_v and_o chastened_a the_o kingdom_n be_v a_o inheritance_n and_o admit_v a_o successor_n of_o the_o same_o line_n if_o the_o father_n be_v dethrone_v and_o deprive_v of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o it_o be_v give_v away_o to_o another_o or_o leave_v to_o he_o that_o can_v seize_v upon_o it_o the_o son_n can_v reign_v by_o succession_n from_o his_o father_n albeit_o he_o be_v innocent_a he_o shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n albeit_o he_o be_v in_o no_o fault_n at_o all_o so_o that_o the_o son_n must_v bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n deut._n 24.16_o and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o godly_a 2_o king_n 14.6_o the_o prophet_n ezekiel_n handle_v this_o at_o large_a chap._n 18._o ver_fw-la 20._o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o righteous_a shall_v be_v upon_o he_o and_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v upon_o himself_o what_o justice_n then_o be_v this_o to_o strike_v the_o innocent_a with_o the_o guilty_a and_o to_o bind_v they_o together_o as_o it_o be_v into_o one_o bundle_n it_o be_v well_o say_v of_o abraham_n in_o his_o prayer_n to_o god_n gen._n 18.24_o 25._o peradventure_o there_o be_v fifty_o righteous_a within_o the_o city_n will_v thou_o also_o destroy_v and_o not_o spare_v the_o place_n for_o the_o fifty_o righteous_a that_o be_v therein_o that_o be_v far_o from_o thou_o to_o do_v after_o this_o manner_n to_o slay_v the_o righteous_a with_o the_o wicked_a and_o that_o the_o righteous_a shall_v be_v as_o the_o wicked_a that_o be_v far_o from_o thou_o shall_v not_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n do_v right_a if_o this_o be_v far_o from_o god_n it_o ought_v also_o to_o be_v far_o from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n if_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n will_v do_v right_a shall_v he_o that_o hold_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n delight_v to_o do_v open_a wrong_n but_o these_o
their_o sin_n in_o order_n before_o they_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o repentance_n say_v unto_o they_o now_o brethren_n 1●_n act_n 3_o 1●_n i_o wot_v that_o through_o ignorance_n you_o do_v it_o as_o do_v also_o your_o ruler_n all_o sin_n be_v commit_v either_o of_o infirmity_n or_o of_o obstinacy_n either_o of_o settle_a purpose_n or_o of_o frailty_n either_o of_o knowledge_n or_o of_o ignorance_n and_o howsoever_o it_o be_v commit_v it_o can_v be_v excuse_v 47.4●_n luk._n 12_o 47.4●_n because_o the_o servant_n that_o know_v his_o lord_n will_v and_o prepare_v not_o himself_o neither_o do_v according_a to_o his_o will_n shall_v be_v beat_v with_o many_o stripe_n but_o he_o that_o know_v not_o and_o do_v commit_v thing_n worthy_a of_o stripe_n shall_v be_v beat_v with_o few_o stripe_n etc._n etc._n 6.9_o heb._n 6.9_o now_o the_o apostle_n judge_v and_o persuade_v himself_o the_o best_a thing_n of_o they_o that_o they_o sin_v of_o ignorance_n rather_o than_o of_o malice_n and_o in_o the_o 26_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n paul_n that_o he_o may_v win_v agrippa_n the_o king_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o persuade_v he_o to_o become_v a_o christian_n say_v unto_o he_o o_o king_n agrippa_n believe_v thou_o the_o prophet_n 26.27_o act_n 26.27_o i_o know_v that_o thou_o believe_v it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o he_o will_v believe_v or_o not_o and_o therefore_o by_o this_o rhetorical_a communication_n he_o judge_v the_o best_a that_o he_o believe_v all_o these_o testimony_n serve_v to_o move_v we_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o this_o duty_n that_o when_o thing_n be_v doubtful_a and_o may_v be_v diverse_o take_v we_o ought_v to_o expound_v they_o with_o the_o most_o favourable_a construction_n and_o friendly_a interpretation_n and_o gentle_a mitigation_n this_o point_n be_v far_a to_o be_v strengthen_v reason_n 1_o unto_o we_o by_o the_o force_n of_o reason_n first_o of_o all_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o charity_n not_o to_o stretch_v thing_n to_o the_o uttermost_a as_o contrariwise_o it_o betoken_v little_a love_n and_o much_o malice_n when_o we_o open_v our_o mouth_n to_o speak_v all_o manner_n of_o evil_n of_o our_o brethren_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v prou._n 10.12_o hatred_n stir_v up_o strife_n but_o love_n cover_v all_o sin_n and_o the_o apostle_n teach_v as_o much_o of_o charity_n 1_o corinth_n 13_o 5_o 6._o it_o do_v not_o behave_v itself_o unseemly_a it_o seek_v not_o her_o own_o it_o be_v not_o easy_o provoke_v it_o think_v no_o evil_a it_o rejoice_v not_o in_o iniquity_n but_o rejoice_v in_o the_o truth_n if_o then_o there_o be_v any_o true_a charity_n in_o we_o to_o seek_v the_o good_a or_o desire_v the_o good_a of_o our_o brethren_n we_o ought_v to_o testify_v it_o by_o this_o even_o by_o judge_v of_o their_o mind_n and_o meaning_n of_o their_o word_n and_o action_n according_a to_o this_o rule_n second_o it_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o common_a equity_n reason_n 2_o which_o nature_n itself_o teach_v that_o as_o we_o wish_v to_o be_v deal_v withal_o and_o to_o be_v do_v unto_o so_o ought_v we_o to_o do_v &_o deal_v towards_o other_o now_o there_o be_v none_o of_o we_o all_o that_o will_v willing_o be_v expound_v wrongful_o and_o censure_v uncharitable_o but_o crave_v to_o have_v all_o thing_n take_v in_o the_o better_a part_n we_o will_v not_o have_v our_o word_n alter_v wrest_a corrupt_a stretch_a and_o strain_v beyond_o our_o meaning_n as_o clothe_v upon_o the_o tainter_n above_o measure_n and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v so_o to_o behave_v ourselves_o towards_o other_o this_o do_v christ_n our_o saviour_n deliver_v to_o his_o disciple_n matth._n 7.12_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o you_o will_v that_o man_n shall_v do_v to_o you_o do_v you_o even_o so_o to_o they_o for_o this_o be_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n we_o be_v in_o this_o case_n so_o to_o deal_v with_o other_o as_o we_o desire_v that_o other_o shall_v deal_v with_o we_o so_o that_o as_o the_o former_a reason_n be_v ground_v upon_o charity●_n this_o be_v ground_v upon_o equity_n reason_n 3_o three_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n or_o fruit_n of_o heavenly_a wisdom_n give_v unto_o we_o of_o god_n which_o teach_v we_o how_o to_o carry_v ourselves_o in_o our_o calling_n one_o towards_o another_o this_o do_v the_o apostle_n james_n lie_v before_o we_o in_o his_o epistle_n chap._n 3.17_o the_o wisdom_n that_o be_v from_o above_o be_v first_o pure_a then_o peaceable_a gentle_a and_o easy_a to_o be_v entreat_v full_a of_o mercy_n and_o good_a fruit_n without_o partiality_n and_o without_o hypocrisy_n if_o then_o we_o be_v ready_a always_o to_o judge_v the_o best_a to_o speak_v the_o best_a and_o to_o think_v the_o best_a of_o thing_n that_o be_v doubtful_a we_o shall_v show_v ourselves_o to_o have_v the_o grace_n of_o heavenly_a wisdom_n which_o be_v a_o perfect_a guide_n to_o direct_v we_o in_o the_o part_n of_o our_o life_n on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o carry_v ourselves_o strange_o and_o uncharitable_o towards_o our_o brethren_n be_v the_o note_n of_o a_o man_n carry_v away_o with_o that_o wisdom_n which_o be_v earthly_a sensual_a and_o devilish_a which_o be_v breed_v beneath_o in_o the_o earth_n savour_v of_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o be_v teach_v unto_o we_o by_o no_o other_o master_n than_o the_o devil_n use_v 1_o let_v we_o make_v use_n of_o this_o point_n to_o ourselves_o first_o it_o teach_v that_o to_o be_v whisperer_n and_o taker_n of_o all_o in_o the_o evil_a part_n be_v a_o testimony_n of_o a_o evil_a conscience_n and_o a_o token_n of_o a_o evil_a man_n he_o that_o be_v a_o good_a man_n himself_o do_v hardly_o think_v other_o to_o be_v evil_a he_o that_o have_v a_o sound_a heart_n and_o be_v a_o true_a israelite_n in_o who_o be_v no_o guile_n do_v not_o easy_o suspect_v other_o to_o be_v hypocrite_n and_o dissembler_n such_o as_o come_v into_o the_o lord_n court_n and_o present_v themselves_o before_o he_o in_o conscience_n of_o their_o duty_n in_o reverence_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o for_o their_o increase_n in_o true_a piety_n be_v with_o much_o ado_n draw_v to_o believe_v that_o other_o draw_v nigh_o unto_o god_n with_o their_o mouth_n and_o honour_v he_o with_o their_o lip_n 15.8_o 〈◊〉_d 15.8_o and_o that_o their_o heart_n be_v far_o from_o he_o such_o as_o labour_v above_o all_o thing_n to_o approve_v themselves_o before_o god_n the_o searcher_n of_o all_o heart_n and_o to_o do_v that_o which_o they_o do_v in_o godly_a sincerity_n can_v light_o be_v persuade_v that_o other_o be_v so_o carnal_a as_o to_o do_v all_o to_o be_v see_v of_o man_n ●_o 〈◊〉_d 6._o ●_o and_o to_o please_v themselves_o with_o the_o foolish_a praise_n of_o mortal_a man_n contrariwise_o such_o as_o be_v profane_a in_o heart_n loose_a in_o life_n filthy_a in_o talk_n and_o every_o way_n carnal_a in_o conversation_n do_v judge_v the_o same_o of_o other_o and_o measure_v they_o by_o the_o deceitful_a rule_n of_o their_o own_o action_n this_o be_v note_v as_o a_o capital_a evil_n by_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 1.29_o where_o he_o join_v together_o maliciousness_n envy_n murder_n debate_n deceit_n malignity_n whisperer_n backebyter_n hater_n of_o god_n despiteful_a such_o as_o be_v without_o natural_a affection_n unplacable_a and_o unmerciful_a and_o show_v that_o such_o be_v full_a of_o all_o unrighteousness_n whisperer_n be_v what_o whisperer_n be_v be_v they_o that_o by_o close_a and_o secret_a accusation_n raise_v suspicion_n and_o surmise_n and_o sow_v the_o seed_n of_o strife_n and_o contention_n whence_o be_v reap_v too_o plentiful_a a_o crop_n of_o malice_n and_o mischief_n they_o set_v friend_n together_o by_o the_o ear_n and_o oftentimes_o as_o with_o a_o violent_a wind_n overthrow_v whole_a house_n and_o city_n and_o turn_v they_o into_o dust_n and_o ash_n assure_v ourselves_o that_o where_n envy_v and_o strife_n be_v 3.16_o jam._n 3.16_o there_o be_v confusion_n and_o every_o evil_a work_n whatsoever_o they_o hear_v of_o other_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o carry_v to_o other_o with_o a_o swift_a foot_n and_o a_o corrupt_a tongue_n and_o a_o malicious_a heart_n to_o kindle_v the_o coal_n of_o hatred_n among_o man_n they_o live_v by_o the_o fall_n out_o of_o other_o and_o thrive_v by_o jar_n as_o the_o carrion_a crow_n do_v upon_o the_o carcase_n if_o they_o know_v any_o occasion_n of_o anger_n to_o arise_v they_o be_v at_o hand_n to_o turn_v it_o into_o wrath_n and_o malice_n and_o to_o make_v the_o party_n thereby_o to_o be_v far_o from_o reconciliation_n like_v to_o achitophel_n when_o david_n and_o absalon_n be_v up_o in_o arm_n who_o by_o his_o devilish_a policy_n devise_v a_o mean_n to_o cut_v off_o all_o hope_n of_o reconcilement_n and_o of_o unite_n they_o together_o again_o 16.21_o 2_o sam._n 16.21_o or_o they_o
have_v many_o jewel_n and_o much_o raiment_n so_o that_o they_o be_v enrich_v and_o the_o egyptian_n spoil_v this_o be_v a_o reward_n and_o recompense_v of_o their_o service_n they_o find_v favour_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n although_o they_o be_v evil_o entreat_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n use_v 2_o second_o see_v god_n be_v merciful_a above_o our_o hope_n we_o have_v hereby_o great_a comfort_n in_o prayer_n to_o call_v upoh_fw-mi he_o in_o the_o day_n of_o trouble_n be_v assure_v that_o he_o will_v hear_v we_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v obtain_v more_o than_o we_o desire_v and_o find_v more_o than_o we_o ask_v be_v we_o slander_v and_o revile_v as_o the_o case_n be_v of_o the_o suspect_a wife_n in_o this_o place_n do_v we_o hear_v evil_a report_n cast_v out_o against_o we_o let_v we_o not_o be_v greeve_v at_o it_o nor_o return_v like_a for_o like_a but_o rather_o call_v upon_o he_o that_o know_v the_o secret_n of_o all_o heart_n let_v we_o crave_v of_o he_o to_o make_v our_o innocence_n know_v as_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n from_o time_n to_o time_n have_v do_v who_o have_v receyve_v more_o than_o ever_o they_o ask_v of_o he_o david_n pray_v thus_o unto_o god_n psal_n 7_o 3._o o_o lord_n my_o god_n if_o i_o have_v do_v this_o if_o there_o be_v iniquity_n in_o my_o hand_n if_o i_o have_v reward_v evil_a unto_o he_o that_o be_v at_o peace_n with_o i_o etc._n etc._n 8._o verse_n 8._o let_v the_o enemy_n persecute_v my_o soul_n and_o take_v it_o etc._n etc._n judge_v i_o o_o lord_n according_a to_o my_o righteousness_n and_o according_a to_o my_o integrity_n that_o be_v in_o i_o he_o desire_v no_o more_o then_o to_o be_v esteem_v as_o he_o be_v and_o to_o have_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o heart_n manifest_v but_o god_n grant_v more_o than_o that_o he_o hear_v his_o prayer_n and_o he_o obtain_v that_o which_o he_o pray_v not_o for_o do_v he_o ever_o ask_v of_o god_n a_o kingdom_n do_v he_o crave_v that_o god_n will_v make_v he_o king_n of_o israel_n and_o yet_o god_n give_v the_o kingdom_n unto_o he_o be_v we_o in_o want_n and_o will_v have_v his_o blessing_n we_o shall_v find_v no_o want_n in_o he_o who_o be_v more_o ready_a to_o hear_v we_o than_o we_o be_v to_o speak_v his_o ear_n be_v often_o open_a while_o our_o mouth_n be_v shut_v if_o we_o desire_v one_o mercy_n at_o his_o hand_n he_o be_v ready_o to_o grant_v two_o unto_o us._n how_o oftentimes_o do_v abraham_n pray_v for_o the_o sodomite_n that_o the_o city_n may_v have_v be_v spare_v yet_o he_o give_v over_o and_o cease_v beg_v before_o god_n give_v over_o grant_v his_o request_n gen._n 18._o even_o as_o he_o that_o seek_v one_o pearl_n find_v sometime_o more_o than_o he_o seek_v so_o be_v it_o with_o all_o the_o faithful_a the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v all_o of_o they_o jewel_n of_o wonderful_a price_n if_o a_o man_n sell_v all_o that_o he_o have_v to_o get_v one_o of_o they_o it_o be_v no_o dear_a purchase_n and_o if_o a_o man_n depart_v from_o any_o of_o his_o save_a grace_n albeit_o he_o shall_v procure_v to_o himself_o by_o it_o the_o possession_n of_o a_o kingdom_n his_o loss_n be_v a_o thousand_o time_n great_a than_o his_o gain_n 2d_o math._n 16_o 2d_o for_o what_o shall_v it_o profit_v a_o man_n to_o gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o then_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n or_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n give_v for_o the_o recompense_n of_o his_o soul_n on_o the_o other_o side_n our_o saviour_n teach_v mat._n 13_o 44_o 45._o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v like_a unto_o a_o treasure_n hide_v in_o the_o field_n which_o when_o a_o man_n have_v find_v he_o hide_v it_o and_o for_o joy_n thereof_o depart_v and_o sell_v all_o that_o he_o have_v and_o buy_v that_o field_n again_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v like_a to_o a_o merchant_n man_n which_o seek_v good_a pearl_n who_o have_v find_v a_o pearl_n of_o great_a price_n go_v and_o sell_v all_o that_o he_o have_v &_o buy_v it_o let_v we_o all_o from_o hence_o be_v encourage_v to_o the_o exercise_n of_o prayer_n and_o be_v bold_a to_o be_v ever_o beg_v of_o he_o if_o a_o subject_n have_v this_o encouragement_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o prince_n that_o if_o he_o be_v obedient_a unto_o he_o he_o will_v give_v he_o whatsoever_o he_o shall_v ask_v and_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o he_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o want_v no_o suitor_n but_o must_v be_v fain_o to_o assign_v many_o to_o receive_v their_o petition_n or_o if_o there_o be_v any_o prince_n know_v to_o be_v so_o gracious_a that_o when_o any_o of_o his_o liege-people_n shall_v ask_v any_o thing_n of_o he_o he_o will_v of_o his_o princely_a bounty_n and_o magnificence_n lade_v he_o with_o benefit_n more_o than_o he_o desire_v it_o be_v incredible_a to_o think_v in_o what_o flock_n and_o multitude_n they_o will_v resort_v unto_o he_o there_o be_v no_o prince_n to_o be_v compare_v with_o god_n he_o have_v all_o treasure_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o his_o treasury_n can_v never_o be_v draw_v dry_a his_o coffer_n can_v never_o be_v make_v empty_a and_o his_o hand_n be_v never_o weary_a of_o bestow_v he_o give_v liberal_o to_o all_o that_o ask_v of_o he_o and_o he_o reproach_v no_o man_n jam._n 1_o 5._o we_o ask_v little_a &_o receive_v much_o we_o ask_v spiritual_a blessing_n and_o receive_v both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a we_o ask_v of_o he_o our_o daily_a bread_n 11._o 〈◊〉_d ●6_n 11._o and_o we_o obtain_v of_o he_o more_o than_o bread_n we_o crave_v of_o he_o thing_n for_o our_o necessity_n and_o we_o have_v give_v unto_o we_o for_o our_o christian_n delight_n and_o pleasure_n there_o be_v none_o of_o we_o all_o that_o do_v true_o believe_v but_o we_o have_v a_o gracious_a and_o bless_a experience_n of_o this_o truth_n if_o we_o be_v not_o altogether_o brutish_a and_o blockish_a or_o without_o feeling_n and_o mark_v of_o god_n deal_v towards_o we_o we_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n and_o his_o goodness_n towards_o we_o have_v surmount_v our_o hope_n and_o go_v beyond_o our_o expectation_n which_o ought_v to_o give_v we_o much_o encouragement_n to_o come_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o approach_v to_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o grace_n this_o we_o note_v before_o in_o the_o prayer_n of_o hannah_n she_o pray_v to_o god_n and_o ask_v a_o son_n of_o he_o but_o god_n give_v she_o many_o son_n this_o be_v that_o which_o david_n spare_v not_o to_o confess_v at_o large_a psal_n 21_o 2_o 3_o 4._o thou_o have_v give_v he_o his_o heart_n desire_v and_o have_v not_o deny_v he_o the_o request_n of_o his_o lip_n for_o thou_o do_v prevent_v he_o with_o liberal_a blessing_n and_o do_v set_v a_o crown_n of_o pure_a gold_n upon_o his_o head_n he_o ask_v of_o thou_o life_n and_o thou_o give_v he_o a_o long_a life_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o the_o savour_n of_o god_n be_v bestow_v upon_o he_o before_o he_o pray_v and_o far_o beyond_o that_o which_o he_o pray_v for_o the_o like_a mercy_n we_o see_v extend_v towards_o solomon_n after_o the_o death_n of_o his_o father_n when_o the_o government_n of_o a_o great_a people_n lie_v upon_o his_o shoulder_n he_o pray_v unto_o god_n and_o ask_v of_o he_o nothing_o but_o a_o wise_a and_o understand_a heart_n 11_o 〈◊〉_d 3_o 9_o 11_o to_o be_v able_a to_o rule_v that_o people_n and_o to_o go_v in_o and_o out_o before_o they_o and_o to_o discern_v between_o good_a and_o bad_a but_o the_o lord_n be_v so_o exceed_v well_o please_v with_o it_o that_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o because_o thou_o have_v ask_v this_o thing_n and_o have_v not_o ask_v for_o thyself_o long_a life_n neither_o haste_n ask_v riches_n for_o thyself_o nor_o have_v ask_v the_o life_n of_o thy_o enemy_n but_o have_v ask_v for_o thyself_o understand_v to_o hear_v judgement_n behold_v i_o have_v do_v according_a to_o thy_o word_n loe_o i_o have_v give_v thou_o a_o wise_a and_o a_o understanding_n heart_n so_o that_o there_o have_v be_v none_o like_o thou_o before_o thou_o neither_o after_o thou_o shall_v arise_v the_o like_a unto_o thou_o and_o i_o have_v also_o give_v thou_o that_o which_o thou_o have_v not_o ask_v both_o riches_n and_o honour_n so_o that_o among_o the_o king_n there_o shall_v be_v none_o like_o unto_o thou_o all_o thy_o day_n great_a therefore_o be_v our_o sin_n if_o have_v so_o wide_a a_o gate_n set_v open_a before_o we_o and_o such_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n compass_v we_o about_o we_o do_v yet_o hang_v back_o and_o do_v not_o pour_v out_o our_o meditation_n before_o he_o this_o experience_n of_o god_n favour_n be_v the_o chief_a cause_n that_o the_o faithful_a have_v be_v
4.8_o ●●m_fw-la 4.16_o ●or_a 3.9.10_o 〈◊〉_d 12.3_o ●or_a 3.8.10_o even_o a_o great_a measure_n of_o glory_n after_o a_o faithful_a discharge_n of_o the_o duty_n when_o the_o great_a shepherd_n of_o the_o sheep_n shall_v appear_v in_o glory_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o to_o be_v marvel_v at_o that_o paul_n every_o where_o magnify_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n who_o have_v choose_v he_o to_o be_v a_o master-builder_n in_o his_o house_n to_z lay_z the_o foundation_n thereof_o more_o precious_a than_o the_o gold_n of_o op●ir_n or_o then_o silver_n try_v in_o a_o furnace_n of_o earth_n purify_v seven_o time_n 12.6_o 〈◊〉_d 12.6_o now_o if_o the_o call_n be_v in_o itself_o honourable_a ought_v it_o not_o then_o to_o be_v honour_v and_o how_o shall_v it_o be_v honour_v if_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o call_n be_v not_o maintain_v and_o what_o shall_v their_o maintenance_n be_v but_o as_o it_o may_v be_v agreeable_a to_o their_o place_n they_o hold_v and_o if_o the_o maintenance_n must_v hold_v correspondence_n with_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o ministry_n we_o doubt_v not_o to_o affirm_v and_o avouch_v that_o the_o recompense_n of_o the_o labour_n of_o such_o as_o be_v painful_a and_o faithful_a in_o this_o call_n aught_o to_o be_v very_o bountiful_a and_o liberal_a our_o saviour_n say_v of_o this_o call_n 10.16_o ●●k_v 10.16_o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v i_o despise_v he_o that_o send_v i_o he_o have_v commit_v unto_o they_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 16.19_o ●●tth_v 16.19_o tell_v i_o if_o thou_o be_v desirous_a to_o see_v one_o of_o the_o king_n house_n glister_v with_o much_o gold_n and_o shine_v with_o pearl_n and_o precious_a stone_n and_o at_o length_n shall_v find_v one_o that_o carry_v the_o key_n who_o be_v entreat_v shall_v forthwith_o unlock_v the_o door_n and_o bring_v thou_o even_o into_o the_o king_n privy_a chamber_n will_v thou_o not_o make_v much_o of_o he_o and_o honour_v he_o above_o other_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n be_v they_o that_o keep_v the_o key_n of_o the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n they_o have_v power_n from_o christ_n and_o under_o christ_n to_o open_v the_o door_n ought_v we_o not_o therefore_o to_o love_v they_o thessaly_n chrysost_n hom_n 2._o in_o 1._o thessaly_n to_o reverence_v they_o to_o honour_v they_o this_o make_v the_o thessalonian_o receive_v the_o apostles_n doctrine_n 2.13_o 1_o thess_n 2.13_o not_o as_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o he_o bear_v the_o galatian_n witness_n 4.15_o gal._n 4.15_o that_o if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a they_o will_v have_v pluck_v out_o their_o own_o eye_n and_o have_v give_v they_o to_o he_o our_o saviour_n tell_v his_o apostle_n 18.18_o matth._n 18.18_o that_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n do_v not_o pilate_n think_v himself_o advance_v to_o great_a honour_n that_o he_o can_v say_v know_v thou_o not_o that_o i_o have_v power_n to_o crucify_v thou_o 19.10_o joh._n 19.10_o and_o have_v power_n to_o release_v thou_o if_o a_o prince_n shall_v impart_v to_o any_o of_o his_o subject_n this_o authority_n that_o as_o high_a marshal_n he_o shall_v have_v power_n to_o put_v in_o prison_n whosoever_o he_o will_v and_o again_o to_o release_v they_o and_o let_v they_o go_v 1._o chrysost_n de_fw-mi sacerd_v lib._n 3._o &_o toto_fw-la sere_n lib._n 1._o he_o will_v be_v think_v happy_a and_o worthy_a of_o honour_n in_o all_o man_n judgment_n it_o have_v please_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n &_o earth_n to_o bestow_v a_o ministerial_a power_n &_o to_o give_v authority_n subordinate_a under_o he_o to_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o forgive_v sin_n and_o to_o retain_v sin_n say_v 20.23_o joh._n 20.23_o whosesoever_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v unto_o they_o and_o whose-soev_a sin_n you_o retain_v they_o be_v retain_v as_o eliah_n by_o his_o earnest_a prayer_n 5.17_o 1_o king_n 17.1_o luk._n 4.25_o jam._n 5.17_o do_v shut_v the_o heaven_n that_o it_o can_v not_o rain_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o again_o by_o his_o prayer_n open_v the_o window_n of_o heaven_n that_o the_o earth_n do_v drink_v in_o the_o rain_n and_o bring_v forth_o herb_n meet_v for_o the_o use_n of_o man_n so_o the_o minister_n by_o their_o earnest_n preach_v do_v open_a the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o all_o believer_n and_o do_v shut_v the_o door_n against_o all_o impenitent_a sinner_n and_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 5.4_o 1_o cor._n 5.4_o do_v commit_v such_o to_o perpetual_a imprisonment_n and_o do_v deliver_v they_o to_o satan_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n if_o haply_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o spirit_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o power_n do_v the_o minister_n execute_v upon_o earth_n which_o the_o angel_n themselves_o do_v not_o nor_o can_v exercise_v in_o heaven_n to_o what_o end_n have_v we_o speak_v all_o this_o touch_v the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o minister_n sure_o from_o thence_o to_o infer_v that_o their_o maintenance_n ought_v to_o be_v answerable_a to_o their_o ministry_n and_o to_o show_v that_o if_o we_o withhold_v from_o they_o their_o due_n we_o withhold_v from_o god_n who_o deputy_n they_o be_v &_o deny_v he_o his_o right_n for_o all_o the_o tithe_n of_o the_o land_n 27.30_o levit._fw-la 27.30_o whether_o of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o land_n or_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n be_v the_o lord_n it_o be_v holy_a unto_o the_o lord_n and_o consequent_o we_o hinder_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o thereby_o as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o we_o destroy_v the_o soul_n of_o many_o thousand_o which_o otherwise_o may_v come_v to_o repentance_n &_o acknowledge_v of_o the_o truth_n remember_v therefore_o these_o two_o principle_n chapter_n see_v more_o of_o tithe_n in_o the_o 18._o chapter_n which_o both_o join_n in_o one_o that_o the_o tithe_n of_o the_o land_n be_v the_o lord_n verse_n 30._o and_o that_o the_o ten_o shall_v be_v whole_o unto_o the_o lord_n verse_n 32._o as_o than_o we_o do_v tender_v the_o continuance_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n so_o we_o shall_v render_v to_o the_o minister_n his_o due_a maintenance_n that_o he_o may_v receive_v comfort_n and_o encouragement_n in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o thereby_o make_v it_o manifest_a that_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o bring_v to_o god_n the_o best_a sacrifice_n we_o have_v and_o so_o to_o serve_v he_o in_o the_o best_a manner_n three_o acknowledge_v from_o hence_o that_o it_o use_v 3_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o honour_n god_n with_o all_o our_o substance_n and_o that_o we_o can_v no_o way_n so_o well_o employ_v our_o good_n as_o when_o god_n be_v honour_v and_o glorify_v by_o they_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v pro._n 3_o 9_o 3.9_o prou._n 3.9_o honour_n the_o lord_n with_o thy_o substance_n and_o with_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o thy_o increase_n and_o we_o hear_v before_o that_o abel_n bring_v to_o god_n of_o the_o fat_a sheep_n he_o have_v 34.26_o exod_n 23.19_o and_o 34.26_o he_o offer_v unto_o he_o the_o best_a gen._n 4._o he_o offer_v a_o better_a sacrifice_n and_o also_o a_o great_a sacrifice_n than_o cain_n heb._n 11_o 4._o he_o spare_v for_o no_o cost_n he_o bring_v not_o the_o worst_a he_o have_v or_o what_o come_v first_o to_o hand_n think_v that_o whatsoever_o he_o bring_v be_v good_a enough_o for_o the_o lord_n service_n and_o to_o be_v consume_v with_o fire_n but_o he_o give_v the_o best_a he_o have_v and_o will_v have_v give_v better_a if_o he_o can_v whosoever_o do_v to_o the_o uttermost_a the_o best_a he_o can_v do_v make_v it_o plain_a he_o will_v do_v better_a if_o he_o can_v from_o this_o practice_n of_o abel_n have_v the_o law_n his_o foundation_n that_o be_v afterward_o write_v that_o nothing_o which_o be_v lean_a or_o lame_a 22.20_o deut_n 15.21_o leviti_fw-la 22.20_o or_o maim_v or_o misshape_a or_o blind_a or_o any_o way_n blemish_v shall_v be_v offer_v to_o the_o lord_n if_o any_o ask_v how_o this_o belong_v unto_o us._n i_o answer_v the_o ceremony_n be_v end_v in_o christ_n howbeit_o the_o equity_n remain_v and_o bind_v we_o for_o ever_o now_o then_o if_o the_o question_n be_v further_o demand_v how_o this_o law_n reach_v to_o we_o and_o how_o we_o may_v honour_v he_o with_o our_o first_o fruit_n and_o riches_n i_o answer_v by_o give_v to_o he_o the_o best_a in_o every_o kind_n that_o we_o have_v this_o consist_v in_o many_o particular_a branch_n and_o teach_v we_o diverse_a particular_a duty_n first_o of_o all_o here_o be_v offer_v that_o to_o
and_z 3_o 6._o 2_o king_n 13_o 14._o neh._n 2_o 5_o ester_n 5_o 4_o 8._o 2_o sa._n 24_o 3._o 1_o sam._n 25_o 24_o etc._n etc._n thus_o have_v god_n child_n by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o ungodly_a by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n perform_v this_o duty_n and_o no_o marvel_n because_o superior_n bear_v god_n image_n to_o inferior_n &_o be_v to_o they_o not_o by_o man_n invention_n or_o usurpation_n but_o by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n in_o god_n stead_n as_o moses_n make_v ruler_n and_o governor_n be_v to_o aaron_n exod._n 4_o 16._o he_o shall_v be_v to_o thou_o in_o stead_n of_o a_o mouth_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v to_o he_o in_o stead_n of_o god_n again_o we_o have_v the_o express_a law_n &_o commandment_n of_o god_n bind_v the_o conscience_n of_o all_o exod._n 20_o 12._o psalm_n 82_o 6._o last_o they_o be_v s●t_v over_o inferior_n not_o for_o their_o own_o glory_n but_o for_o their_o good_a 1_o tim._n 2_o 2._o rom._n 13_o 4._o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o thou_o for_o good_a use_v 1_o this_o principle_n offer_v these_o use_n first_o a_o reproof_n of_o those_o that_o be_v so_o far_o from_o yield_v they_o reverence_n that_o they_o reject_v their_o authority_n and_o cast_v off_o their_o yoke_n from_o their_o neck_n they_o mutter_v at_o they_o &_o their_o commandment_n they_o revile_v they_o and_o use_v unreverent_a speech_n to_o they_o and_o of_o they_o both_o before_o their_o face_n and_o behind_o their_o back_n which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v hence_o it_o be_v that_o moses_n say_v exod._n 22_o 28._o thou_o shall_v not_o revile_v the_o god_n nor_o curse_v the_o ruler_n of_o thy_o people_n and_o eccl._n 10_o 20._o curse_v not_o the_o king_n no_o not_o in_o thy_o thought_n and_o curse_v not_o the_o rich_a in_o thy_o bedchamber_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o apostle_n will_v titus_n to_o exhort_v servant_n to_o be_v obedient_a to_o their_o own_o master_n and_o to_o please_v they_o well_o in_o all_o thing_n not_o answer_v again_o tit._n 2_o 9_o it_o fall_v out_o for_o the_o most_o part_n that_o they_o have_v least_o honour_n at_o their_o hand_n of_o who_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v great_a father_n and_o master_n have_v many_o time_n more_o honour_n out_o of_o their_o own_o door_n than_o they_o have_v within_o they_o &_o of_o other_o man_n servant_n and_o child_n than_o they_o have_v of_o their_o own_o for_o as_o christ_n say_v a_o prophet_n be_v not_o without_o honour_n but_o in_o his_o own_o country_n &_o among_o his_o own_o kin_n and_o in_o his_o own_o house_n so_o be_v it_o for_o the_o most_o part_n with_o all_o parent_n and_o master_n mark_v 6_o 4._o second_o if_o this_o duty_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v unto_o man_n much_o more_o must_v we_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v due_a unto_o god_n if_o reverence_n and_o obedience_n be_v due_a to_o mortal_a man_n who_o have_v the_o image_n of_o god_n upon_o they_o and_o that_o dark_o &_o obscure_o how_o much_o more_o may_v god_n just_o challenge_v these_o duty_n who_o have_v give_v power_n and_o authority_n unto_o man_n john_n 19_o 11._o hence_o it_o be_v that_o god_n say_v by_o the_o prophet_n if_o i_o be_v a_o father_n where_o be_v my_o honour_n and_o if_o i_o be_v a_o master_n where_o be_v my_o fear_n mal._n 1_o 6_o 8._o if_o you_o offer_v the_o lame_a and_o the_o sick_a be_v it_o not_o evil_a offer_v it_o now_o unto_o thy_o governor_n will_v he_o be_v please_v with_o thou_o or_o accept_v thy_o person_n numb_a 12_o verse_n 14_o heb._n 12_o verse_n 9_o 10._o last_o it_o belong_v to_o all_o superior_n so_o to_o carry_v themselves_o that_o they_o may_v procure_v and_o deserve_v reverence_n &_o do_v not_o just_o bring_v contempt_n upon_o themselves_o for_o this_o cause_n do_v paul_n teach_v timothy_n to_o fly_v youthful_a lust_n 2_o tim._n 2_o 22_o and_o to_o beware_v that_o he_o give_v not_o occasion_n to_o make_v other_o despise_v his_o youth_n 12._o 1_o tim._n 4_o 12._o which_o he_o shall_v do_v if_o he_o be_v a_o example_n to_o the_o believer_n in_o word_n in_o conversation_n in_o charity_n in_o spirit_n in_o faith_n and_o in_o purity_n forbid_v they_o here_o we_o see_v what_o joshua_n will_v have_v moses_n do_v he_o counsel_v he_o to_o restrain_v they_o a_o young_a man_n young_a counsel_n the_o doctrine_n from_o hence_o be_v other_o doctrine_n young_a man_n be_v ordinary_o rash_a in_o judge_v of_o other_o that_o young_a man_n be_v common_o and_o ordinary_o rash_a in_o judge_v other_o yea_o more_o rash_a than_o elder_a man_n &_o consequent_o more_o apt_a to_o judge_v amiss_o and_o to_o give_v evil_a counsel_n &_o sentence_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v well_o do_v such_o be_v rehoboam_n green_a head_n they_o give_v green_a counsel_n and_o such_o as_o cost_v he_o the_o loss_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o kingdom_n 1_o king_n 12_o verses_z 8_o 13_o 14._o gravity_n and_o sobriety_n be_v commend_v in_o elder_a man_n titus_n 2_o 1_o 2._o but_o young_a man_n follow_v the_o vanity_n of_o their_o young_a year_n eccl._n 11_o 9_o 10._o the_o reason_n be_v plain_a first_o age_n &_o year_n reason_v 1_o bring_v experience_n and_o ripeness_n of_o judgement_n and_o so_o wisdom_n youth_n be_v as_o green_a timber_n age_n as_o that_o which_o be_v season_v job_n 32_o 7._o i_o say_v day_n shall_v speak_v and_o multitude_n of_o year_n shall_v teach_v wisdom_n again_o their_o affection_n be_v hot_a and_o strong_a be_v more_o unconstant_a and_o unbrideled_a ready_a to_o run_v into_o extremity_n as_o untamed_a heiffer_v not_o use_v to_o the_o yoke_n last_o they_o put_v far_o from_o they_o the_o evil_a day_n they_o think_v themselves_o privilege_v by_o their_o age_n and_o make_v account_n they_o have_v time_n enough_o hereafter_o to_o enter_v into_o better_a course_n they_o live_v for_o the_o most_o part_n as_o if_o they_o have_v make_v a_o covenant_n with_o death_n and_o with_o hell_n and_o be_v less_o careful_a to_o be_v keep_v and_o guide_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o god_n law_n forasmuch_o as_o sentence_n be_v not_o execute_v speedy_o against_o a_o evil_a work_n 11._o eccl._n 8_o 11._o their_o heart_n be_v full_o set_v in_o they_o to_o do_v evil_a the_o use_n first_o this_o teach_v we_o not_o to_o rest_n use_v 1_o in_o the_o judgement_n nor_o to_o follow_v the_o counsel_n of_o young_a man_n except_o they_o have_v old_a man_n gift_n and_o grace_n in_o they_o for_o touch_v gift_n it_o be_v true_a which_o elihu_n testify_v job_n 32_o 9_o great_a man_n be_v not_o always_o wise_a neither_o do_v the_o age_a understand_v judgement_n old_a man_n may_v be_v young_a in_o gift_n and_o young_a man_n may_v be_v old_a in_o gift_n second_o let_v young_a man_n suffer_v their_o elder_n to_o speak_v before_o they_o especial_o in_o censure_v thing_n that_o be_v strange_a it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o wisdom_n for_o all_o especial_o for_o young_a man_n to_o suspect_v their_o own_o judgement_n and_o sentence_n concern_v other_o their_o person_n their_o gift_n and_o their_o action_n three_o it_o reprove_v those_o that_o set_v up_o in_o the_o church_n &_o promote_v to_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v such_o as_o be_v young_a in_o year_n and_o gift_n and_o not_o yet_o season_v to_o build_v up_o other_o but_o be_v light_n wanton_a rash_a not_o grave_n discreet_a and_o sober_a add_v unto_o these_o such_o as_o advance_v those_o that_o be_v plant_v new_o convert_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n before_o there_o be_v sufficient_a trial_n make_v of_o the_o soundness_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o the_o sincerity_n of_o their_o conversation_n paul_n teach_v timothy_n that_o the_o minister_n must_v not_o be_v a_o novice_n or_o one_o new_o come_v to_o the_o faith_n 1_o tim._n 3_o 6._o jest_n be_v lift_v up_o with_o pride_n he_o fall_v into_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o devil_n it_o be_v a_o fault_n among_o we_o that_o we_o many_o time_n give_v too_o easy_a access_n to_o the_o pulpit_n to_o such_o as_o bear_v themselves_o as_o convert_v among_o we_o i_o mean_v such_o as_o have_v be_v fugitive_n and_o forsake_v our_o church_n and_o return_v home_o again_o oftentimes_o worse_o than_o they_o go_v out_o and_o live_v scandalous_o to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o offence_n of_o many_o such_o aught_o to_o be_v thorough_o try_v and_o prove_v let_v they_o live_v in_o the_o place_n of_o common_a christian_n before_o they_o be_v trust_v with_o the_o place_n of_o captain_n and_o let_v they_o thereby_o purchase_v to_o themselves_o a_o good_a degree_n to_o far_a promotion_n last_o see_v rashness_n and_o unaduisednesse_n be_v special_o incident_a to_o youth_n let_v they_o learn_v to_o season_v their_o year_n with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n
this_o be_v the_o end_n that_o god_n aim_v at_o reason_n 3_o in_o all_o his_o threaten_n not_o the_o destruction_n of_o they_o that_o be_v threaten_v but_o their_o amendment_n ezek._n 18_o 23._o have_v i_o any_o pleasure_n at_o all_o that_o the_o wicked_a shall_v die_v say_v the_o lord_n god_n and_o not_o that_o he_o shall_v return_v from_o his_o way_n and_o live_v and_o ch_n 33_o 11._o why_o will_v you_o die_v o_o house_n of_o israel_n the_o use_n first_o consider_v that_o in_o the_o great_a use_n 1_o and_o most_o fearful_a threaten_n of_o god_n heavy_a judgement_n the●e_n be_v comfort_n remain_v and_o hope_v of_o grace_n and_o mercy_n to_o be_v find_v there_o be_v life_n in_o death_n and_o health_n in_o sickness_n if_o we_o can_v change_v and_o amend_v thus_o do_v the_o prince_n of_o judah_n profit_n by_o the_o threaten_n of_o the_o prophet_n when_o he_o have_v threaten_v desolation_n of_o the_o lord_n house_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o whole_a land_n for_o which_o the_o priest_n and_o people_n will_v have_v put_v he_o to_o death_n they_o plead_v the_o practice_n &_o example_n of_o good_a hezekiah_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o themselves_o and_o the_o people_n of_o his_o time_n and_o thereby_o stir_v up_o themselves_o to_o fear_v the_o lord_n and_o to_o turn_v from_o their_o evil_a way_n jer._n 26.18_o the_o place_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v consider_v where_o the_o prince_n show_v that_o jeremy_n do_v no_o more_o they_o micah_n have_v do_v before_o he_o yet_o hezekiah_n and_o all_o judah_n do_v not_o put_v he_o to_o death_n but_o fear_v the_o lord_n and_o beseech_v he_o of_o mercy_n and_o the_o lord_n repent_v he_o of_o the_o evil_n which_o he_o have_v pronounce_v against_o they_o but_o it_o may_v be_v object_v objection_n objection_n if_o god_n threaten_v one_o thing_n and_o do_v another_o it_o may_v seem_v his_o will_n be_v changeable_a and_o that_o he_o have_v two_o will_n i_o answer_v answer_v the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o as_o god_n be_v one_o but_o it_o be_v distinguish_v into_o that_o which_o be_v secret_a &_o reveal_v as_o the_o church_n be_v sometime_o visible_a and_o sometime_o invisible_a yet_o but_o one_o church_n the_o secret_a will_n be_v of_o thing_n hide_v with_o himself_o and_o not_o manifest_v in_o the_o word_n the_o reveal_v be_v of_o thing_n make_v know_v in_o the_o scripture_n deut._n 29_o 29._o and_o by_o daily_a experience_n the_o secret_a be_v without_o condition_n the_o reveal_v with_o condition_n and_o therefore_o for_o the_o most_o part_n it_o be_v join_v with_o exhortation_n admonition_n instruction_n and_o reprehension_n but_o no_o man_n be_v exhort_v and_o admonish_v to_o do_v his_o secret_a will_n because_o no_o man_n can_v resist_v it_o the_o reprobate_a and_o devil_n themselves_o be_v subject_a unto_o it_o and_o must_v perform_v it_o rom._n 9.19_o use_v 2_o second_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o minister_n to_o propound_v the_o threaten_n of_o god_n with_o such_o condition_n provoke_v and_o persuade_v all_o man_n to_o repentance_n and_o amendment_n of_o life_n offer_v grace_n and_o mercy_n to_o the_o humble_a and_o break_a heart_a 16._o 〈◊〉_d 1_o 4_o 14._o ●2_n 3_o esa_n ●_o 16._o they_o be_v to_o preach_v not_o only_o the_o law_n but_o likewise_o with_o the_o law_n the_o gospel_n and_o thus_o they_o be_v say_v both_o to_o bind_v and_o loose_v both_o to_o retain_v sin_n and_o to_o forgive_v for_o as_o eliah_n by_o his_o earnest_n and_o zealous_a prayer_n do_v both_o shut_v up_o the_o heaven_n 18._o 〈◊〉_d 4.25_o jam._n ●_o 18._o and_o open_v the_o window_n of_o heaven_n so_o that_o it_o give_v rain_n and_o the_o earth_n bring_v forth_o her_o fruit_n so_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n by_o their_o earnest_n &_o zealous_a preach_n do_v shut_v up_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n against_o all_o obstinate_a person_n 16.19_o ●●th_n 16.19_o and_o also_o open_a the_o heaven_n to_o such_o as_o be_v penitent_a to_o propound_v the_o threaten_n of_o god_n without_o condition_n be_v to_o bring_v man_n to_o despair_n and_o to_o take_v from_o they_o all_o hope_n of_o mercy_n and_o forgiveness_n three_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o people_n whensoever_o use_v 3_o they_o hear_v the_o theatning_n of_o god_n to_o stir_v up_o themselves_o to_o repentance_n thereby_o to_o prevent_v his_o wrath_n and_o to_o stay_v his_o judgement_n let_v we_o take_v heed_n we_o do_v not_o rush_v on_o as_o the_o horse_n in_o the_o day_n of_o battle_n 12._o 〈◊〉_d 12.11_o 12._o to_o our_o destruction_n and_o thus_o have_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n understand_v his_o threaten_n and_o account_v they_o as_o a_o sermon_n of_o repentance_n as_o we_o hear_v before_o of_o hezekiah_n king_n of_o judah_n and_o all_o judah_n with_o he_o when_o micah_n the_o morashite_v prophesy_v say_v 26.18_o 〈◊〉_d 26.18_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n zion_n shall_v be_v plough_v like_o a_o field_n &_o jerusalem_n shall_v become_v heap_n they_o fall_v not_o into_o desperation_n neither_o conclude_v a_o impossibility_n of_o obtain_v pardon_n and_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o city_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n but_o beseech_v the_o lord_n and_o fear_v his_o name_n &_o the_o lord_n repent_v he_o of_o the_o plague_n which_o he_o have_v denounce_v against_o they_o and_o no_o marvel_n that_o this_o godly_a king_n conceive_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o threaten_n in_o that_o manner_n for_o so_o do_v the_o king_n of_o niniveh_n a_o heathen_a and_o idolatrous_a king_n understand_v the_o threaten_n of_o jonah_n no_o otherwise_o who_o can_v tell_v if_o god_n will_v turn_v and_o repent_v 9_o 〈◊〉_d 3_o 9_o &_o turn_v away_o from_o his_o fierce_a anger_n that_o we_o perish_v not_o thus_o also_o do_v hezekiah_n before_o name_v understand_v the_o message_n send_v to_o he_o from_o god_n by_o esayah_n when_o he_o be_v sick_a unto_o death_n 1.2_o 〈◊〉_d 3●_n 1.2_o set_v thy_o house_n in_o order_n for_o thou_o shall_v die_v and_o not_o live_v and_o therefore_o he_o turn_v his_o face_n to_o the_o wall_n and_o pray_v to_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n let_v we_o make_v this_o use_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o of_o all_o the_o threaten_n contain_v therein_o to_o be_v stir_v up_o to_o repentance_n and_o obedience_n lest_o we_o be_v destroy_v if_o there_o be_v no_o change_n in_o we_o let_v we_o look_v for_o a_o change_n from_o god_n and_o he_o will_v never_o change_v his_o threaten_n except_o we_o change_v our_o life_n and_o conversation_n use_v 4_o four_o see_v the_o threaten_n of_o god_n suppose_v a_o condition_n we_o must_v also_o know_v how_o we_o ought_v to_o understand_v his_o promise_n to_o wit_n with_o a_o condition_n the_o threaten_n of_o god_n have_v a_o condition_n of_o repentance_n the_o promise_n have_v a_o condition_n of_o faith_n and_o obedience_n 1.19_o esay_n 1.19_o god_n have_v make_v many_o merciful_a promise_n unto_o we_o in_o his_o holy_a word_n howbeit_o he_o have_v not_o otherwise_o bind_v himself_o unto_o we_o than_o we_o will_v acknowledge_v ourselves_o bind_v in_o duty_n to_o serve_v he_o we_o must_v not_o only_o consider_v what_o god_n promise_v to_o we_o but_o withal_o remember_v what_o he_o require_v of_o us._n hence_o it_o be_v that_z the_o prophet_n say_v i_o will_v speak_v sudden_o concern_v a_o nation_n and_o concern_v a_o kingdom_n to_o build_v it_o and_o to_o plant_v it_o 10._o jer_z 18.9_o 10._o but_o if_o it_o do_v evil_a in_o my_o sight_n that_o it_o obey_v not_o my_o voice_n then_o will_v i_o repent_v of_o the_o good_a wherewith_o i_o say_v i_o will_v benefit_n they_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o love_v we_o but_o he_o require_v at_o our_o hand_n to_o love_v he_o again_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n but_o he_o charge_v we_o to_o forgive_v they_o that_o trespass_n against_o us._n he_o have_v promise_v to_o be_v a_o father_n unto_o we_o but_o he_o look_v for_o at_o our_o hand_n that_o we_o walk_v before_o he_o as_o obedient_a child_n last_o if_o god_n threaten_v and_o no_o repentance_n use_v 5_o follow_v then_o certain_o the_o threaten_n pronounce_v will_v come_v to_o p●sse_v god_n threaten_v not_o in_o vain_a he_o terrifi_v not_o without_o cause_n if_o we_o do_v not_o prevent_v they_o they_o will_v prevent_v we_o and_o take_v we_o away_o sudden_o see_v the_o fearful_a example_n of_o the_o flood_n of_o sodom_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o the_o jew_n of_o the_o seven_o church_n of_o asia_n and_o other_o church_n plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n supplant_v in_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n all_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o point_n consider_v our_o own_o way_n in_o our_o heart_n we_o live_v where_o we_o
of_o wiar_a to_o draw_v blood_n in_o many_o place_n true_a it_o be_v he_o be_v not_o strike_v with_o this_o rage_a pestilence_n nevertheless_o he_o be_v diverse_o punish_v with_o it_o with_o grief_n and_o sorrow_n with_o horror_n &_o fear_n with_o loss_n of_o his_o subject_n &_o of_o his_o honour_n pro._n 14_o 28_o the_o use_n first_o this_o serve_v as_o a_o admonition_n use_v 1_o to_o all_o parent_n to_o teach_v they_o that_o if_o they_o love_v their_o son_n they_o must_v leave_v their_o sin_n and_o walk_v in_o a_o careful_a obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n if_o they_o do_v not_o remember_v his_o commandment_n it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o will_v not_o remember_v their_o child_n for_o good_a but_o for_o evil_a if_o they_o there_o be_v no_o love_n in_o we_o either_o towards_o god_n or_o ourselves_o yet_o for_o the_o child_n sake_n of_o our_o body_n and_o for_o our_o posterity_n that_o come_v after_o we_o we_o shall_v labour_v to_o forsake_v our_o sin_n for_o his_o judgement_n shall_v not_o end_v in_o we_o but_o follow_v we_o at_o the_o heel_n and_o fall_v upon_o such_o as_o be_v near_o we_o and_o belong_v unto_o us._n god_n will_v take_v vengeance_n of_o the_o child_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o parent_n although_o they_o have_v in_o themselves_o enough_o to_o work_v out_o their_o own_o destruction_n yea_o though_o they_o have_v no_o more_o in_o they_o but_o original_a sin_n many_o love_v their_o child_n better_a than_o themselves_o and_o desire_v their_o good_a more_o than_o their_o own_o if_o we_o will_v indeed_o show_v our_o love_n to_o they_o we_o must_v walk_v in_o obedience_n unto_o god_n to_o say_v we_o love_v they_o dear_o and_o yet_o to_o live_v profane_o be_v utter_o to_o deceive_v ourselves_o to_o commit_v wickedness_n with_o greediness_n be_v not_o the_o way_n to_o show_v our_o love_n to_o they_o or_o to_o procure_v their_o safety_n but_o rather_o to_o make_v they_o partaker_n with_o we_o in_o the_o punishment_n many_o child_n may_v now_o say_v to_o their_o parent_n as_o zipporah_n say_v to_o moses_n for_o as_o she_o say_v 26._o exod._n 4_o 26._o thou_o be_v a_o bloody_a husband_n to_o i_o in_o like_a manner_n may_v many_o child_n say_v to_o their_o parent_n you_o be_v indeed_o bloody_a parent_n unto_o we_o because_o they_o have_v bring_v the_o curse_n of_o god_n both_o upon_o themselves_o and_o upon_o their_o posterity_n alas_o do_v man_n marry_v wife_n to_o bring_v forth_o child_n to_o satan_n to_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o fire_n of_o god_n wrath_n be_v there_o no_o care_n in_o you_o o_o father_n no_o love_n in_o you_o o_o mother_n to_o your_o own_o child_n the_o fruit_n of_o your_o own_o body_n if_o there_o be_v any_o spark_n of_o piety_n nay_o of_o pity_n and_o compassion_n in_o we_o let_v we_o show_v it_o in_o this_o by_o forsake_v of_o our_o sin_n and_o by_o reform_v of_o our_o life_n whatsoever_o be_v amiss_o in_o we_o and_o by_o give_v unto_o they_o a_o good_a example_n of_o life_n otherwise_o most_o certain_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n extend_v even_o to_o our_o house_n and_o little_a one_o he_o will_v forget_v to_o show_v mercy_n unto_o they_o but_o in_o great_a wrath_n &_o heavy_a displeasure_n will_v he_o remember_v they_o let_v not_o these_o thing_n be_v forget_v but_o remember_v &_o grave_v in_o our_o heart_n to_o wit_n that_o wicked_a parent_n be_v the_o great_a enemy_n to_o their_o child_n we_o can_v abide_v that_o other_o shall_v entreat_v they_o evil_o when_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n none_o do_v more_o hurt_v they_o and_o misuse_v they_o them_z ourselves_o use_v 2_o second_o it_o reprove_v those_o parent_n that_o imagine_v by_o fraud_n and_o oppression_n wrongful_a &_o injurious_a deal_n to_o set_v up_o their_o child_n and_o enrich_v their_o posterity_n and_o get_v to_o themselves_o great_a name_n whereas_o this_o be_v the_o ready_a way_n to_o bring_v the_o curse_n of_o god_n upon_o their_o name_n upon_o their_o substance_n upon_o their_o house_n upon_o their_o child_n upon_o their_o labour_n and_o upon_o all_o their_o posterity_n such_o covetous_a practice_n whatsoever_o their_o pretence_n be_v can_v build_v up_o their_o house_n which_o they_o may_v easy_o know_v if_o they_o do_v believe_v the_o word_n which_o teach_v that_o god_n be_v a_o avenger_n of_o all_o such_o thing_n 1._o thess_n 11.12_o ●_o 2_o 11.12_o 4_o 6._o and_o the_o prophet_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o stone_n shall_v cry_v out_o of_o the_o wall_n and_o the_o beam_n out_o of_o the_o timber_n shall_v answer_v it_o woe_n to_o he_o that_o build_v a_o town_n with_o blood_n etc._n etc._n this_o woe_n fall_v upon_o ahab_n that_o ruin_v his_o house_n as_o it_o do_v many_o great_a house_n in_o our_o day_n use_v 3_o three_o this_o warn_v we_o that_o therefore_o we_o shall_v not_o sleep_v secure_o in_o sin_n because_o god_n by_o and_o by_o punish_v it_o one_o way_n or_o other_o the_o wicked_a be_v often_o see_v in_o great_a power_n spread_v themselves_o like_o the_o green_a bay_n tree_n psal_n 37_o 35_o and_o they_o go_v unpunished_a for_o a_o while_n ps_n 73._o job_n 21._o but_o look_n upon_o their_o posterity_n and_o you_o shall_v see_v god_n meet_v with_o they_o in_o his_o good_a time_n yea_o often_o when_o they_o be_v dead_a and_o rot_a evil_a do_v be_v always_o attend_v with_o evil_a success_n in_o themselves_o or_o in_o those_o that_o be_v they_o 〈◊〉_d ●otable_a ●cment_n of_o 〈◊〉_d we_o see_v tyrant_n and_o bloody_a persecutor_n flourish_v and_o prosper_v for_o a_o time_n howbeit_o if_o not_o in_o their_o own_o person_n yet_o in_o the_o second_o or_o three_o descent_n they_o have_v be_v bury_v under_o the_o ruin_n of_o those_o building_n of_o which_o the_o mortar_n have_v be_v temper_v with_o innocent_a blood_n we_o note_v this_o before_o in_o the_o person_n of_o ahab_n after_o he_o have_v shed_v the_o blood_n of_o naboth_n the_o true_a servant_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o child_n who_o i_o pray_v you_o can_v do_v great_a hurt_n to_o his_o own_o house_n then_o himself_o do_v not_o he_o in_o a_o manner_n pull_v it_o down_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n for_o therefore_o be_v the_o kingdom_n take_v away_o and_o remove_v from_o his_o house_n and_o his_o seventy_o child_n be_v all_o slay_v with_o the_o edge_n of_o the_o sword_n 1_o king_n 21_o 21._o behold_v i_o will_v bring_v evil_a upon_o thou_o and_o will_v take_v away_o thy_o posterity_n etc._n etc._n thus_o be_v it_o with_o jeroboam_fw-la who_o make_v israel_n to_o sin_n god_n sweep_v he_o away_o and_o all_o his_o stock_n as_o dung_n from_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n 1_o king_n 14.10_o it_o behove_v therefore_o prince_n and_o subject_n to_o pray_v one_o for_o another_o forasmuch_o as_o god_n take_v occasion_n by_o the_o sin_n of_o one_o man_n to_o punish_v another_o this_o duty_n shall_v also_o be_v perform_v of_o father_n and_o child_n of_o master_n and_o their_o family_n lest_o god_n cast_v they_o together_o in_o one_o judgement_n last_o child_n ought_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n to_o use_v 4_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o their_o parent_n it_o be_v no_o just_a defence_n or_o good_a excuse_n before_o god_n to_o say_v our_o parent_n do_v so_o if_o they_o have_v be_v wicked_a swearer_n and_o blasphemer_n contemner_n of_o the_o word_n &_o of_o the_o sabbath_n of_o god_n we_o must_v not_o follow_v they_o in_o their_o sin_n lest_o we_o reap_v the_o fruit_n of_o that_o which_o they_o have_v sow_v wherefore_o child_n must_v not_o walk_v in_o the_o wicked_a way_n of_o their_o father_n but_o rather_o be_v humble_v and_o crave_v pardon_n and_o forgiveness_n even_o for_o their_o sin_n which_o they_o after_o a_o sort_n have_v bequeath_v as_o a_o legacy_n unto_o they_o so_o that_o their_o child_n inherit_v their_o sin_n as_o well_o as_o their_o substance_n because_o they_o send_v forth_o a_o evil_a savour_n which_o bring_v down_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n upon_o they_o as_o dan._n 9_o 8_o 16_o where_o daniel_n do_v not_o only_o confess_v his_o own_o sin_n and_o of_o other_o that_o then_o live_v but_o he_o be_v wonderful_o cast_v down_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o predecessor_n for_o our_o sin_n &_o for_o the_o iniquity_n of_o our_o father_n jerusalem_n and_o thy_o people_n be_v become_v a_o reproach_n to_o all_o that_o be_v about_o us._n and_o the_o lord_n promise_v on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o he_o which_o see_v his_o father_n sin_n &_o be_v humble_v for_o they_o and_o do_v not_o the_o like_a shall_v not_o be_v punish_v for_o they_o 18.14_o ezek._n 18.14_o but_o shall_v find_v god_n merciful_a unto_o he_o but_o whosoever_o see_v the_o wickedness_n of_o his_o father_n and_o justifi_v they_o by_o word_n or_o practice_n
al●est_n 11_o ●catech_v 15_o in_o 2_o thes_n by_o most_o of_o the_o ancient_n last_o the_o condition_n and_o quality_n of_o antichrist_n do_v bewray_v the_o same_o also_o now_o he_o be_v plain_o describe_v by_o the_o apostle_n 2_o thess_n 2_o 4._o yea_o so_o plain_o as_o if_o then_o he_o have_v be_v already_o come_v and_o reveal_v to_o the_o world_n he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o adversary_n oppose_v to_o christ_n yet_o not_o profess_v but_o disguise_v for_o under_o the_o mask_n and_o vizard_n of_o hypocrisy_n he_o oppugn_v christ_n and_o his_o truth_n and_o deni_v the_o lord_n jesus_n to_o be_v that_o christ_n anoint_v to_o be_v the_o only_a king_n the_o only_a priest_n and_o the_o only_a prophet_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n will_v have_v a_o share_n and_o communicate_v they_o to_o other_o this_o high_a priest_n be_v no_o better_a than_o a_o apostate_n a_o star_n fall_v from_o heaven_n he_o lift_v up_o himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n that_o be_v all_o to_o who_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v communicate_v and_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o god_n four_o a_o perfect_a papist_n that_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o acknowledge_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o jesuite_n can_v be_v a_o good_a subject_n neither_o obey_v for_o conscience_n sake_n for_o he_o believe_v the_o pope_n sentence_n in_o excommunication_n to_o be_v good_a nay_o to_o be_v god_n sentence_n he_o obey_v so_o long_o as_o please_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o instrument_n he_o keep_v not_o promise_n or_o oath_n with_o heretic_n he_o receive_v pardon_n to_o free_a from_o loyalty_n and_o allegiance_n harbour_v seminary_n look_v for_o a_o golden_a day_n practise_v the_o most_o devilish_a device_n to_o establish_v popery_n entertain_v conference_n with_o his_o prince_n swear_v enemy_n and_o maintain_v that_o this_o proud_a prelate_n may_v depose_v prince_n by_o his_o priestly_a power_n last_o it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o prince_n and_o state_n to_o permit_v they_o forasmuch_o as_o hereby_o they_o have_v mean_n to_o work_v and_o wreak_v their_o malice_n recusant_n will_v converse_v with_o jesuite_n must_v free_o and_o jesuite_n shall_v not_o be_v keep_v to_o any_o good_a term_n and_o behaviour_n whereby_o the_o secret_n of_o the_o land_n be_v disclose_v homebred_a foe_n be_v increase_v good_a subject_n be_v discourage_v and_o mean_v afford_v to_o hollow-hearted_a enemy_n to_o forecast_v and_o to_o fortify_v themselves_o use_v 2_o second_o this_o serve_v to_o reprove_v diverse_a sort_n that_o err_v in_o practice_n &_o offend_v against_o this_o rule_n and_o first_o of_o all_o such_o as_o seek_v revenge_n and_o thereby_o show_v themselves_o far_o from_o true_a love_n to_o revenge_n wrong_v be_v proper_a to_o god_n we_o must_v not_o intrude_v upon_o his_o office_n neither_o usurp_v his_o right_a deu._n 32_o 35._o ro._n 12_o 19_o heb._n 10_o 30._o psal_n 94_o 1._o pro._n 14_o 29._o if_o we_o practise_v this_o we_o work_v wickedness_n against_o he_o and_o provoke_v he_o to_o work_v revenge_n upon_o ourselves_o be_v it_o a_o small_a offence_n for_o any_o subject_n to_o usurp_v the_o office_n of_o the_o prince_n or_o of_o the_o judge_n in_o give_v sentence_n upon_o any_o such_o usurper_n be_v such_o person_n against_o god._n again_o it_o serve_v to_o rebuke_v such_o as_o will_v not_o forgive_v how_o can_v such_o persuade_v themselves_o to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o one_o body_n with_o their_o brethren_n while_o they_o refuse_v to_o be_v one_o with_o they_o these_o do_v make_v a_o heavy_a law_n against_o themselves_o mat._n 6_o 14_o 15._o &_o 18_o 22._o &_o 5_o 44._o 1_o pet._n 3_o 8._o three_o such_o as_o have_v no_o feel_n of_o the_o trouble_n &_o calamity_n of_o their_o brethren_n heb._n 13_o 3._o much_o more_o such_o as_o add_v affliction_n to_o the_o afflict_a the_o captivate_v jew_n complain_v against_o the_o insolency_n and_o cruelty_n of_o the_o chaldaean_n ps_n 137_o 3._o they_o require_v of_o they_o in_o scorn_n and_o derision_n to_o sing_v in_o their_o hear_v one_o of_o the_o song_n of_o zion_n and_o make_v themselves_o merry_a when_o they_o see_v they_o heavy_a heart_a the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o people_n be_v unmerciful_a &_o have_v no_o pity_n esay_n 47_o 6._o god_n reprove_v for_o this_o psal_n 102_o 19_o last_o all_o member_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v live_v use_v 3_o in_o all_o love_n peace_n and_o concord_n one_o with_o another_o gen._n 13._o consider_v we_o be_v brethren_n and_o avoid_v all_o dissension_n and_o discord_n as_o in_o the_o natural_a body_n we_o see_v how_o one_o member_n be_v ready_a to_o aid_v &_o affect_v another_o and_o stand_v for_o the_o good_a of_o another_o so_o shall_v it_o be_v in_o the_o mystical_a body_n all_o shall_v be_v unite_v together_o as_o the_o subject_n of_o one_o prince_n that_o belong_v to_o one_o kingdom_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o same_o law_n &_o bind_v to_o maintain_v mutual_a peace_n one_o with_o another_o so_o if_o god_n be_v our_o king_n and_o rule_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n and_o if_o we_o belong_v to_o his_o kingdom_n we_o must_v embrace_v one_o another_o in_o love_n 3._o ephes_n 4_o 3._o and_o endeavour_n to_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n we_o must_v do_v nothing_o through_o strife_n and_o vainglory_n phil._n 2.3_o 10._o 1_o cor._n 1_o 10._o we_o must_v all_o speak_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o there_o be_v no_o division_n among_o us._n hatred_n be_v a_o fruit_n of_o the_o flesh_n gal._n 5_o 20._o 2._o galath_n 6_o 2._o on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o walk_v in_o love_n be_v to_o walk_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o it_o be_v a_o fruit_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1._o 1_o cor._n 13.1_o &_o 14_o 1._o if_o we_o have_v never_o so_o excellent_a gift_n all_o remain_v unprofitable_a without_o this_o now_o us._n the_o way_n to_o try_v whether_o the_o love_n of_o the_o brethren_n be_v in_o us._n the_o way_n to_o try_v whether_o this_o be_v in_o we_o towards_o the_o brethren_n be_v to_o examine_v it_o by_o these_o four_o rule_n first_o christian_a love_n must_v not_o begin_v for_o any_o worldly_a respect_n nor_o end_n for_o worldly_a respect_n and_o consideration_n but_o principal_o must_v be_v for_o and_o in_o god_n carnal_a love_n be_v begin_v for_o carnal_a respect_n and_o therefore_o soon_o wither_v away_o we_o must_v love_v our_o brethren_n principal_o because_o they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o member_n of_o christ_n 17._o joh._n 20_o 17._o they_o be_v his_o brethren_n and_o he_o account_v they_o so_o and_o therefore_o if_o god_n be_v our_o father_n and_o christ_n our_o brother_n they_o also_o must_v be_v our_o brethren_n this_o be_v express_v by_o the_o apostle_n 1_o john_n 5_o 1._o every_o one_o that_o love_v he_o that_o beget_v love_v he_o also_o which_o be_v beget_v that_o be_v whosoever_o love_v god_n the_o father_n love_v also_o the_o son_n of_o god_n second_o true_a christian_a love_n must_v not_o be_v outward_a in_o show_n only_o but_o inward_a in_o the_o heart_n 1_o john_n 3_o 18._o to_o love_v in_o show_n be_v the_o love_n of_o cain_n towards_o abel_n three_o we_o must_v love_v those_o that_o be_v our_o enemy_n and_o hate_v we_o for_o if_o we_o love_v they_o only_o that_o love_n we_o what_o singular_a thing_n do_v we_o or_o what_o reward_n have_v we_o math._n 5_o 46_o 47._o last_o christian_a love_n must_v not_o be_v only_o in_o time_n of_o prosperity_n but_o be_v chief_o try_v in_o adversity_n when_o most_o need_n be_v this_o rule_n be_v set_v down_o by_o the_o apostle_n john_n whosoever_o have_v this_o world_n good_n and_o see_v his_o brother_n have_v need_n and_o shut_v up_o his_o compassion_n from_o he_o how_o dwell_v the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o he_o 1_o john_n 3_o 17._o and_o solomon_n show_v that_o a_o friend_n love_v at_o all_o time_n and_o a_o brother_n be_v bear_v for_o adversity_n prou._n 17_o 7._o in_o time_n of_o peace_n and_o plenty_n every_o one_o will_v seem_v a_o friend_n but_o not_o in_o misery_n the_o poor_a be_v hate_v even_o of_o his_o own_o neighbour_n but_o the_o rich_a have_v many_o friend_n proverbe_n chap._n 14._o verse_n 20._o howbeit_o in_o time_n of_o need_n be_v the_o true_a friend_n try_v these_o rule_n must_v serve_v for_o our_o instruction_n we_o must_v love_v all_o those_o that_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o grace_n and_o adoption_n we_o must_v love_v all_o those_o that_o be_v the_o brethren_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n &_o sanctification_n we_o must_v love_v they_o inward_o in_o truth_n and_o in_o heart_n we_o must_v love_v our_o enemy_n and_o not_o only_o in_o
what_o not_o shall_v all_o be_v bar_v therefore_o from_o the_o heavenly_a manna_n which_o be_v sweet_a than_o the_o honey_n and_o the_o honey_n comb_n more_o to_o be_v desire_v then_o great_a heap_n of_o riches_n which_o be_v much_o more_o profitable_a than_o be_v the_o find_n of_o great_a spoil_n the_o scripture_n be_v a_o notable_a part_n of_o our_o spiritual_a armour_n ephes_n 6_o 17._o able_a to_o offend_v and_o to_o wound_v our_o enemy_n if_o a_o captain_n shall_v go_v into_o the_o field_n with_o his_o soldier_n and_o suffer_v they_o to_o carry_v with_o they_o no_o weapon_n but_o such_o as_o shall_v serve_v to_o defend_v their_o own_o body_n and_o forbid_v they_o such_o armour_n as_o shall_v any_o way_n hurt_v their_o enemy_n if_o he_o shall_v permit_v they_o the_o shield_n but_o not_o the_o sword_n or_o allow_v they_o a_o corslet_n but_o not_o the_o spear_n will_v he_o not_o be_v think_v and_o that_o just_o and_o worthy_o to_o betray_v they_o into_o the_o enemy_n hand_n but_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o the_o popish_a captain_n that_o must_v or_o at_o least_o will_v be_v account_v the_o only_a master_n of_o israel_n they_o allow_v to_o the_o people_n after_o a_o sort_n the_o girdle_n of_o truth_n the_o breast_n plate_n of_o righteousness_n the_o shield_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o rest_n to_o defend_v themselves_o but_o touch_v the_o sword_n the_o two_o edge_a sword_n of_o the_o word_n heb._n 4_o 12_o wherewith_o christ_n our_o saviour_n resist_v and_o we_o after_o his_o example_n must_v resist_v the_o devil_n matth._n 4_o 4._o they_o forbid_v they_o to_o gird_v that_o about_o their_o loin_n as_o if_o it_o be_v like_o saules_n armour_n 39_o 1_o sam._n 17_o 39_o which_o david_n can_v not_o go_v withal_o because_o he_o have_v not_o prove_v it_o whereas_o indeed_o it_o be_v like_o david_n sling_n &_o the_o stone_n which_o he_o slang_v that_o smite_v the_o philistine_n in_o the_o forehead_n and_o cause_v he_o to_o fall_v upon_o his_o face_n to_o the_o earth_n verse_n 49._o and_o therefore_o what_o do_v they_o but_o treacherous_o betray_v the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o lead_v they_o naked_a into_o the_o field_n to_o be_v utter_o spoil_v and_o so_o to_o fall_v before_o their_o enemy_n second_o it_o confute_v those_o among_o ourselves_o that_o say_v what_o need_n so_o much_o teach_v and_o preach_v there_o be_v some_o that_o think_v themselves_o to_o be_v wise_a man_n much_o wise_a than_o their_o fellow_n that_o stick_v not_o to_o speak_v thus_o but_o this_o their_o wisdom_n be_v no_o better_a than_o foolishness_n with_o god_n 1_o cor._n 1.23_o the_o preach_v of_o the_o cross_n i_o confess_v be_v account_v no_o better_a than_o foolishness_n but_o it_o be_v to_o they_o that_o perish_v whereas_o to_o they_o that_o be_v save_v it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n it_o be_v account_v a_o state-policie_n now_o adays_o to_o defend_v little_a preach_v and_o less_o hear_v but_o ignorance_n can_v uphold_v no_o kingdom_n state_n true_a religion_n be_v the_o stay_n and_o pillar_n of_o a_o state_n religion_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o stay_n of_o a_o state_n and_o commonwealth_n the_o want_n of_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o tumult_n rebellion_n insurrection_n and_o sedition_n what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o rebellion_n in_o the_o north_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o late_a sovereign_n of_o bless_a memory_n be_v it_o any_o other_o than_o want_v of_o knowledge_n and_o of_o preacher_n to_o plant_v knowledge_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n but_o bless_v be_v god_n they_o have_v since_o be_v better_o store_v and_o that_o have_v bring_v better_a quietness_n in_o those_o part_n and_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o often_o rise_n rebellion_n and_o treason_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n at_o this_o day_n but_o because_o they_o remain_v either_o atheist_n or_o popish_a or_o sottish_a want_v the_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n to_o instruct_v and_o inform_v they_o better_o true_a religion_n be_v a_o bulwark_n and_o a_o castle_n of_o defence_n to_o any_o kingdom_n the_o very_a chariot_n and_o horseman_n of_o israel_n 2_o king_n 2.12_o and_o godliness_n have_v the_o promise_n of_o this_o life_n and_o of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v 1_o tim._n 4_o 8._o wherefore_o they_o be_v profane_a speech_n of_o ignorant_a people_n or_o of_o idle_a teacher_n go_v about_o to_o maintain_v their_o ignorance_n and_o idleness_n who_o think_v that_o a_o sermon_n in_o a_o quarter_n be_v sufficient_a either_o for_o the_o minister_n to_o preach_v or_o the_o people_n to_o hear_v if_o you_o mark_v or_o will_v examine_v what_o the_o people_n be_v that_o live_v under_o such_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n you_o shall_v see_v they_o know_v nothing_o but_o the_o minister_n must_v preach_v in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n &_o the_o dull_a the_o scholar_n be_v he_o shall_v have_v his_o lesson_n the_o more_o often_o repeat_v such_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v the_o people_n slow_a in_o hear_v dull_a in_o conceive_v weak_a in_o remember_v &_o bear_v away_o what_o they_o have_v hear_v some_o there_o be_v who_o not_o only_o be_v ignorant_a but_o defend_v their_o ignorance_n and_o think_v man_n need_v not_o have_v any_o knowledge_n in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o trouble_v themselves_o any_o way_n about_o it_o these_o do_v imagine_v that_o it_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o minister_n and_o other_o learned_a man_n to_o know_v the_o scripture_n and_o it_o be_v fit_a he_o shall_v have_v more_o knowledge_n than_o a_o private_a man_n because_o he_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n to_o teach_v the_o people_n but_o this_o exempt_v not_o the_o people_n from_o it_o for_o take_v this_o as_o a_o certain_a principle_n that_o the_o poor_a &_o simple_a person_n must_v have_v as_o much_o knowledge_n for_o matter_n of_o salvation_n as_o the_o minister_n have_v or_o else_o he_o shall_v never_o be_v save_v use_v 3_o last_o let_v all_o man_n know_v man_n and_o woman_n child_n and_o servant_n that_o in_o their_o several_a place_n they_o be_v bind_v to_o exercise_v themselves_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o daily_o to_o meditate_v in_o they_o that_o so_o thereby_o they_o may_v come_v to_o knowledge_n for_o without_o knowledge_n in_o the_o word_n it_o be_v unpossible_a for_o any_o to_o be_v save_v the_o way_n for_o a_o man_n to_o get_v his_o live_n by_o his_o trade_n be_v not_o to_o exercise_v himself_o in_o it_o once_o in_o a_o week_n or_o to_o employ_v himself_o to_o it_o once_o in_o a_o quarter_n but_o he_o must_v use_v it_o daily_o and_o diligent_o or_o else_o he_o shall_v never_o live_v by_o it_o or_o thrive_v in_o it_o so_o may_v i_o say_v in_o this_o case_n a_o man_n that_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o live_v hereafter_o in_o a_o better_a life_n it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o he_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o to_o meditate_v in_o they_o now_o and_o then_o or_o when_o he_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o do_v and_o to_o keep_v himself_o from_o idleness_n but_o he_o must_v observe_v a_o constant_a and_o continual_a course_n in_o the_o search_n and_o read_v of_o they_o that_o by_o they_o he_o may_v come_v to_o knowledge_n by_o knowledge_n to_o faith_n by_o faith_n to_o obedience_n and_o by_o obedience_n to_o salvation_n ignorance_n shall_v excuse_v no_o man_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n he_o that_o know_v not_o his_o master_n will_n shall_v be_v beat_v luke_n 12_o 48._o hosea_n 4_o 1_o 3._o if_o we_o think_v to_o plead_v for_o ourselves_o and_o to_o allege_v in_o our_o defence_n that_o we_o follow_v our_o calling_n to_o earn_v our_o live_n &_o to_o maintain_v our_o family_n it_o shall_v not_o serve_v our_o turn_n this_o will_v not_o be_v take_v for_o currant_n payment_n our_o particular_a and_o our_o general_a call_n agree_v well_o together_o god_n have_v not_o join_v they_o in_o every_o man_n our_o particular_a call_n be_v to_o follow_v our_o business_n our_o general_a call_n be_v to_o know_v the_o scripture_n the_o one_o do_v not_o abrogate_v the_o other_o inasmuch_o as_o god_n have_v command_v they_o both_o &_o what_o god_n have_v couple_v together_o no_o man_n shall_v put_v asunder_o math._n 19_o 6._o chap._n xvi_o 1_o now_o korah_n the_o son_n of_o izhar_n the_o son_n of_o kohath_n the_o son_n of_o levi_n and_o dathan_n and_o abiram_n the_o son_n of_o eliah_n and_o on_o the_o son_n of_o peleth_n son_n of_o reuben_n take_v man_n 2_o and_o they_o rise_v up_o before_o moses_n with_o certain_a of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n 250._o prince_n of_o the_o assembly_n famous_a in_o the_o congregation_n man_n of_o renown_n 3_o and_o they_o gather_v themselves_o together_o against_o moses_n and_o against_o aaron_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o you_o take_v too_o much_o
be_v in_o a_o combustion_n three_o as_o rebellion_n be_v a_o heap_n of_o many_o sin_n so_o it_o ruine_v many_o person_n and_o therefore_o they_o just_o deserve_v first_o of_o all_o to_o be_v bury_v in_o those_o ruin_n themselves_o and_o to_o fall_v into_o the_o pit_n which_o they_o dig_v for_o another_o the_o life_n of_o one_o prince_n be_v of_o more_o value_n than_o of_o many_o other_o therefore_o the_o people_n suffer_v not_o david_n to_o go_v in_o person_n against_o absalon_n but_o say_v unto_o he_o if_o we_o fly_v away_o they_o will_v not_o care_v for_o we_o neither_o if_o half_a of_o we_o die_v will_v they_o care_v for_o we_o but_o now_o thou_o be_v worth_a ten_o thousand_o of_o we_o as_o 2._o samuel_n chap._n 18._o verse_n 3._o and_o again_o when_o ishbi-benob_a which_o be_v of_o the_o son_n of_o the_o giant_n be_v like_a to_o have_v slay_v david_n with_o the_o sword_n have_v he_o not_o be_v present_o succour_v by_o abishai_n who_o smite_v the_o philistim_n and_o kill_v he_o his_o man_n swear_v unto_o he_o say_v 2._o sam._n 21_o 17_o thou_o shall_v go_v no_o more_o out_o with_o we_o to_o battle_n that_o thou_o quench_v not_o the_o light_n of_o israel_n the_o king_n be_v the_o sun_n and_o shield_n of_o the_o land_n he_o be_v the_o light_n of_o israel_n take_v he_o away_o and_o all_o be_v leave_v in_o miserable_a and_o uncomfortable_a darkness_n many_o man_n life_n depend_v upon_o his_o life_n and_o the_o safety_n of_o thousand_o upon_o his_o safety_n prince_n be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o country_n more_o dangerous_a for_o the_o subject_n to_o kill_v one_o of_o they_o then_o for_o the_o child_n to_o kill_v the_o father_n as_o much_o more_o as_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n consist_v of_o innumerable_a thousand_o of_o house_n be_v worse_a than_o the_o fall_n of_o one_o particular_a and_o private_a house_n as_o then_o the_o captain_n of_o a_o host_n be_v worth_a many_o soldier_n and_o the_o governor_n of_o a_o ship_n many_o common_a passenger_n and_o mariner_n so_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o kingdom_n more_o of_o value_n than_o many_o subject_n though_o many_o soldier_n have_v fall_v in_o battle_n yet_o often_o the_o victory_n have_v be_v get_v seldom_o or_o never_o when_v the_o general_n fall_v 1_o king_n 22_o 35_o 36._o and_o to_o this_o purpose_n we_o may_v well_o apply_v that_o which_o be_v write_v though_o speak_v to_o another_o end_n i_o will_v smite_v the_o shepherd_n and_o the_o sheep_n of_o the_o flock_n shall_v be_v scatter_v abroad_o matth._n 26_o verse_n 31._o four_o such_o as_o conspire_v against_o prince_n have_v be_v punish_v oftentimes_o in_o their_o house_n in_o their_o land_n in_o office_n in_o death_n in_o burial_n in_o name_n and_o in_o posterity_n for_o who_o know_v not_o the_o custom_n observe_v even_o from_o the_o beginning_n as_o we_o may_v see_v also_o in_o holy_a scripture_n ester_n 8_o 1._o 2_o sam._n 16_o 4._o 1_o king_n 2.16_o jer._n 22_o 8._o prou._n 10_o 7._o all_o dignity_n and_o preferment_n be_v take_v away_o from_o such_o grievous_a torment_n and_o torture_n be_v lay_v upon_o they_o a_o violent_a death_n be_v prepare_v for_o they_o a_o honourable_a burial_n be_v deny_v unto_o they_o their_o blood_n be_v stain_v and_o taint_v and_o the_o child_n unborn_a feel_v the_o smart_n of_o it_o use_v 1_o this_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o sundry_a duty_n due_a to_o king_n and_o prince_n first_o we_o must_v stand_v in_o fear_n of_o they_o they_o carry_v not_o the_o sword_n in_o vain_a rom._n 13.4_o job_n 19_o 29._o it_o be_v not_o put_v into_o their_o hand_n for_o a_o show_n for_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o take_v vengeance_n on_o he_o that_o do_v evil_a therefore_o solomon_n say_v the_o wrath_n of_o a_o king_n be_v as_o the_o messenger_n of_o death_n prover._n 16_o 14._o and_o like_o the_o roar_n of_o a_o lion_n chap._n 19_o 12._o we_o must_v therefore_o fear_v the_o sword_n of_o caesar_n and_o therefore_o have_v prince_n the_o sword_n of_o justice_n bear_v before_o they_o that_o the_o behold_v thereof_o may_v put_v all_o person_n in_o remembrance_n of_o this_o duty_n rome_n plutar._n in_o 〈◊〉_d rome_n among_o the_o heathen_a the_o roman_a king_n dictator_n praetor_n and_o consul_n have_v their_o rod_n and_o axe_n evermore_o carry_v before_o they_o to_o breed_v a_o terror_n of_o their_o authority_n in_o all_o that_o see_v they_o a_o good_a subject_n as_o one_o say_v fear_v blame_v as_o much_o as_o pain_n and_o reproach_n as_o much_o as_o death_n the_o good_a subject_n have_v always_o one_o eye_n upon_o the_o sharpness_n of_o this_o sword_n that_o he_o do_v not_o provoke_v it_o and_o the_o other_o upon_o the_o heynousnesse_n of_o this_o offence_n that_o he_o never_o commit_v it_o this_o fear_n be_v the_o best_a porter_n at_o the_o prince_n gate_n it_o serve_v notable_o to_o keep_v all_o traitor_n and_o rebel_n out_o of_o the_o king_n court_n and_o treachery_n out_o of_o the_o people_n heart_n it_o be_v as_o a_o bridle_n that_o curb_v all_o disobedience_n where_o it_o be_v not_o there_o be_v a_o easy_a entrance_n for_o traitor_n and_o treason_n like_o the_o horse_n which_o have_v the_o bridle_n pull_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n rush_v forward_o into_o the_o battle_n without_o order_n and_o government_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o solomon_n join_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o king_n together_o prou._n 24_o 21._o where_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n be_v which_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o wisdom_n there_o will_v follow_v the_o fear_n of_o superior_a power_n ordain_v of_o god_n another_o duty_n be_v to_o honour_v prince_n who_o use_v 2_o god_n have_v first_o honour_v rom._n 13_o 7._o give_v honour_n to_o who_o you_o owe_v honour_n so_o exod._n 20_o 12._o and_o 22_o 28._o 1_o pet._n 2_o 17._o ester_n will_v not_o presume_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o great_a king_n until_o he_o hold_v out_o his_o golden_a sceptre_n chap._n 5_o 1_o 2._o joab_n though_o he_o be_v captain_n of_o the_o host_n give_v david_n the_o honour_n of_o the_o victory_n 2_o sa._n 12_o 27._o nathan_n the_o prophet_n and_o zadok_v the_o priest_n make_v obeisance_n before_o david_n with_o their_o face_n to_o the_o ground_n 1_o kings_z 1_o 23._o and_o bathsheba_n the_o queen_n bow_v her_o face_n to_o the_o earth_n and_o do_v reverence_n to_o the_o king_n and_o say_v let_v my_o lord_n king_n david_n live_v for_o ever_o v._o 31._o every_o soul_n be_v bind_v to_o yield_v this_o honour_n if_o they_o will_v be_v honour_v of_o god_n three_o we_o be_v to_o perform_v obedience_n use_v 3_o whereunto_o a_o way_n be_v make_v by_o the_o former_a for_o if_o we_o true_o honour_v they_o we_o will_v ready_o obey_v they_o even_o for_o conscience_n sake_n this_o be_v a_o duty_n yield_v by_o the_o child_n unto_o the_o father_n by_o the_o servant_n to_o the_o master_n much_o more_o than_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v yield_v by_o the_o subject_n unto_o his_o sovereign_n as_o in_o titus_n chapter_n 3._o verse_n 1._o and_o in_o the_o 1._o peter_n chap_v 2._o verse_n 13._o this_o must_v be_v perform_v ready_o sincere_o and_o hearty_o object_n but_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o some_o be_v evil_a prince_n wicked_a man_n contrary_a to_o god_n whence_o spring_v all_o goodness_n be_v such_o to_o be_v obey_v i_o answer_v answer_v it_o skill_v not_o what_o their_o person_n be_v the_o full_a security_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n to_o make_v we_o feel_v his_o judgement_n in_o our_o own_o person_n 41_o and_o on_o the_o morrow_n all_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n murmur_v against_o moses_n and_o against_o aaron_n say_v you_o have_v kill_v the_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n 42_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o the_o congregation_n be_v gather_v against_o moses_n and_o against_o aaron_n that_o they_o look_v towards_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n and_o behold_v the_o cloud_n cover_v it_o and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n appear_v 43._o and_o moses_n and_o aaron_n come_v etc._n etc._n 44_o and_o the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o moses_n say_v etc._n etc._n 45_o get_v you_o up_o from_o this_o congregation_n etc._n etc._n in_o these_o word_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n we_o see_v another_o murmur_a the_o day_n after_o the_o former_a the_o earth_n that_o have_v open_v her_o mouth_n be_v scarce_o close_v and_o the_o fire_n that_o be_v kindle_v be_v scarce_o quench_v when_o they_o fall_v to_o a_o fresh_a conspiracy_n this_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o wicked_a man_n they_o be_v never_o at_o rest_n like_o the_o sea_n that_o be_v ever_o trouble_v esay_n 57_o 20._o this_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o sin_n if_o it_o be_v not_o by_o and_o
poor_a cripple_n remain_v for_o the_o space_n of_o thirty_o eight_o year_n in_o woeful_a take_n because_o he_o have_v no_o man_n when_o the_o water_n be_v trouble_v by_o descend_v of_o the_o angel_n to_o put_v he_o into_o the_o pool_n 6._o john_n 5_o 5_o 6._o so_o be_v it_o with_o those_o that_o can_v come_v to_o the_o water_n of_o life_n bring_v by_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n they_o can_v be_v cure_v of_o their_o disease_n they_o be_v in_o a_o most_o pitiful_a case_n that_o want_v bread_n to_o sustain_v life_n they_o must_v needs_o in_o short_a time_n famish_v because_o they_o have_v no_o food_n amos_n 8.11_o it_o be_v often_o to_o be_v consider_v of_o we_o what_o the_o prophet_n hosea_n teach_v chap._n 9_o 6._o the_o day_n of_o visitation_n be_v come_v the_o day_n of_o recompense_n be_v come_v israel_n shall_v know_v it_o and_o why_o so_o the_o answer_n be_v the_o prophet_n be_v a_o fool_n the_o spiritual_a man_n be_v mad_a it_o be_v very_o uncomfortable_a to_o be_v in_o a_o wide_a house_n in_o a_o dark_a night_n where_o be_v no_o light_n at_o all_o and_o yet_o much_o work_v to_o be_v do_v and_o no_o mean_n to_o give_v direction_n such_o be_v their_o condition_n that_o want_v teacher_n who_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o house_n and_o the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n without_o which_o we_o rot_v and_o putrify_v in_o sin_n like_o flesh_n unsalted_a and_o unseasoned_a four_o woe_n to_o the_o foolish_a prophet_n that_o use_v 4_o prophesy_v out_o of_o their_o own_o heart_n &_o follow_v their_o own_o spirit_n and_o have_v see_v nothing_o ezek_n 13_o 4_o 5._o these_o can_v assure_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o lord_n watchman_n these_o prophet_n be_v like_o the_o fox_n in_o the_o desert_n they_o have_v not_o go_v up_o into_o the_o gap_n neither_o make_v up_o the_o hedge_n for_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n to_o stand_v in_o the_o battle_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n where_o the_o prophet_n set_v down_o sundry_a true_a note_n of_o false_a teacher_n how_o we_o shall_v know_v they_o first_o they_o teach_v themselves_o and_o not_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n they_o be_v wise_a out_o of_o their_o own_o wit_n not_o out_o of_o god_n word_n they_o be_v ready_a to_o speak_v for_o themselves_o not_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n the_o true_a pastor_n bring_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o send_v they_o john_n 7_o 16_o 17_o 18._o 2_o pet._n 1_o 21_o 22._o such_o then_o as_o broach_v new_a doctrine_n which_o they_o never_o learn_v out_o of_o the_o word_n nor_o receive_v from_o god_n be_v without_o question_n false_a teacher_n second_o they_o be_v like_o hungry_a fox_n that_o lie_v in_o wait_n for_o their_o prey_n give_v to_o covetousness_n and_o seek_v after_o their_o own_o gain_n they_o will_v transgress_v for_o a_o piece_n of_o bread_n these_o intend_v nothing_o but_o filthy_a lucre_n &_o love_v the_o wage_n of_o iniquity_n as_o balaam_n do_v 2_o pet._n 2_o 3_o 13_o 14_o 15._o jude_n ver_fw-la 12_o 16._o such_o a_o one_o be_v judas_n three_o they_o never_o go_v up_o to_o the_o breach_n nor_o make_v up_o the_o hedge_n for_o the_o city_n or_o vineyard_n of_o god_n they_o care_v not_o though_o the_o enemy_n spoil_v the_o one_o and_o root_n up_o the_o other_o they_o never_o make_v intercession_n for_o the_o people_n they_o rebuke_v not_o they_o exhort_v not_o they_o threaten_v not_o rather_o they_o proclaim_v peace_n &_o promise_n liberty_n for_o every_o one_o to_o do_v what_o he_o listen_v 1_o pet._n 2_o 19_o use_v 5_o last_o the_o people_n must_v perform_v to_o their_o minister_n such_o duty_n as_o be_v answerable_a unto_o their_o care_n first_o they_o must_v make_v good_a use_n of_o the_o ministry_n desire_v true_o to_o be_v gather_v to_o the_o church_n by_o the_o effectual_a work_n thereof_o act_v 2_o 37_o 38_o 47_o &_o 16_o 30._o we_o have_v show_v before_o chap._n 3_o that_o the_o most_o flourish_a commonwelth_n be_v nothing_o except_o this_o be_v among_o they_o second_o it_o behove_v we_o to_o rejoice_v in_o see_v or_o hear_v of_o any_o approve_a man_n and_o faithful_a teacher_n bring_v into_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n by_o a_o ordinary_a and_o lawful_a call_n lu._n 1_o 14_o 15._o 16_o 17._o &_o on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o be_v greeve_v when_o such_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o use_n of_o they_o deny_v act_v 20_o 37_o 38._o or_o such_o keep_v out_o that_o have_v worthy_a gift_n &_o desire_v to_o be_v employ_v but_o we_o see_v common_o man_n be_v glad_a to_o see_v such_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n as_o will_v speak_v of_o wine_n and_o strong_a drink_n mic._n 2_o 11._o such_o as_o will_v use_v they_o well_o in_o tithe_n such_o as_o will_v not_o trouble_v they_o long_o in_o teach_v such_o as_o will_v feast_v they_o often_o at_o his_o table_n last_o they_o must_v express_v their_o hearty_a love_n to_o their_o minister_n again_o recompense_v love_n for_o love_n and_o labour_v to_o do_v they_o good_a who_o they_o see_v to_o be_v so_o needful_a for_o they_o even_o as_o necessary_a as_o the_o physician_n in_o time_n of_o sickness_n as_o the_o captain_n in_o time_n of_o war_n as_o the_o reaper_n in_o time_n of_o harvest_n woe_n therefore_o shall_v be_v to_o those_o that_o account_v they_o worthless_a needless_a fruitless_a ver._n 47_o 48._o he_o put_v on_o incense_n and_o make_v a_o atonement_n for_o the_o people_n and_o stand_v between_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n observe_v again_o another_o point_n that_o moses_n and_o aaron_n adventure_v their_o own_o life_n in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o plague_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o people_n they_o make_v supplication_n for_o they_o because_o they_o be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n the_o posterity_n of_o faithful_a abraham_n and_o be_v commit_v to_o their_o charge_n &_o oversight_n and_o because_o the_o enemy_n both_o the_o egyptian_n and_o the_o canaanites_n shall_v not_o blaspheme_v the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o triumph_v in_o their_o destruction_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o aaron_n as_o he_o be_v appoint_v and_o command_v ●trine_fw-mi ●trine_fw-mi do_v put_v incense_n in_o his_o censer_n great_a force_v of_o 〈◊〉_d be_v ex●ng_v great_a and_o make_v a_o atonement_n for_o the_o people_n we_o learn_v hereby_o that_o the_o force_n efficacy_n and_o necessity_n of_o prayer_n to_o god_n be_v very_o great_a to_o obtain_v any_o blessing_n or_o to_o remove_v any_o judgement_n 1_o chron._n 21_o 17._o phil._n 1_o 4._o 1_o thess_n 5_o 17._o thus_o do_v moses_n often_o prevail_v exod._n 17_o and_o 32._o luke_n 21_o ver_fw-la 36._o joash_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o prayer_n of_o elisha_n a_o holy_a prophet_n of_o god_n stand_v his_o kingdom_n in_o more_o stead_n than_o all_o the_o horse_n and_o chariot_n of_o israel_n can_v do_v 2_o king_n 13_o 14._o the_o reason_n first_o it_o be_v a_o fruit_n of_o faith_n and_o a_o testimony_n reason_n 1_o to_o our_o own_o heart_n that_o we_o do_v believe_v it_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o faith_n that_o save_v james_n 5_o ver_fw-la 15._o but_o where_o there_o be_v no_o call_n upon_o the_o name_n of_o god_n by_o prayer_n there_o can_v be_v no_o faith_n in_o god_n at_o all_o these_o can_v prevail_v with_o god_n nor_o obtain_v any_o thing_n at_o his_o hand_n second_o whatsoever_o we_o receive_v from_o god_n reason_n 2_o we_o must_v receive_v it_o by_o prayer_n for_o what_o be_v it_o that_o prayer_n can_v obtain_v whatsoever_o we_o ask_v we_o receive_v math._n 7.7_o our_o want_n therefore_o be_v great_a the_o necessity_n of_o this_o duty_n must_v needs_o be_v great_a also_o three_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o our_o spiritual_a armour_n reason_n 3_o or_o at_o least_o that_o which_o give_v we_o strength_n to_o use_v the_o armour_n appoint_v to_o every_o christian_a eph._n 6_o 16._o without_o which_o all_o the_o rest_n will_v serve_v we_o in_o little_a stead_n first_o this_o reprove_v such_o as_o think_v it_o to_o use_v 1_o be_v needless_a to_o be_v perform_v to_o god_n because_o he_o know_v whereof_o we_o have_v need_n and_o need_v not_o to_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n thereof_o it_o have_v be_v a_o very_a needless_a thing_n for_o moses_n and_o aaron_n to_o be_v so_o earnest_a for_o the_o people_n to_o run_v in_o with_o all_o haste_n and_o to_o stand_v between_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a if_o prayer_n have_v be_v needless_a or_o bootless_a it_o be_v true_a he_o know_v whereof_o we_o be_v make_v and_o it_o be_v true_a he_o need_v no_o remembrancer_n or_o informer_n to_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o what_o he_o have_v forget_v howbeit_o this_o aught_o rather_o to_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o prayer_n as_o we_o see_v math._n 6_o verses_z
day_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o swearer_n blasphemer_n prophaner_n of_o the_o sabbath_n whoremonger_n drunkard_n oppresser_n unmerciful_a man_n and_o other_o like_a the_o lord_n indeed_o will_v try_v the_o righteous_a in_o his_o furnace_n but_o the_o wicked_a and_o he_o that_o love_v iniquity_n do_v his_o soul_n hate_n upon_o the_o wicked_a he_o shall_v rain_v snare_n fire_n and_o brimstone_n 5._o 〈◊〉_d 5_o 5._o and_o stormy_a tempest_n this_o be_v the_o portion_n of_o their_o cup._n indeed_o he_o lift_v up_o his_o hand_n to_o strike_v the_o faithful_a that_o be_v his_o friend_n ●4_n 〈◊〉_d ●_o ●4_n but_o he_o will_v crush_v his_o adversary_n with_o a_o sceptre_n of_o iron_n and_o break_v they_o in_o piece_n like_o a_o potter_n vessel_n indeed_o he_o will_v judge_v the_o just_a man_n for_o his_o sin_n in_o this_o life_n 23_o 〈◊〉_d ●_o 23_o but_o he_o will_v wound_v the_o head_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o the_o hairy_a pate_n of_o he_o that_o walk_v in_o his_o sin_n indeed_o the_o lord_n will_v chastise_v his_o church_n with_o the_o rod_n of_o man_n yet_o his_o love_a kindness_n will_v he_o never_o take_v from_o they_o but_o he_o will_v correct_v his_o enemy_n with_o scourge_n of_o wire_n and_o his_o little_a finger_n shall_v be_v heavy_a on_o the_o reprobate_n than_o his_o loin_n on_o his_o own_o people_n tremble_v at_o this_o all_o you_o ungodly_a and_o know_v that_o assure_a judgement_n be_v reserve_v for_o you_o at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n general_a assize_n when_o you_o must_v plead_v guilty_a or_o not_o guilty_a at_o his_o bar_n when_o the_o register_n book_n of_o all_o your_o action_n shall_v be_v bring_v forth_o and_o when_o you_o shall_v wish_v the_o mountain_n to_o fall_v upon_o you_o and_o cover_v you_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n turn_v therefore_o unto_o he_o return_v i_o say_v betimes_o lest_o the_o lord_n overturn_v you_o if_o his_o wrath_n be_v kindle_v yea_o but_o a_o little_a 2.12_o psal_n 2.12_o bless_a be_v all_o they_o that_o trust_v in_o he_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o a_o wise_a man_n and_o a_o fool_n 10._o prou._n 27.12_o and_o 17_o 10._o a_o wise_a man_n see_v the_o plague_n and_o hide_v himself_o but_o a_o fool_n run_v on_o and_o be_v punish_v a_o reproof_n enter_v more_o into_o he_o that_o have_v understanding_n than_o a_o hundred_o stripe_n into_o a_o fool_n 14_o then_o moses_n send_v messenger_n from_o kadesh_n unto_o the_o king_n of_o edom_n say_v thus_o say_v thy_o brother_n israel_n thou_o know_v all_o the_o trouble_n that_o have_v happen_v unto_o us._n 15_o how_o our_o father_n go_v down_o into_o egypt_n a_o long_a time_n where_o the_o egyptian_n handle_v we_o evil_a and_o our_o father_n 16_o but_o when_o we_o cry_v unto_o the_o lord_n he_o hear_v our_o voice_n and_o send_v a_o angel_n and_o have_v bring_v we_o out_o of_o egypt_n and_o behold_v we_o be_v in_o kadesh_n a_o city_n in_o thy_o utmost_a border_n 17_o i_o pray_v thou_o let_v we_o pass_v through_o thy_o country_n we_o will_v not_o go_v through_o the_o field_n nor_o the_o vineyard_n neither_o will_v we_o drink_v the_o water_n of_o the_o well_n we_o will_v go_v by_o the_o king_n way_n we_o will_v walk_v we_o will_v not_o turn_v either_o to_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o to_o the_o left_a until_o we_o have_v pass_v thy_o border_n 18_o and_o edom_n answer_v he_o thou_o shall_v not_o pass_v by_o i_o lest_o i_o come_v out_o with_o the_o sword_n against_o thou_o 19_o then_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n say_v unto_o he_o we_o will_v go_v upon_o the_o high_a way_n and_o if_o we_o shall_v drink_v thy_o water_n i_o and_o my_o cattle_n i_o will_v then_o pay_v for_o it_o i_o will_v only_o without_o any_o harm_n go_v through_o on_o my_o foot_n 20_o he_o answer_v again_o thou_o shall_v not_o pass_v through_o then_o edom_n come_v out_o against_o he_o with_o much_o people_n and_o with_o a_o mighty_a power_n 21_o thus_o edom_n refuse_v to_o give_v israel_n passage_n through_o his_o border_n wherefore_o israel_n turn_v away_o from_o he_o hitherto_o of_o the_o murmur_a of_o the_o people_n pretend_v against_o moses_n but_o indeed_o intend_v and_o practise_v against_o god_n now_o follow_v the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o chapter_n touch_v israel_n purpose_n to_o pass_v towards_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n by_o the_o country_n of_o the_o edomite_n wherein_o consider_v two_o thing_n first_o the_o solemn_a ambassage_n of_o moses_n to_o the_o king_n of_o edom._n second_o the_o shameful_a and_o inhuman_a denial_n of_o the_o edomite_n touch_v the_o first_o have_v walk_v up_o and_o down_o thirty_o eight_o year_n and_o wander_v in_o the_o wilderness_n from_o place_n to_o place_n forward_z and_o backward_o from_o nation_n to_o nation_n from_o one_o kingdom_n to_o another_o people_n be_v now_o come_v near_o to_o the_o land_n they_o request_v passage_n and_o safe_a conduct_n through_o the_o country_n of_o edom_n under_o honest_a and_o equal_a condition_n of_o abstain_v from_o all_o injury_n and_o keep_v the_o king_n high_a way_n &_o crave_v their_o friendship_n and_o favour_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o near_a kindred_n and_o alliance_n unto_o they_o both_o of_o they_o descend_v of_o isaac_n who_o son_n be_v jacob_n call_v also_o israel_n and_o esau_n call_v also_o edom._n beside_o they_o show_v what_o travel_n and_o trouble_v they_o have_v sustain_v what_o evil_n they_o have_v suffer_v what_o oppression_n they_o have_v endure_v of_o the_o cruel_a egyptian_n appeal_n to_o their_o own_o conscience_n touch_v the_o truth_n of_o these_o thing_n whereof_o they_o can_v in_o no_o sort_n be_v ignorant_a say_v thou_o know_v all_o the_o trouble_n that_o have_v happen_v unto_o us._n but_o because_o such_o as_o be_v themselves_o in_o prosperity_n seldom_o respect_v the_o misery_n and_o distress_n of_o other_o and_o the_o afflict_a be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n destitute_a of_o all_o help_n and_o forsake_v of_o all_o friend_n they_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n assist_v they_o in_o trouble_n hear_v their_o prayer_n 9_o 1_o cor._n 10_o 9_o and_o send_v his_o angel_n that_o be_v jesus_n christ_n as_o it_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o apostle_n for_o their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n and_o lest_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o request_n and_o require_v much_o of_o other_o but_o promise_v nothing_o for_o themselves_o as_o those_o that_o lay_v heavy_a burden_n and_o grievous_a to_o be_v bear_v upon_o other_o but_o will_v not_o touch_v they_o with_o their_o little_a finger_n they_o covenant_n and_o condition_n with_o they_o on_o their_o part_n to_o deal_v upright_o and_o just_o be_v as_o ready_a to_o abstain_v from_o work_a injury_n as_o to_o crave_v the_o duty_n of_o humanity_n so_o then_o to_o effect_v their_o purpose_n of_o pass_v through_o edom_n and_o to_o persuade_v they_o to_o grant_v their_o request_n they_o allege_v four_o reason_n first_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o edomite_n second_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o israelite_n three_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o person_n of_o god_n four_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o passage_n &_o perambulation_n through_o they_o touch_v the_o edomite_n they_o claim_v the_o kindred_n of_o consanguinity_n touch_v themselves_o they_o plead_v their_o own_o misery_n touch_v god_n they_o publish_v and_o proclaim_v his_o mercy_n touch_v their_o journey_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o they_o promise_v equity_n and_o honest_a deal_n thus_o they_o omit_v nothing_o that_o may_v serve_v to_o persuade_v the_o edomite_n to_o pity_n and_o to_o procure_v their_o own_o safety_n reason_n 1_o the_o first_o reason_n draw_v from_o the_o right_n of_o brotherhood_n be_v include_v in_o these_o word_n thus_o say_v thy_o brother_n israel_n the_o israelite_n come_v of_o jacob_n who_o be_v also_o call_v israel_n because_o he_o have_v power_n with_o god_n 25.25_o gen_n 25.25_o gen._n 32.28_o the_o edomite_n come_v of_o esau_n who_o be_v also_o name_v edom_n both_o of_o the_o redness_n wherewith_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o of_o the_o red_a pottage_n which_o he_o desire_v and_o prefer_v before_o the_o birthright_n these_o two_o therefore_o be_v natural_a brethren_n beget_v of_o the_o same_o father_n bear_v of_o the_o same_o mother_n lie_v at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o the_o same_o womb_n as_o if_o the_o israelite_n shall_v say_v may_v it_o please_v you_o to_o consider_v that_o we_o be_v not_o alien_n and_o stranger_n one_o to_o another_o we_o descend_v of_o two_o brethren_n jacob_n and_o esau_n you_o of_o one_o we_o of_o the_o other_o as_o two_o branch_n display_v themselves_o from_o one_o stock_n we_o have_v one_o common_a father_n and_o mother_n isaac_n and_o rebeccha_n we_o be_v of_o one_o family_n and_o
we_o endure_v be_v grievous_a for_o the_o measure_n manifold_a for_o the_o number_n strange_a for_o the_o manner_n and_o long_o for_o the_o continuance_n yet_o if_o we_o put_v on_o the_o armour_n of_o a_o christian_a it_o shall_v work_v in_o we_o experience_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o bring_v forth_o hope_n of_o a_o full_a deliverance_n which_o make_v not_o ashamed_a verse_n 14._o thus_o say_v thy_o brother_n israel_n hitherto_o of_o the_o request_n send_v by_o moses_n deliver_v by_o the_o ambassador_n and_o consent_v unto_o by_o the_o whole_a congregation_n now_o we_o be_v to_o mark_v the_o reason_n use_v to_o stir_v up_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o edomite_n the_o first_o be_v draw_v from_o their_o nearness_n of_o blood_n and_o kindred_n in_o the_o flesh_n we_o be_v your_o brethren_n now_o if_o we_o be_v brethren_n then_o help_v we_o but_o we_o be_v brethren_n therefore_o help_v us._n the_o word_n brother_n be_v take_v in_o scripture_n sundry_a way_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o 〈◊〉_d first_o for_o such_o as_o be_v brethren_n by_o birth_n as_o cain_n &_o abel_n jacob_n &_o esau_n second_o by_o affinity_n which_o come_v of_o one_o family_n as_o branch_n of_o one_o root_n 12._o ●s_n 13_o 8._o ●_o 12._o and_o stream_n issue_v out_o of_o one_o fountain_n so_o abraham_n and_o lot_n be_v brethren_n and_o the_o kinsman_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v his_o brethren_n three_o by_o country_n &_o nation_n thus_o all_o the_o jew_n be_v call_v brethren_n one_o to_o another_o deut._n 17.15_o rom._n 9_o 1._o four_o by_o profession_n thus_o all_o christian_n be_v account_v brethren_n be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n and_o profession_n now_o in_o this_o place_n it_o be_v take_v in_o the_o second_o sense_n for_o such_o as_o be_v of_o the_o same_o kindred_n &_o stock_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v we_o be_v all_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n we_o have_v abraham_n and_o isaac_n to_o our_o father_n thus_o we_o see_v they_o allege_v their_o alliance_n &_o communion_n of_o the_o same_o blood_n descend_v long_o ago_o by_o many_o generation_n from_o one_o father_n observe_v here_o first_o of_o all_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o reason_n if_o we_o be_v brethren_n of_o one_o kindred_n deny_v we_o not_o this_o favour_n but_o suffer_v we_o to_o pass_v where_o we_o see_v the_o strength_n of_o this_o reason_n how_o that_o to_o persuade_v some_o kindness_n they_o plead_v some_o kindred_n another_o doctrine_n the_o consideration_n of_o our_o communion_n one_o with_o another_o must_v draw_v we_o to_o the_o duty_n of_o love_n one_o to_o another_o and_o beseech_v they_o by_o the_o amiable_a name_n of_o a_o brother_n from_o hence_o we_o learn_v that_o the_o consideration_n of_o our_o nearness_n and_o conjunction_n of_o blood_n must_v urge_v and_o enforce_v from_o we_o all_o duty_n of_o love_n and_o brotherly_a kindness_n howsoever_o we_o be_v to_o do_v good_a to_o all_o yet_o our_o communion_n in_o blood_n shall_v be_v a_o forcible_a mean_n to_o move_v we_o to_o all_o duty_n of_o humanity_n this_o move_v abraham_n to_o take_v away_o the_o heat_n of_o contention_n kindle_v between_o his_o herdsman_n and_o the_o herdsman_n of_o lot_n 13._o genesis_n 13_o 8_o exodus_fw-la 2_o 13._o let_v not_o we_o i_o pray_v thou_o strive_v for_o we_o be_v brethren_n the_o like_a we_o see_v press_v by_o moses_n to_o the_o israelite_n strive_v together_o to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o god_n to_o the_o slander_n of_o their_o profession_n and_o to_o the_o open_n of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o enemy_n sir_n you_o be_v brethren_n 26._o act_n 7_o 26._o why_o then_o do_v you_o wrong_v one_o another_o this_o consideration_n be_v so_o strong_a that_o it_o prevail_v with_o laban_n towards_o jacob_n say_v though_o thou_o be_v my_o brother_n shall_v thou_o therefore_o serve_v i_o for_o nought_o 15._o genes_n 29_o 15._o i_o will_v give_v thou_o wage_n so_o david_n upon_o this_o ground_n expect_v kindness_n and_o reprove_v the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n for_o their_o negligence_n in_o bring_v he_o unto_o his_o house_n you_o be_v my_o brethren_n 12._o 2_o sam._n 19_o 11_o 12._o my_o bone_n and_o flesh_n be_v you_o wherefore_o then_o be_v you_o the_o last_o that_o bring_v the_o king_n again_o the_o reason_n follow_v first_o the_o communion_n reason_n 1_o and_o fellowship_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n aught_o to_o move_v we_o to_o be_v bountiful_a and_o beneficial_a unto_o man_n because_o we_o must_v do_v to_o other_o as_o we_o wish_v and_o will_v that_o other_o shall_v do_v unto_o us._n let_v we_o put_v the_o case_n &_o suppose_v we_o be_v in_o distress_n will_v we_o not_o be_v glad_a to_o receive_v good_a at_o the_o hand_n of_o other_o and_o will_v we_o not_o think_v it_o a_o duty_n belong_v unto_o they_o as_o man_n to_o relieve_v &_o succour_v we_o as_o man_n even_o so_o ought_v we_o in_o like_a case_n to_o do_v and_o deal_v with_o they_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o exhortation_n of_o christ_n 11._o matth._n 7_o 11._o whatsoever_o you_o will_v that_o man_n shall_v do_v unto_o you_o do_v you_o even_o the_o same_o unto_o they_o for_o this_o be_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n second_o the_o flesh_n of_o one_o be_v as_o the_o flesh_n of_o a_o reason_n 2_o other_o all_o the_o world_n be_v make_v of_o one_o flesh_n so_o that_o we_o be_v as_o it_o be_v part_n and_o member_n one_o of_o another_o we_o see_v in_o the_o member_n of_o our_o body_n how_o one_o be_v helpful_a and_o serviceable_a to_o another_o when_o one_o be_v pain_v the_o rest_n be_v trouble_v when_o one_o be_v honour_v the_o rest_n rejoice_v so_o shall_v it_o be_v in_o the_o general_a communion_n and_o conjunction_n of_o mankind_n this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o israelite_n affirm_v be_v oppress_v by_o their_o brethren_n our_o flesh_n be_v as_o the_o flesh_n of_o our_o brethren_n &_o our_o son_n as_o their_o son_n 5._o nehem._n 5_o 5._o and_o therefore_o in_o this_o consideration_n they_o look_v for_o the_o duty_n of_o kindness_n and_o fruit_n of_o humanity_n to_o come_v from_o they_o the_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v first_o of_o all_o to_o reproove_v those_o that_o break_v these_o band_n and_o use_v 1_o cast_v these_o cord_n from_o they_o wherewith_o the_o lord_n have_v tie_v we_o one_o to_o another_o for_o where_o many_o time_n shall_v you_o find_v less_o familiarity_n and_o friendship_n one_o with_o another_o then_o among_o those_o that_o be_v most_o near_o link_v and_o ally_v one_o to_o another_o their_o often_o jar_n and_o most_o deadly_a dissension_n proclaim_v to_o their_o open_a shame_n that_o they_o be_v void_a not_o only_o of_o true_a piety_n but_o of_o all_o due_a humanity_n what_o a_o reproach_n be_v it_o yea_o what_o a_o blot_n and_o blemish_n that_o the_o husband_n set_v himself_o against_o the_o wife_n and_o the_o wife_n against_o the_o husband_n the_o father_n fall_v out_o with_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n with_o the_o father_n the_o mother_n can_v live_v peaceable_o with_o the_o daughter_n nor_o the_o daughter_n with_o the_o mother_n the_o mother_n in_o law_n with_o the_o daughter_n in_o law_n nor_o the_o daughter_n in_o law_n with_o the_o mother_n in_o law_n and_o that_o the_o love_n of_o brethren_n and_o sister_n be_v so_o geason_a among_o we_o great_a be_v the_o force_n and_o strength_n of_o nature_n in_o all_o such_o as_o be_v not_o whole_o without_o natural_a affection_n as_o we_o see_v in_o david_n albeit_o he_o have_v a_o godless_a and_o ungracious_a child_n aspire_v in_o the_o pride_n of_o his_o heart_n to_o usurp_v the_o kingdom_n and_o drive_v his_o father_n out_o of_o jerusalem_n yet_o when_o he_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o battle_n the_o king_n be_v move_v and_o mourn_v say_v o_o my_o son_n absalon_n my_o son_n my_o son_n absalon_n will_v god_n i_o have_v dye_v for_o thou_o o_o absalon_n my_o son_n my_o son_n 2_o sam._n 18_o 33._o the_o like_a we_o see_v in_o the_o true_a mother_n to_o her_o child_n who_o bowel_n yern_v within_o she_o when_o solomon_n call_v for_o a_o sword_n to_o divide_v it_o 26._o 1_o king_n 3_o 26._o the_o like_a force_n of_o love_n can_v not_o be_v dissemble_v in_o joseph_n towards_o his_o brethren_n 4._o gen._n 45_o 1_o 1._o and_o 33_o 4._o but_o he_o turn_v from_o they_o &_o his_o heart_n melt_v towards_o they_o yea_o cruel_a esau_n when_o he_o see_v his_o brother_n a_o far_o off_o though_o he_o have_v threaten_v to_o kill_v he_o yet_o he_o run_v to_o meet_v he_o and_o embrace_v he_o he_o kiss_v he_o and_o weep_v upon_o he_o and_o yet_o we_o now_o see_v by_o lamentable_a experience_n that_o every_o toy_n &_o trifle_n make_v debate_n not_o only_o between_o dear_a friend_n but_o between_o near_a kinsfolk_n that_o they_o can_v never_o be_v reconcile_v and_o as_o no_o
brethren_n that_o be_v christian_n by_o profession_n saint_n by_o calling_n heir_n by_o faith_n son_n by_o adoption_n partaker_n of_o the_o same_o grace_n with_o we_o yea_o as_o we_o see_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n more_o clear_o to_o shine_v and_o more_o manifest_o to_o multiply_v in_o they_o so_o our_o love_n must_v increase_v towards_o they_o as_o they_o go_v forward_o or_o backward_o increase_n or_o decrease_v as_o we_o see_v they_o zealous_a or_o cold_a or_o lukewarm_a so_o must_v our_o inward_a love_n proceed_v or_o stay_v grow_v or_o slake_v towards_o they_o &_o always_o where_o god_n show_v forth_o the_o abundance_n of_o his_o love_n shed_v into_o their_o heart_n we_o must_v most_o wise_o bestow_v our_o love_n according_a to_o his_o example_n which_o the_o near_o we_o follow_v the_o more_o conformable_a we_o be_v to_o god_n wherein_o stand_v our_o happiness_n use_v 3_o last_o it_o reprove_v such_o as_o be_v unappeasable_a and_o will_v never_o forgive_v and_o forget_v the_o injury_n that_o be_v do_v unto_o they_o assure_o such_o shall_v find_v judgement_n without_o mercy_n as_o show_v no_o mercy_n who_o be_v there_o among_o we_o that_o do_v not_o daily_o even_o with_o the_o air_n draw_v in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n it_o be_v his_o mercy_n that_o we_o be_v not_o all_o consume_v if_o then_o have_v ourselves_o receive_v so_o great_a mercy_n we_o can_v return_v in_o way_n of_o thankfulness_n no_o compassion_n to_o other_o we_o make_v a_o law_n against_o ourselves_o and_o as_o it_o be_v stop_v and_o shut_v up_o the_o spring_n of_o grace_n from_o flow_v unto_o us._n 13._o ●er_n 2_o 13._o this_o the_o apostle_n james_n teach_v there_o shall_v be_v judgement_n merciless_a to_o he_o that_o show_v no_o mercy_n and_o mercy_n rejoice_v against_o judgement_n it_o stand_v we_o all_o therefore_o upon_o not_o to_o rest_v in_o the_o bare_a and_o naked_a name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o labour_n in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o inner_a part_n and_o in_o sincerity_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o be_v like_a to_o he_o practise_v the_o exhortation_n of_o the_o apostle_n 13._o 〈◊〉_d 12_o 13._o as_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n holy_a and_o belove_a put_v on_o tender_a mercy_n kindness_n humbleness_n of_o mind_n meekness_n long-suffering_a forbear_v one_o another_o and_o forgive_a one_o another_o etc._n etc._n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n without_o pardon_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n will_v we_o then_o have_v salvation_n do_v we_o desire_v forgiveness_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n the_o mean_n to_o assure_v we_o that_o we_o have_v attain_v it_o 32._o 〈◊〉_d 4_o 31_o 32._o be_v to_o put_v away_o wrath_n &_o all_o maliciousness_n and_o to_o be_v courteous_a &_o tender-hearted_a one_o to_o another_o forgive_n one_o another_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o feel_v any_o true_a comfort_n to_o our_o own_o soul_n in_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o own_o sin_n when_o we_o cry_v unto_o the_o lord_n he_o hear_v our_o voice_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o former_a reason_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d set_v down_o the_o love_n of_o god_n to_o his_o people_n hear_v their_o prayer_n send_v his_o angel_n and_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o egypt_n the_o doctrine_n out_o of_o these_o word_n consider_v in_o themselves_o be_v this_o people_n doctrine_n god_n love_v his_o people_n god_n love_v and_o favour_v his_o own_o people_n howsoever_o they_o be_v hate_v of_o the_o world_n because_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o world_n but_o be_v choose_v out_o of_o the_o world_n yet_o he_o set_v they_o as_o a_o seal_n on_o his_o hart_n 2._o cant_n 8_o 6_o &_o 5_o 2._o and_o as_o a_o signet_n on_o his_o arm_n hereunto_o come_v the_o amiable_a and_o lovely_a title_n that_o christ_n give_v to_o his_o church_n call_v it_o &_o knock_v unto_o it_o say_v open_v unto_o i_o my_o sister_n my_o love_n my_o dove_n my_o undefiled_a for_o my_o head_n be_v full_a of_o dew_n and_o my_o lock_n with_o the_o drop_n of_o the_o night_n so_o the_o prophet_n express_v his_o love_n in_o the_o psalm_n towards_o his_o people_n albeit_o they_o be_v few_o in_o number_n yea_o 15._o psal_n 105_o 12_o 13_o 14_o 15._o very_o few_o and_o stranger_n in_o the_o land_n and_o walk_v about_o from_o nation_n to_o nation_n from_o one_o kingdom_n to_o another_o people_n yet_o suffer_v he_o no_o man_n to_o do_v they_o harm_n but_o reprove_v king_n for_o their_o sake_n say_v touch_v not_o my_o anointed_n and_o do_v my_o prophet_n no_o harm_n so_o moses_n testify_v the_o same_o 8._o deu._n 7_o 6_o 7_o 8._o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n have_v choose_v thou_o to_o be_v a_o precious_a people_n unto_o himself_o above_o all_o people_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n the_o lord_n do_v not_o set_v his_o love_n upon_o you_o nor_o choose_v you_o because_o you_o be_v more_o in_o number_n then_o any_o people_n for_o you_o be_v the_o few_o of_o all_o people_n but_o because_o the_o lord_n love_v you_o and_o will_v keep_v the_o oath_n which_o he_o have_v swear_v unto_o your_o father_n 15._o joshua_n 24_o 3._o psalm_n 78_o 70._o matthew_n 4_o 18_o luke_n 23.43_o act_n 9_o 15._o thus_o god_n in_o great_a mercy_n bring_v abraham_n from_o his_o country_n take_v david_n from_o the_o sheepfold_n choose_v peter_n and_o andrew_n from_o their_o net_n call_v matthew_n from_o the_o custom_n convert_v the_o thief_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o turn_v paul_n from_o a_o persecutor_n to_o be_v a_o apostle_n be_v oftentimes_o find_v of_o they_o that_o seek_v not_o after_o he_o by_o all_o which_o testimony_n and_o example_n it_o appear_v that_o god_n do_v show_v himself_o good_a and_o gracious_a unto_o his_o people_n the_o reason_n be_v first_o because_o they_o be_v his_o reason_n 1_o son_n and_o daughter_n this_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o great_a love_n &_o a_o testimony_n that_o he_o will_v not_o forsake_v we_o for_o ever_o we_o be_v not_o only_o the_o servant_n and_o friend_n of_o god_n but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n &_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n indeed_o christ_n be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o elder_a brother_n by_o who_o we_o be_v adopt_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n this_o reason_n the_o apostle_n propound_v 1_o john_n 3_o 1._o behold_v what_o love_v the_o father_n have_v give_v to_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o this_o cause_n the_o world_n know_v you_o not_o because_o it_o know_v not_o he_o great_a be_v the_o affection_n of_o fervent_a love_n that_o parent_n bear_v towards_o their_o child_n no_o heart_n of_o any_o can_v well_o express_v it_o but_o he_o that_o have_v be_v a_o father_n himself_o to_o feel_v it_o other_o may_v well_o speak_v of_o it_o but_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o comprehend_v it_o and_o yet_o all_o their_o love_n be_v a_o cold_a &_o freeze_a love_n yea_o it_o be_v no_o love_n indeed_o yea_o it_o be_v no_o better_a than_o hatred_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o love_n that_o the_o father_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n bear_v to_o his_o child_n who_o love_n to_o we_o be_v wonderful_a pass_v the_o love_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n this_o the_o prophet_n teach_v can_v a_o woman_n forget_v her_o child_n and_o not_o have_v compassion_n on_o the_o son_n of_o her_o womb_n though_o they_o shall_v forget_v yet_o will_v not_o i_o forget_v thou_o es_fw-ge 49_o 15._o likewise_o christ_n say_v mat._n 7_o 9_o 10._o what_o man_n be_v there_o among_o you_o which_o if_o his_o son_n ask_v he_o bread_n will_v give_v he_o a_o stone_n or_o if_o he_o ask_v fish_n will_v he_o give_v he_o a_o serpent_n if_o you_o then_o which_o be_v evil_a can_v give_v to_o your_o child_n good_a gift_n how_o much_o more_o shall_v your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n give_v good_a thing_n to_o they_o that_o ask_v he_o reason_n 2_o again_o he_o have_v send_v his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n who_o come_v from_o the_o bosom_n of_o his_o father_n and_o take_v our_o nature_n upon_o he_o he_o endure_v the_o infirmity_n of_o our_o nature_n the_o shame_n of_o the_o cross_n the_o wrath_n of_o his_o father_n to_o bring_v we_o into_o his_o favour_n he_o be_v punish_v we_o be_v pardon_v he_o be_v charge_v with_o our_o sin_n we_o be_v discharge_v from_o our_o sin_n he_o be_v crucify_v we_o be_v acquit_v he_o be_v condemn_v we_o be_v justify_v thus_o the_o apostle_n john_n reason_v herein_o be_v the_o love_n of_o god_n make_v manifest_a among_o we_o 10._o 1_o joh._n 4_o 9_o 10._o because_o god_n send_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n into_o this_o world_n that_o we_o may_v live_v through_o he_o herein_o be_v that_o love_n not_o that_o we_o love_v god_n but_o that_o he_o love_v we_o and_o send_v his_o son_n to_o be_v a_o reconciliation_n for_o our_o sin_n the_o natural_a
or_o in_o the_o public_a joy_n of_o the_o church_n do_v mourn_v can_v in_o truth_n persuade_v their_o own_o heart_n that_o they_o have_v any_o part_n or_o portion_n in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o whensoever_o god_n take_v away_o any_o principal_a stay_n of_o church_n or_o commonwealth_n we_o have_v cause_n of_o mourning_n and_o humble_v ourselves_o under_o god_n judgement_n when_o the_o husbandman_n lay_v his_o axe_n to_o the_o root_n of_o the_o tree_n or_o undermine_v the_o ground_n about_o it_o we_o can_v not_o doubt_v but_o he_o mean_v the_o fell_n and_o fall_v of_o it_o or_o when_o we_o see_v a_o gardener_n take_v away_o the_o hedge_n or_o wall_n of_o his_o garden_n 6._o esay_n 5_o 5_o 6._o pluck_v up_o by_o the_o root_n the_o chief_a &_o choice_a plant_n disfigure_v the_o ornament_n and_o beauty_n of_o it_o and_o lay_v it_o open_v for_o the_o beast_n to_o enter_v we_o may_v gather_v he_o mind_v not_o to_o continue_v but_o deface_v the_o garden_n or_o when_o a_o carpenter_n pull_v down_o the_o masterpiece_n and_o post_n that_o do_v hold_v up_o the_o whole_a frame_n and_o lay_v the_o foundation_n even_o with_o the_o ground_n we_o may_v conjecture_v by_o these_o mean_n that_o he_o mean_v to_o remove_v the_o build_n to_o another_o place_n so_o when_o we_o see_v the_o evident_a footstep_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o begin_v to_o discern_v the_o fire_n of_o his_o jealousy_n break_v out_o by_o the_o smoke_n beginning_n to_o appear_v in_o take_v away_o serviceable_a man_n as_o plant_n of_o his_o own_o garden_n as_o pillar_n of_o his_o own_o house_n and_z as_o branch_n of_o the_o tree_n which_o his_o right_a hand_n have_v plant_v we_o must_v lay_v it_o to_o our_o heart_n as_o token_n go_v before_o destruction_n this_o our_o saviour_n handle_v matth._n 42_o 32_o 33._o speak_v of_o the_o sign_n go_v before_o his_o glorious_a appearance_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n learn_v the_o parable_n of_o the_o fig_n tree_n when_o her_o bough_n be_v yet_o tender_a and_o it_o put_v forth_o leaf_n you_o know_v that_o summer_n be_v near_o so_o likewise_o you_o when_o you_o see_v all_o these_o thing_n know_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v never_o even_o at_o the_o door_n and_o now_o belove_v behold_v and_o consider_v lift_v up_o your_o eye_n and_o look_v how_o god_n have_v deal_v with_o we_o and_o mark_v whether_o his_o deal_n towards_o we_o be_v not_o token_n of_o his_o anger_n and_o forerunner_n of_o his_o judgement_n have_v he_o not_o take_v from_o we_o a_o most_o worthy_a prince_n our_o late_a sovereign_n who_o by_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n may_v have_v live_v long_a of_o who_o we_o may_v true_o say_v as_o david_n do_v 2_o sam._n 1_o 24._o you_o daughter_n of_o israel_n weep_v for_o queen_n elizabeth_n who_o clothe_v you_o with_o scarlet_n and_o pleasure_n and_o hang_v ornament_n of_o gold_n upon_o your_o apparel_n 2d_o p._n o●_n 31_o 2d_o or_o else_o as_o solomon_n do_v speak_v of_o a_o good_a woman_n many_o daughter_n have_v do_v virtuous_o but_o thou_o surmounte_v they_o all_o she_o open_v the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o her_o reign_n as_o good_a k._n hezekiah_n do_v she_o call_v back_o the_o reverend_a minister_n flee_v out_o of_o the_o land_n as_o eliah_n into_o the_o wilderness_n through_o the_o tyranny_n of_o jezabel_n she_o bring_v in_o the_o pure_a worship_n of_o god_n cast_v out_o the_o romish_a abomination_n set_v forth_o the_o service_n of_o god_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n repeal_v the_o bloody_a act_n of_o the_o persecutor_n and_o therefore_o she_o thus_o honour_v god_n and_o advance_v his_o gospel_n he_o likewise_o exalt_v her_o throne_n on_o high_a as_o the_o throne_n of_o solomon_n 2._o samuel_n 2_o ver_fw-la 30._o so_o that_o she_o shine_v in_o her_o time_n in_o the_o world_n as_o if_o all_o the_o firmament_n thereof_o have_v be_v but_o one_o star_n and_o as_o if_o in_o all_o the_o cope_n &_o compass_v of_o heaven_n there_o have_v shine_v none_o but_o she_o this_o star_n be_v now_o set_v and_o go_v down_o which_o shall_v go_v near_o unto_o we_o and_o pierce_v we_o to_o the_o quick_a and_o make_v we_o see_v a_o great_a prince_n be_v fall_v in_o israel_n never_o to_o forget_v the_o great_a work_n which_o the_o lord_n do_v among_o we_o by_o her_o happy_a hand_n beside_o have_v not_o the_o lord_n take_v from_o we_o many_o light_n out_o of_o the_o university_n whence_o flow_v many_o comfortable_a stream_n that_o water_v the_o garden_n of_o god_n many_o out_o of_o city_n and_o particular_a church_n whereby_o the_o church_n have_v receive_v a_o deep_a and_o dangerous_a wound_n and_o yet_o we_o seem_v to_o have_v fear_v conscience_n and_o to_o be_v past_a feel_n when_o the_o vital_a part_n begin_v to_o fail_v or_o to_o languish_v the_o life_n of_o the_o body_n be_v in_o hazard_n while_o the_o disease_n or_o distemperature_n be_v in_o the_o outward_a part_n far_o from_o the_o head_n or_o the_o heart_n there_o be_v hope_n of_o health_n and_o recovery_n but_o when_o the_o lively_a part_n begin_v to_o waste_v and_o consume_v by_o little_a and_o little_a it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o decay_n of_o life_n and_o of_o the_o approach_n of_o death_n howsoever_o therefore_o the_o great_a part_n never_o lie_v these_o thing_n to_o their_o heart_n nor_o interpret_v they_o as_o present_a token_n of_o imminent_a danger_n and_o judgement_n yet_o we_o that_o have_v learn_v better_a thing_n aught_o to_o consider_v that_o as_o they_o be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o evil_a to_o come_v 20_o ●_o 57_o 1_o 2._o egg_n 22_o 20_o &_o rest_v quiet_o in_o the_o grave_n as_o in_o a_o bed_n even_o so_o they_o have_v leave_v we_o behind_o for_o the_o evil_a to_o come_v use_v 3_o last_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o stay_v his_o hand_n to_o show_v mercy_n to_o his_o church_n and_o to_o pour_v out_o the_o full_a vial_n of_o his_o vengeance_n upon_o his_o enemy_n that_o know_v he_o not_o 25_o psal_n 79_o 6._o jeremy_n 10_o 25_o and_o upon_o the_o nation_n that_o call_v not_o upon_o his_o name_n this_o the_o prophet_n practise_v psalm_n 74_o 2_o 19_o 20_o 21_o 22._o think_v upon_o thy_o congregation_n which_o thou_o have_v possess_v of_o old_a and_o on_o thy_o inheritance_n which_o thou_o have_v redeem_v and_o on_o this_o mount_n zion_n wherein_o thou_o have_v dwell_v we_o see_v how_o he_o put_v god_n in_o mind_n of_o his_o covenant_n and_o entreat_v he_o to_o strike_v through_o the_o loin_n of_o his_o enemy_n to_o their_o destruction_n to_o maintain_v his_o own_o cause_n and_o to_o spare_v his_o people_n the_o sheep_n of_o his_o own_o pasture_n the_o dwell_a place_n of_o his_o own_o name_n and_o the_o congregation_n of_o his_o poor_a afflict_v one_o so_o when_o in_o like_a manner_n we_o behold_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n upon_o his_o own_o sanctuary_n &_o to_o begin_v judgement_n at_o his_o own_o house_n let_v we_o call_v upon_o he_o to_o consider_v whereof_o we_o be_v make_v and_o to_o remember_v that_o we_o be_v but_o dust_n this_o do_v the_o prophet_n habakkuk_n when_o god_n threaten_v to_o enter_v into_o judgement_n with_o his_o church_n o_o lord_n i_o have_v hear_v thy_o voice_n and_o be_v afraid_a o_o lord_n revive_v thy_o work_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o thy_o people_n in_o wrath_n remember_v mercy_n hab._n 3_o 2._o where_o he_o teach_v that_o whensoever_o we_o hear_v of_o the_o threaten_n and_o judgement_n of_o god_n we_o must_v pray_v he_o to_o repair_v and_o restore_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v ready_a to_o perish_v who_o be_v able_a to_o heal_v the_o wound_n that_o his_o own_o right_a hand_n have_v make_v true_a it_o be_v the_o great_a sin_n of_o this_o land_n do_v cry_v out_o against_o we_o &_o may_v just_o provoke_v he_o to_o make_v havoc_n of_o all_o yet_o let_v we_o call_v for_o mercy_n at_o his_o hand_n and_o stay_v the_o course_n of_o our_o sin_n that_o so_o he_o may_v stay_v the_o stroke_n of_o his_o judgement_n chap._n xxi_o in_o this_o chapter_n chapter_n ●e_v divition_n ●●es_v chapter_n we_o be_v to_o observe_v four_o principal_a point_n first_o the_o battle_n fight_v between_o arad_n king_n of_o the_o canaanite_n &_o the_o israelite_n second_o another_o murmur_a of_o the_o people_n the_o last_o record_v in_o this_o book_n which_o god_n punish_v with_o fiery_a serpent_n &_o cure_v they_o with_o a_o brazen_a serpent_n three_o their_o happy_a proceed_n in_o their_o journey_n towards_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n where_o god_n give_v they_o water_n and_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o border_n of_o the_o amorites_n last_o the_o victory_n which_o israel_n obtain_v on_o sihon_n king_n of_o the_o amorites_n and_o og_n the_o
sinner_n he_o make_v they_o either_o in_o their_o sleep_n to_o dream_v of_o it_o or_o in_o frenzy_n to_o rave_v upon_o it_o or_o in_o sickness_n to_o confess_v it_o or_o unaware_o to_o disclose_v it_o or_o in_o anguish_n of_o the_o mind_n to_o void_a it_o and_o vomit_v it_o up_o verify_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n esay_n chap._n 66_o 24._o their_o worm_n shall_v not_o die_v but_o always_o gnaw_v upon_o they_o with_o continual_a torment_n as_o also_o mark_v 9_o 44._o thus_o be_v god_n judgement_n upon_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v fear_v all_o thing_n who_o will_v not_o fear_v he_o that_o make_v all_o thing_n if_o a_o man_n have_v all_o the_o pleasure_n &_o treasure_n that_o heart_n can_v desire_v or_o delight_n in_o yet_o can_v they_o give_v he_o no_o true_a comfort_n and_o contentment_n when_o the_o conscience_n be_v guilty_a of_o horrible_a sin_n these_o terror_n be_v those_o fury_n which_o the_o poet_n fain_o cicer._n pro._n ros_n amori_fw-la &_o orat._n in_o pisonem_fw-la which_o never_o suffer_v offender_n to_o be_v at_o rest_n as_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o cain_n belteshazzer_n saul_n absalon_n judas_n and_o other_o the_o noise_n of_o the_o thunderclaps_a psal_n 29_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 7._o which_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n have_v so_o daunt_v the_o vild_a atheist_n that_o they_o have_v cover_v their_o head_n hide_a themselves_o under_o their_o bed_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o creep_v into_o every_o hole_n thus_o we_o see_v how_o the_o ungodly_a be_v punish_v in_o this_o life_n how_o they_o be_v arraign_v as_o malefactor_n at_o the_o bar_n how_o they_o lie_v confound_v in_o themselves_o and_o how_o the_o testimony_n of_o every_o man_n conscience_n proclaym_v and_o cry_v out_o psalm_n 58_o 11._o very_o there_o be_v fruit_n for_o the_o righteous_a doubtless_o there_o be_v a_o god_n that_o judge_v in_o the_o earth_n so_o that_o they_o shall_v soon_o pull_v their_o heart_n out_o of_o their_o breast_n than_o god_n out_o of_o their_o mind_n and_o albeit_o the_o conscience_n of_o carnal_a man_n that_o never_o true_o repent_v of_o their_o sin_n seem_v to_o be_v at_o rest_n yet_o it_o be_v as_o a_o wild_a and_o savage_a beast_n which_o lie_v asleep_a seem_v tame_a and_o gentle_a but_o be_v raise_v and_o rouse_v up_o fly_v in_o a_o man_n face_n and_o snarl_v at_o he_o joseph_n brother_n be_v not_o much_o trouble_v for_o their_o vice_n and_o villainy_n in_o sell_v their_o brother_n at_o the_o present_a time_n but_o long_o afterward_o when_o they_o be_v afflict_v with_o extreme_a famine_n and_o distress_a in_o egypt_n they_o remember_v the_o iniquity_n which_o they_o have_v commit_v and_o the_o cruelty_n which_o they_o have_v show_v and_o not_o true_o repent_v of_o genesis_n chap._n 42._o verse_n 21._o let_v we_o therefore_o strive_v by_o all_o mean_n &_o always_o endeavour_v to_o keep_v a_o good_a conscience_n towards_o god_n and_o man_n and_o take_v heed_n how_o we_o break_v out_o into_o open_a sin_n provoke_v god_n unto_o anger_n wound_v our_o own_o soul_n offend_v our_o brethren_n diminish_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n lessen_v our_o assurance_n of_o his_o favour_n and_o grieve_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o who_o we_o be_v seal_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o our_o redemption_n verse_n 4._o therefore_o moab_n say_v unto_o the_o elder_n of_o midian_a now_o shall_v this_o multitude_n lick_v up_o all_o round_a about_o we_o as_o a_o ox_n lick_v up_o the_o grass_n of_o the_o field_n etc._n etc._n hitherto_o of_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o moabite_n now_o we_o be_v come_v to_o the_o plotting_n and_o conspiracy_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n the_o moabite_n join_v and_o combine_v themselves_o with_o the_o midianite_n man_n as_o wicked_a as_o themselves_o see_v here_o how_o the_o adversary_n of_o israel_n associate_v themselves_o to_o destroy_v the_o church_n though_o differ_v in_o nation_n in_o religion_n in_o tongue_n in_o god_n and_o idol_n among_o themselves_o not_o because_o israel_n have_v offend_v but_o because_o they_o thirst_v after_o blood_n 〈…〉_o 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d ●●rch_n ●●●ga_fw-mi 〈◊〉_d them●●●●●yne_a ●her_n a●_n 〈…〉_o hereby_o we_o learn_v this_o doctrine_n that_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o true_a church_n howsoever_o they_o differ_v in_o judgement_n and_o affection_n yet_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o join_v and_o jump_v together_o against_o the_o child_n of_o god_n notwithstanding_o the_o difference_n and_o division_n among_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o truth_n they_o can_v join_v hand_n in_o hand_n together_o to_o oppress_v the_o church_n this_o be_v note_v in_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a practice_n of_o the_o wicked_a in_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n the_o wicked_a midianites_n &_o amalekites_n with_o those_o of_o the_o east_n not_o inhabit_v in_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n but_o both_o nation_n dwell_v beyond_o the_o river_n differ_v much_o in_o their_o course_n and_o conversation_n and_o serve_v vain_a god_n and_o idol_n assault_v israel_n come_v into_o their_o land_n to_o destroy_v it_o as_o be_v witness_v in_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n chap_v 6_o 3._o so_o against_o jehoshaphat_n a_o godly_a king_n that_o seek_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o his_o father_n and_o walk_v in_o his_o commandment_n come_v the_o child_n of_o moab_n and_o the_o child_n of_o ammon_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o mount_n seir_n to_o battle_n 2_o chron._n 20.1_o 2_o 23._o this_o likewise_o the_o prophet_n david_n teach_v &_o declare_v psal_n 83_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o they_o have_v consult_v together_o in_o heart_n and_o have_v make_v a_o league_n against_o thou_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o edom_n and_o the_o ishmaelit_n moab_n and_o the_o agarim_n gebal_n and_o ammon_n etc._n etc._n where_o he_o note_v out_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o enemy_n which_o the_o church_n have_v albeit_o at_o jar_n among_o themselves_o and_o fight_v sundry_a battle_n one_o against_o another_o yet_o notwithstanding_o consent_v &_o conspire_v together_o to_o destroy_v god_n choose_v this_o also_o be_v plentiful_o teach_v by_o many_o example_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o mat._n 22_o 15_o 16._o when_o the_o pharisy_n have_v take_v counsel_n against_o christ_n how_o they_o may_v entangle_v he_o in_o his_o talk_n they_o send_v unto_o he_o their_o disciple_n with_o the_o herodian_o so_o herod_n and_o pilate_n luk._n 23_o 12._o agree_v like_o cat_n and_o dog_n be_v make_v friend_n together_o and_o pleasure_n one_o another_o which_o have_v be_v enemy_n one_o to_o the_o other_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v make_v a_o mock_n of_o christ_n thus_o the_o hatred_n of_o godliness_n join_v the_o wicked_a together_o this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o apostle_n confess_v in_o their_o prayer_n act_n 4_o 25_o 26._o &_o 6_o 9_o 10_o why_o do_v the_o gentile_n rage_n and_o the_o people_n imagine_v vain_a thing_n the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n assemble_v and_o the_o ruler_n come_v together_o against_o the_o lord_n and_o against_o his_o christ_n for_o doubtless_o against_o thy_o holy_a son_n jesus_n who_o thou_o have_v anoint_v both_o herod_n and_o pontius_n pilate_n with_o the_o gentile_n and_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n gather_v themselves_o together_o moreover_o when_o the_o apostle_n dispute_v against_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o athenian_n act._n 17_o 18._o then_o certain_a philosopher_n of_o the_o epicure_n and_o of_o the_o stoic_n band_v themselves_o together_o against_o he_o albeit_o they_o be_v two_o contrary_a sect_n that_o never_o agree_v and_o consent_v one_o strict_a in_o opinion_n the_o other_o loose_a in_o conversation_n one_o place_v their_o happiness_n in_o virtue_n the_o other_o in_o pleasure_n make_v a_o mock_n of_o all_o religion_n we_o see_v this_o true_a by_o common_a &_o continual_a experience_n look_v upon_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n there_o be_v no_o love_n or_o like_n among_o they_o one_o of_o another_o they_o dare_v not_o trust_v or_o believe_v one_o another_o yet_o they_o strike_v hand_n &_o join_v together_o against_o the_o faithful_a like_a to_o sampsons_n fox_n judg._n 15_o 4._o who_o albeit_o they_o look_v several_a way_n with_o their_o head_n yet_o they_o join_v tail_n to_o tail_n to_o burn_v up_o the_o harvest_n &_o vineyard_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o reason_n be_v evident_a for_o albeit_o they_o be_v reason_n 1_o separate_a one_o from_o another_o and_o often_o spoil_v each_o other_o yet_o they_o unite_v themselves_o in_o league_n together_o because_o they_o fear_v the_o faithful_a and_o the_o decay_n of_o their_o own_o kingdom_n they_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o the_o rise_n uppe_o and_o flourish_v of_o the_o church_n will_v be_v the_o press_v down_o and_o frustrate_v of_o all_o their_o hope_n &_o expectation_n this_o appear_v in_o the_o book_n of_o ester_n when_o mordecai_n be_v honour_v of_o the_o king_n for_o his_o faithful_a
themselves_o to_o base_a course_n to_o follow_v fair_n and_o market_n pitch_v up_o their_o stand_n and_o sell_v pin_n and_o point_n like_o pedlar_n and_o petty_a chapman_n will_v not_o all_o man_n think_v it_o a_o great_a reproach_n and_o h●gh_a disgrace_n to_o their_o estate_n be_v royal_o descend_v and_o bear_v to_o a_o kingdom_n we_o be_v the_o son_n and_o daughter_n of_o almighty_a god_n the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o it_o be_v his_o pleasure_n to_o appoint_v we_o heir_n unto_o a_o kingdom_n luke_n 12_o 32._o we_o be_v a_o choose_a generation_n a_o royal_a priesthood_n reu._n 1_o 6._o a_o holy_a nation_n 1_o pet._n 2_o 9_o a_o people_n set_v at_o liberty_n that_o we_o shall_v show_v forth_o the_o virtue_n of_o he_o that_o have_v call_v we_o out_o of_o darkness_n into_o this_o marvelous_a light_n shall_v we_o then_o be_v king_n child_n and_o bear_v to_o inherit_v a_o kingdom_n not_o of_o this_o world_n but_o of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v so_o much_o debase_v ourselves_o as_o always_o to_o look_v downward_o and_o go_v pore_v and_o stoop_v to_o the_o earth_n like_o bruit_n beast_n and_o not_o cast_v our_o eye_n upward_o like_o man_n make_v after_o the_o likeness_n and_o similitude_n of_o god_n let_v we_o seek_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v above_o col._n 3_o ver_fw-la 1_o 2._o where_o christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n let_v we_o set_v our_o affection_n on_o thing_n which_o be_v altogether_o above_o and_o not_o on_o thing_n which_o be_v here_o beneath_o upon_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v unfit_a for_o our_o call_n and_o holy_a profession_n evermore_o to_o have_v our_o hand_n on_o our_o halfpenny_n make_v gain_n to_o be_v godliness_n and_o our_o belly_n our_o god_n whole_o mind_v earthly_a &_o transitory_a thing_n let_v our_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n phil._n 3_o 20_o and_o from_o thence_o look_v for_o a_o saviour_n to_o change_v our_o frail_a and_o mortal_a body_n and_o to_o make_v they_o like_v to_o his_o glorious_a body_n we_o be_v free_a denizen_n of_o that_o city_n make_v without_o hand_n who_o builder_n and_o maker_n be_v god_n &_o therefore_o let_v we_o not_o spend_v all_o our_o day_n in_o vanity_n and_o waste_v our_o year_n in_o folly_n math._n 6_o 25_o 33._o nor_o be_v excessive_o careful_a what_o to_o eat_v or_o what_o to_o put_v on_o but_o have_v our_o conversation_n without_o covetousness_n and_o first_o of_o all_o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o his_o righteousness_n verse_n 20._o forasmuch_o as_o man_n be_v come_v to_o call_v thou_o rise_v up_o and_o go_v with_o they_o these_o word_n contain_v a_o ironical_a concession_n not_o a_o plain_a approbation_n a_o figurative_a tant_v not_o a_o simple_a allow_v of_o his_o journey_n or_o a_o give_n of_o he_o liberty_n to_o depart_v as_o if_o the_o lord_n shall_v have_v say_v if_o be_v warn_v of_o i_o thou_o will_v take_v no_o warning_n but_o be_v resolve_v what_o to_o do_v and_o stand_v firm_a in_o thy_o heart_n to_o be_v go_v go_v too_o proceed_v in_o thy_o purpose_n and_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o thy_o heart_n but_o know_v that_o thou_o make_v haste_n to_o thy_o own_o confusion_n and_o that_o all_o thy_o endeavour_n shall_v turn_v to_o thy_o destruction_n thus_o we_o see_v god_n reprove_v he_o by_o a_o tant_fw-fr because_o he_o rest_v not_o in_o the_o will_n of_o god_n before_o deliver_v unto_o he_o and_o utter_v in_o a_o plain_a manner_n thus_o when_o as_o man_n receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v god_n send_v they_o strong_a delusion_n that_o they_o may_v be_v seduce_v and_o deceive_v hereby_o we_o learn_v that_o all_o reprove_v of_o sin_n and_o of_o sinner_n by_o way_n of_o tant_v un●●_n 〈◊〉_d ●●●ing_v 〈◊〉_d ar●●_n in_o 〈◊〉_d un●●_n be_v not_o unlawful_a and_o unbeseeming_a the_o profession_n of_o godliness_n all_o iest●ng_n and_o mock_v be_v not_o forbid_v to_o be_v use_v &_o practise_v of_o the_o godly_a this_o we_o see_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o lord_n himself_o judg._n 10_o 14._o go_v and_o cry_v unto_o the_o god_n which_o you_o have_v choose_v let_v they_o save_v you_o in_o the_o time_n of_o your_o tribulation_n thus_o moses_n speak_v to_o the_o people_n deut._n 32_o 37_o 38._o where_o be_v their_o god_n their_o mighty_a god_n in_o who_o they_o trust_v let_v they_o rise_v up_o and_o help_v you_o let_v they_o be_v your_o refuge_n the_o like_a we_o see_v in_o job_n vex_v unjust_o and_o censure_v rash_o by_o his_o friend_n when_o he_o say_v job_n 12_o 12._o indeed_o because_o that_o you_o be_v the_o people_n only_o wisdom_n must_v die_v with_o you_o so_o the_o prophet_n esay_n speak_v to_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n esay_n 8_o 9_o gather_v together_o on_o heap_n o_o you_o people_n and_o you_o shall_v be_v break_v in_o piece_n g●rd_n yourselves_o take_v counsel_n together_o pronounce_v a_o decree_n yet_o it_o shall_v not_o stand_v thus_o the_o prophet_n deal_v with_o amaziah_n 2_o chron._n 25_o 7_o 8._o let_v not_o the_o army_n of_o israel_n go_v with_o thou_o for_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o with_o israel_n if_o not_o go_v thou_o out_o make_v thyself_o strong_a to_o the_o battle_n but_o god_n shall_v make_v thou_o fall_v down_o before_o the_o enemy_n for_o god_n have_v power_n to_o help_v and_o to_o cast_v down_o and_o if_o we_o will_v far_o see_v the_o warrant_n of_o this_o practice_n in_o reprove_v we_o have_v example_n of_o it_o in_o christ_n our_o saviour_n when_o he_o say_v to_o judas_n that_o thou_o do_v do_v quick_o john_n 13_o 27._o and_o when_o he_o speak_v to_o his_o disciple_n 45._o matth._n 26_o 45._o sleep_v henceforth_o &_o take_v your_o rest_n behold_v the_o hour_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v give_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o sinner_n all_o which_o example_n in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n of_o god_n of_o the_o prophet_n of_o christ_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n serve_v to_o teach_v we_o that_o all_o reprove_v of_o sin_n by_o sharp_a tants_z be_v not_o unlawful_a and_o unwarrantable_a the_o reason_n justify_v this_o practice_n be_v reason_n 1_o first_o to_o make_v idolater_n and_o wicked_a man_n to_o see_v their_o sin_n and_o the_o greatness_n of_o they_o to_o move_v they_o to_o repentance_n and_o to_o come_v out_o of_o they_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o be_v ashamed_a of_o their_o offence_n and_o so_o to_o move_v they_o to_o turn_v unto_o god_n this_o the_o prophet_n esay_n urge_v chap._n 46_o 6_o 7._o they_o draw_v gold_n out_o of_o the_o bag_n and_o weigh_v silver_n in_o the_o balance_n and_o hire_v a_o goldsmith_n to_o make_v a_o god_n of_o it_o and_o they_o bow_v down_o and_o worship_v it_o they_o bear_v it_o upon_o their_o shoulder_n they_o carry_v &_o set_v he_o in_o his_o place_n so_o do_v he_o stand_v and_o can_v remove_v from_o his_o place_n though_o one_o cry_v unto_o he_o yet_o he_o can_v answer_v nor_o deliver_v he_o out_o of_o his_o tribulation_n remember_v this_o and_o be_v ashamed_a bring_v it_o again_o to_o mind_n o_o you_o transgressor_n this_o then_o be_v one_o reason_n why_o the_o holy_a ghost_n reprove_v and_o reproach_v in_o a_o deride_v manner_n to_o bring_v offender_n to_o true_a wisdom_n and_o to_o open_v their_o eye_n which_o be_v blind_v that_o they_o see_v nothing_o second_o a_o holy_a deride_v may_v be_v use_v reason_n 2_o to_o disgrace_n and_o discountenance_v sin_n and_o to_o set_v it_o out_o in_o his_o colour_n for_o when_o it_o be_v magnify_v among_o the_o son_n of_o man_n &_o follow_v with_o all_o greediness_n the_o servant_n of_o god_n must_v uncover_v and_o uncase_v it_o and_o lay_v it_o open_v that_o other_o may_v eschew_v it_o thus_o we_o see_v the_o prophet_n eliah_n deal_v with_o the_o priest_n of_o baal_n he_o scoff_v at_o their_o simplicity_n he_o deride_v their_o folly_n and_o in_o a_o holy_a manner_n triumph_v over_o their_o vanity_n when_o he_o say_v 1_o king_n 18_o 28._o cry_v a_o loud_a for_o he_o be_v a_o god_n either_o he_o talk_v or_o pursue_v his_o enemy_n or_o be_v in_o his_o journey_n or_o it_o may_v be_v that_o he_o sleep_v and_o must_v be_v awake_v where_o he_o do_v not_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o their_o idolatry_n and_o idolatrous_a worship_n of_o baal_n nor_o allow_v their_o superstitious_a prayer_n but_o mock_v at_o their_o madness_n to_o disgrace_v their_o wickedness_n and_o to_o reproach_v their_o fall_n from_o the_o true_a god_n the_o use_v be_v to_o be_v consider_v in_o the_o next_o use_v 1_o place_n first_o this_o teach_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n may_v in_o their_o teach_n use_v this_o figure_n when_o they_o deal_v with_o a_o obstinate_a people_n and_o reprove_v
they_o as_o saul_n or_o deny_v they_o as_o achan_n or_o defend_v they_o as_o cain_n therefore_o if_o we_o will_v find_v pardon_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n we_o must_v confess_v unto_o he_o as_o david_n do_v weep_v for_o they_o as_o peter_n do_v if_o we_o uncover_v they_o he_o will_v cover_v they_o if_o we_o condemn_v ourselves_o he_o will_v justify_v us._n therefore_o the_o wiseman_n say_v he_o that_o hide_v his_o sin_n shall_v not_o prosper_v 28_o prou._n 28_o but_o he_o that_o confess_v and_o forsake_v they_o shall_v have_v mercy_n last_o we_o see_v hereby_o that_o sin_n end_v use_v not_o as_o it_o begin_v albeit_o the_o fool_n make_v a_o mock_n of_o sin_n yet_o when_o the_o soul_n be_v torment_v and_o the_o conscience_n oppress_v with_o desperation_n and_o can_v find_v no_o ease_n than_o a_o man_n cease_v not_o to_o utter_v his_o secret_a filthiness_n to_o the_o shame_n of_o himself_o and_o to_o the_o astonishment_n of_o the_o hearer_n let_v we_o not_o look_v for_o pharaoh_n or_o saul_n or_o judas_n to_o come_v out_o of_o hell_n to_o warn_v us._n these_o thing_n be_v write_v for_o our_o learning_n we_o have_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n let_v we_o hearken_v to_o they_o when_o as_o terror_n take_v hold_v upon_o the_o soul_n we_o can_v cover_v sin_n any_o long_o 1_o prou._n 1_o howsoever_o therefore_o sin_n to_o the_o carnal_a man_n be_v sweet_a unto_o the_o taste_n and_o satan_n bait_v his_o hook_n with_o profit_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o with_o pleasure_n on_o the_o other_o yet_o afterward_o it_o shall_v prove_v more_o bitter_a than_o gall_n and_o wormwood_n it_o shall_v wound_v the_o conscience_n as_o with_o a_o deadly_a dart_n and_o pierce_v the_o soul_n through_o with_o many_o sorrow_n for_o albeit_o it_o begin_v in_o sport_n it_o shall_v end_v in_o horror_n and_o despair_n this_o we_o see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o cain_n ●_o gen._n 4_o ●_o my_o punishment_n be_v great_a than_o i_o can_v bear_v so_o judas_n when_o he_o see_v christ_n condemn_v feel_v a_o hell_n in_o his_o conscience_n the_o money_n be_v pleasant_a and_o the_o gain_n be_v sweet_a unto_o he_o but_o it_o be_v as_o a_o two_o edge_a sword_n that_o wound_v incurable_o and_o as_o the_o tooth_n of_o a_o lion_n that_o bit_v mortal_o it_o seem_v unreasonable_a to_o gehazi_n that_o naaman_n the_o syrian_a shall_v depa●t_v with_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n by_o so_o little_a a_o consideration_n 2_o king_n 5_o 23_o 27._o and_o therefore_o follow_v after_o he_o for_o a_o bribe_n and_o reward_n but_o with_o the_o reward_n he_o gain_v the_o leprosy_n that_o do_v cleave_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o his_o seed_n this_o be_v the_o deep_a subtlety_n of_o satan_n before_o sin_n be_v commit_v he_o hide_v the_o deformity_n of_o it_o from_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n he_o make_v as_o if_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n or_o a_o little_a and_o venial_a sin_n or_o a_o little_a punishment_n due_a unto_o it_o or_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v time_n enough_o hereafter_o to_o repent_v of_o it_o he_o be_v come_v a_o preacher_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o pardon_n he_o tell_v the_o sinner_n that_o god_n be_v gracious_a and_o merciful_a thus_o he_o cover_v the_o greatness_n of_o sin_n and_o hide_v the_o greevousnesse_n of_o the_o punishment_n and_o conceal_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n that_o be_v draw_v upon_o us._n but_o when_o he_o have_v once_o prevail_v and_o ensnare_v the_o poor_a soul_n that_o have_v swallow_v the_o bait_n he_o open_v the_o eye_n which_o before_o he_o have_v darken_v he_o rouze_v up_o the_o conscience_n which_o before_o he_o have_v seduce_v he_o strike_v the_o heart_n which_o before_o he_o have_v harden_v he_o uncover_v the_o fire_n of_o god_n indignation_n and_o jealousy_n which_o before_o he_o have_v smother_v then_o he_o make_v sin_n appear_v as_o vile_a and_o ugly_a as_o he_o can_v than_o he_o lay_v it_o open_a in_o his_o colour_n than_o he_o will_v make_v a_o small_a sin_n appear_v the_o great_a then_o he_o set_v forth_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n due_a to_o the_o least_o sin_n and_o all_o to_o bring_v the_o person_n that_o have_v sin_v to_o desperation_n wherefore_o let_v we_o fly_v from_o sin_n as_o from_o the_o bite_a of_o a_o serpent_n that_o we_o be_v not_o sting_v therewith_o to_o eternal_a death_n know_v that_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n rom_n 6_o 23._o 36_o and_o when_o balak_n hear_v that_o balaam_n come_v he_o go_v out_o to_o meet_v he_o unto_o a_o city_n of_o moab_n which_o be_v in_o the_o border_n of_o arnon_n even_o in_o the_o utmost_a coast_n 37_o then_o balak_n say_v unto_o balaam_n do_v not_o i_o send_v for_o thou_o to_o call_v thou_o wherefore_o come_v thou_o not_o unto_o i_o be_o not_o i_o able_a indeed_o to_o promote_v thou_o unto_o honour_n 38_o and_o balaam_n make_v answer_v unto_o balak_n loe_o i_o be_o come_v unto_o thou_o and_o can_v i_o now_o say_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o the_o word_n that_o god_n put_v in_o my_o mouth_n that_o shall_v i_o speak_v 39_o so_o balaam_n go_v with_o balak_n &_o they_o come_v unto_o the_o city_n of_o huzoth_n 40_o then_o balak_n offer_v bull●kes_n and_o sheep_n and_o send_v thereof_o to_o balaam_n and_o to_o the_o prince_n that_o be_v with_o he_o 41_o and_o on_o the_o morrow_n balak_n take_v balaam_n and_o bring_v he_o uppe_o into_o the_o high_a place_n of_o baal_n that_o thence_o he_o may_v see_v the_o utmost_a part_n of_o the_o people_n in_o these_o word_n be_v the_o shut_n up_o of_o this_o chapter_n be_v contain_v the_o last_o branch_n of_o balaam_n go_v to_o curse_v the_o people_n we_o hear_v before_o of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o this_o wizard_n who_o will_v not_o be_v stop_v from_o his_o desire_a journey_n and_o therefore_o the_o lord_n open_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o dumb_a beast_n to_o reprove_v her_o master_n and_o afterward_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n further_o to_o discover_v the_o hollowness_n and_o hypocrisy_n of_o his_o heart_n here_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v the_o meeting_n and_o come_v together_o of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o false_a prophet_n together_o with_o the_o entertainment_n he_o find_v at_o balak_n hand_n herein_o we_o be_v to_o observe_v two_o thing_n first_o their_o talk_n and_o communication_n second_o the_o action_n of_o they_o both_o in_o the_o first_o part_n contain_v the_o speech_n that_o pass_v between_o they_o we_o be_v to_o mark_v that_o the_o king_n to_o honour_v he_o the_o more_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v advertise_v of_o his_o approach_n near_o to_o the_o border_n of_o his_o kingdom_n he_o go_v out_o to_o meet_v he_o for_o no_o doubt_n he_o send_v the_o prince_n and_o messenger_n of_o the_o moabite_n back_n to_o go_v before_o to_o give_v some_o notice_n and_o bring_v joyful_a tiding_n of_o his_o come_n to_o their_o lord_n therefore_o the_o king_n hear_v the_o message_n and_o conceyve_v no_o doubt_n in_o his_o mind_n the_o utter_a overthrow_n of_o the_o israelite_n stay_v not_o until_o he_o come_v within_o his_o dominion_n but_o meet_v he_o in_o the_o bound_n and_o limit_n thereof_o and_o bring_v he_o home_o with_o he_o to_o go_v about_o his_o business_n when_o they_o be_v meet_v note_v in_o their_o talk_n first_o the_o question_n move_v by_o balak_n than_o the_o answer_n of_o balaam_n in_o the_o question_n we_o see_v that_o albeit_o he_o have_v base_o deject_a himself_o and_o creep_v lowly_a into_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n honour_v he_o to_o his_o own_o dishonour_n go_v out_o to_o bring_v he_o in_o and_o after_o a_o sort_n cast_v his_o crown_n and_o dignity_n under_o his_o foot_n yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o glori_v in_o his_o own_o power_n and_o boast_v of_o his_o high_a dignity_n as_o if_o he_o have_v all_o the_o riches_n and_o honour_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n balaam_n do_v not_o deny_v the_o favour_n of_o the_o king_n place_v he_o with_o his_o prince_n reward_v he_o with_o his_o present_n honour_v he_o with_o his_o own_o presence_n and_o send_v for_o he_o from_o far_o but_o make_v a_o short_a answer_n unto_o he_o true_o albeit_o unwilling_o that_o albeit_o he_o be_v come_v at_o the_o king_n desire_n and_o bring_v by_o his_o desert_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o in_o his_o own_o power_n what_o to_o do_v he_o can_v go_v no_o far_o than_o the_o rule_n and_o principle_n of_o his_o art_n will_v suffer_v he_o he_o have_v call_v up_o the_o god_n of_o the_o hebrew_n to_o forsake_v they_o and_o he_o must_v of_o necessity_n speak_v that_o which_o god_n shall_v put_v into_o his_o mouth_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o can_v speak_v what_o i_o will_v but_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o speak_v that_o only_a which_o he_o will_v i_o after_o the_o
the_o world_n to_o be_v adopt_v through_o jesus_n christ_n according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n wherewith_o he_o have_v make_v we_o free_o accept_v in_o his_o belove_a as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v write_v to_o the_o ephesian_n chap._n 1_o 5_o 6._o 1_o pet._n 1_o 2._o thus_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o unmoveable_a rock_n that_o can_v be_v shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o god_n remain_v sure_a &_o have_v this_o seal_n the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o 2_o tim._n 2_o 19_o now_o let_v we_o see_v what_o use_v we_o may_v right_o use_v 1_o conclude_v out_o of_o this_o doctrine_n thus_o confirm_v first_o we_o learn_v from_o hence_o that_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o be_v condemn_v that_o bring_v in_o universal_a grace_n universal_a election_n of_o every_o one_o universal_a redemption_n of_o every_o one_o and_o universal_a vocation_n of_o every_o one_o to_o the_o save_a knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o whereas_o the_o church_n be_v as_o it_o wear_v the_o park_n of_o god_n empale_v in_o from_o other_o waste_a land_n or_o rather_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n wherein_o the_o wild_a beast_n of_o the_o forest_n may_v not_o enter_v this_o doctrine_n pull_v up_o the_o pale_a and_o take_v away_o the_o enclosure_n lay_v it_o in_o common_a and_o join_v it_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o wilderness_n the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v the_o little_a flock_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o world_n luke_n 12_o 32._o we_o see_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n there_o be_v a_o difference_n and_o distinction_n between_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n genesis_n chapter_n 6_o verse_n 1_o between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o gentile_n between_o the_o circumcise_a and_o the_o uncircumcised_a between_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o those_o that_o be_v no_o people_n of_o he_o be_v out_o of_o the_o covenant_n to_o some_o god_n give_v faith_n to_o other_o he_o give_v not_o faith_n for_o all_o have_v not_o faith_n 1_o thess_n 3_o 1._o therefore_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o be_v choose_v math._n 20_o 16_o and_o he_o charge_v his_o disciple_n when_o he_o send_v they_o out_o to_o preach_v not_o to_o go_v into_o the_o way_n of_o the_o gentile_n neither_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o city_n of_o the_o samaritan_n math._n 10_o 5._o and_o he_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o give_v to_o every_o one_o to_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n mat._n 13_o 11._o so_o the_o apostle_n in_o spread_v abroad_o the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o salvation_n and_o work_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o nation_n to_o who_o they_o be_v send_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v command_v to_o remain_v certain_a year_n in_o some_o city_n because_o the_o lord_n have_v much_o people_n in_o those_o place_n and_o when_o they_o be_v enter_v into_o other_o city_n the_o spirit_n suffer_v they_o not_o to_o publish_v among_o they_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n 7._o act_n 16_o 7._o act._n 18_o 10._o use_v 2_o second_o we_o must_v look_v for_o a_o full_a and_o perfect_a separation_n of_o the_o elect_a from_o the_o reprobate_n of_o the_o sheep_n from_o the_o goat_n of_o the_o vessel_n of_o mercy_n from_o the_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v break_v the_o heaven_n and_o come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a indeed_o here_o be_v some_o separation_n make_v by_o the_o fan_n of_o his_o word_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n &_o by_o the_o fire_n or_o furnace_n of_o affliction_n yet_o still_o the_o chaff_n be_v mingle_v with_o the_o wheat_n the_o tare_n with_o the_o corn_n bad_a fish_n with_o the_o good_a the_o hypocrite_n with_o the_o faithful_a and_o true_a believer_n but_o when_o christ_n shall_v come_v with_o thousand_o of_o his_o angel_n and_o the_o heaven_n be_v dissolve_v the_o book_n shall_v be_v open_v and_o thing_n hide_v in_o darkness_n shall_v be_v disclose_v revel_v 20_o 12._o here_o a_o beginning_n be_v make_v but_o then_o shall_v be_v a_o absolute_a perfection_n and_o consummation_n of_o this_o separation_n this_o be_v open_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o evangelist_n mat._n 25_o 31_o 32_o 33._o see_v this_o separation_n shall_v come_v what_o manner_n of_o man_n ought_v we_o to_o be_v in_o all_o holiness_n of_o life_n and_o conversation_n let_v we_o search_v and_o try_v our_o own_o way_n and_o turn_v unto_o the_o lord_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n that_o when_o christ_n shall_v appear_v at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o harvest_n and_o solemn_a season_n of_o separation_n we_o may_v be_v find_v good_a corn_n and_o not_o be_v blow_v away_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o his_o mouth_n when_o he_o shall_v blow_v the_o chaff_n into_o unquenchable_a fire_n where_o shall_v be_v weep_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n but_o if_o we_o be_v not_o here_o separate_v from_o the_o sin_n and_o corruption_n of_o the_o wicked_a when_o god_n separate_v the_o soul_n and_o body_n we_o shall_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o comfortable_a presence_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v remain_v with_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n for_o ever_o never_o to_o be_v separate_v and_o sunder_v from_o they_o use_v 3_o three_o this_o give_v good_a assurance_n and_o comfort_n unto_o they_o that_o god_n will_v hear_v their_o prayer_n and_o respect_v they_o in_o their_o misery_n for_o see_v they_o be_v his_o chief_a treasure_n exod._n 19_o 5_o 6_o albeit_o all_o the_o earth_n be_v his_o see_v they_o be_v a_o kingdom_n of_o priest_n and_o a_o holy_a nation_n he_o will_v not_o see_v they_o want_v and_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o any_o thing_n which_o he_o know_v to_o serve_v for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o their_o good_a this_o be_v that_o use_n which_o solomon_n remember_v in_o his_o prayer_n at_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o temple_n 1_o king_n 8_o 52_o 53._o let_v thy_o eye_n be_v open_a unto_o the_o prayer_n of_o thy_o servant_n and_o unto_o the_o prayer_n of_o thy_o people_n israel_n to_o hearken_v unto_o they_o in_o all_o that_o they_o call_v for_o unto_o thou_o for_o thou_o do_v separate_v they_o to_o thou_o from_o among_o all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o a_o inheritance_n as_o thou_o say_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n thy_o servant_n when_o thou_o bring_v our_o father_n out_o of_o egypt_n o_o lord_n god_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o dear_a account_n &_o estimation_n that_o god_n have_v of_o his_o church_n separate_v it_o to_o himself_o and_o call_v it_o out_o of_o the_o world_n aught_o to_o move_v we_o with_o boldness_n to_o draw_v near_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n and_o to_o comfort_v we_o with_o assurance_n to_o be_v hear_v in_o our_o necessity_n for_o what_o can_v god_n deny_v unto_o we_o that_o have_v give_v we_o himself_o or_o what_o can_v we_o want_v that_o know_v the_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o before_o we_o be_v wherefore_o whensoever_o we_o be_v bring_v into_o any_o affliction_n and_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o help_n let_v we_o be_v mindful_a of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o and_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o he_o which_o have_v separate_v and_o sanctify_v we_o from_o our_o mother_n womb_n will_v perfect_v his_o own_o work_n that_o he_o have_v begin_v &_o finish_v it_o unto_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n last_o we_o must_v know_v that_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o use_v fly_v from_o all_o ungodliness_n and_o worldly_a lust_n and_o to_o have_v no_o fellowship_n with_o the_o ungodly_a nor_o the_o unfruitefull_a work_n of_o darkness_n tit._n 2_o 12._o this_o indeed_o be_v pure_a religion_n &_o undefiled_a to_o keep_v ourselves_o unspotted_a to_o the_o world_n this_o the_o apostle_n paul_n urge_v 2_o corin._n 6_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17_o 18._o we_o know_v that_o a_o little_a leaven_n leaven_v the_o whole_a lump_n one_o rot_a sheep_n infect_v a_o whole_a flock_n one_o leper_n spread_v the_o disease_n further_o to_o the_o hurt_n of_o sundry_a other_o now_o there_o be_v no_o leaven_n like_a to_o the_o leaven_n of_o sin_n 1._o cor._n 5.6_o no_o infection_n comparable_a to_o the_o infection_n of_o sin_n no_o leprosy_n so_o deadly_a and_o dangerous_a as_o the_o contagion_n of_o sin_n which_o bring_v danger_n and_o destruction_n to_o soul_n and_o body_n therefore_o we_o must_v not_o join_v ourselves_o with_o the_o ungodly_a see_v we_o be_v a_o holy_a people_n to_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n he_o have_v choose_v we_o to_o be_v a_o precious_a people_n unto_o himself_o above_o other_o people_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n we_o be_v a_o choose_a generation_n a_o royal_a priesthood_n a_o holy_a nation_n a_o people_n set_v at_o liberty_n that_o we_o shall_v show_v forth_o
the_o virtue_n of_o he_o that_o have_v call_v we_o out_o of_o darkness_n into_o his_o marvellous_a light_n see_v we_o be_v wash_v from_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o flesh_n let_v we_o not_o defile_v ourselves_o again_o see_v we_o be_v call_v out_o of_o the_o world_n let_v we_o not_o return_v into_o the_o world_n and_o see_v we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o thraldom_n of_o sin_n let_v we_o not_o sell_v ourselves_o again_o to_o our_o own_o lust_n which_o fight_v against_o the_o soul_n we_o can_v come_v near_o a_o infectious_a disease_n without_o danger_n of_o infection_n we_o can_v touch_v pitch_n without_o danger_n to_o be_v defile_v with_o it_o the_o apostle_n say_v be_v not_o deceive_v ●_o 1_o cor._n ●_o evil_a word_n corrupt_v good_a manner_n the_o wiseman_n teach_v that_o he_o which_o walk_v with_o the_o wise_a shab_v be_v the_o wise_a but_o a_o companion_n of_o fool_n shall_v be_v the_o worse_a prou._n 13_o 20._o jonathan_n by_o the_o friendship_n and_o familiarity_n which_o he_o have_v with_o david_n change_v his_o life_n to_o better_a solomon_n by_o the_o society_n and_o conjunction_n with_o his_o idolatrous_a wife_n 4._o 〈◊〉_d 11_o 4._o fall_v into_o idolatry_n and_o rehoboam_n his_o son_n by_o walk_v with_o his_o young_a counsellor_n and_o follow_v their_o advice_n become_v worse_a if_o then_o we_o will_v avoid_v evil_a we_o must_v beware_v of_o all_o occasion_n no_o occasion_n more_o dangerous_a than_o evil_a company_n every_o man_n therefore_o must_v take_v heed_n to_o himself_o and_o beware_v how_o he_o join_v himself_o in_o acquaintance_n with_o all_o man_n indifferent_o many_o that_o have_v be_v of_o a_o stay_a course_n and_o a_o approve_a life_n have_v ruin_v themselves_o by_o make_v no_o choice_n of_o their_o company_n and_o have_v lose_v their_o honour_n and_o honesty_n a_o jewel_n which_o be_v once_o lose_v can_v never_o be_v repair_v and_o restore_v this_o we_o see_v by_o woeful_a experience_n confirm_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o example_n of_o many_o young_a man_n and_o maiden_n who_o hate_v evil_a and_o make_v conscience_n of_o sin_n in_o themselves_o have_v fearful_o fall_v and_o make_v shipwreck_n of_o all_o godliness_n and_o goodness_n through_o the_o seducement_n of_o other_o verse_n 10_o who_o can_v tell_v the_o dust_n of_o jacob_n &_o the_o number_n of_o the_o four_o part_n of_o israel_n here_o begin_v the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o first_o prophecy_n set_v down_o the_o infinite_a multitude_n of_o the_o faithful_a compare_v by_o a_o hyperbolical_a or_o excessive_a speech_n to_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o can_v be_v number_v this_o he_o speak_v be_v as_o it_o be_v ravish_v and_o astonish_v at_o the_o great_a number_n of_o they_o according_a as_o the_o lord_n have_v promise_v long_o before_o to_o abraham_n gen._n 15_o 5._o look_v up_o now_o unto_o heaven_n and_o tell_v the_o star_n if_o thou_o be_v able_a to_o number_v they_o and_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o so_o shall_v thy_o seed_n be_v thus_o than_o this_o false_a prophet_n be_v make_v a_o preacher_n and_o publisher_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o largeness_n of_o the_o bound_n thereof_o hereby_o we_o learn_v that_o god_n have_v a_o great_a &_o infinite_a people_n that_o belong_v unto_o he_o child_n ●●●●rine_n ●e_v church_n ●nd_v with_o 〈◊〉_d child_n albeit_o the_o good_a corn_n be_v scarce_o see_v when_o it_o be_v mingle_v with_o the_o chaff_n yet_o when_o it_o be_v sever_v and_o bring_v together_o it_o make_v a_o great_a heap_n the_o number_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o choose_a people_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v redeem_v &_o will_v in_o the_o end_n glorify_v be_v a_o great_a people_n this_o appear_v unto_o we_o in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o word_n the_o prophet_n prophesy_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n tell_v we_o that_o his_o dominion_n shall_v be_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n and_o from_o the_o river_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o land_n that_o all_o king_n shall_v worship_v he_o and_o all_o nation_n shall_v serve_v he_o bless_v he_o and_o be_v bless_v in_o he_o psal_n 72_o 8_o 11_o 17_o 19_o christ_n teach_v we_o that_o many_o shall_v come_v from_o east_n and_o west_n and_o shall_v sit_v down_o with_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n he_o say_v that_o when_o the_o laborer_n be_v few_o to_o put_v their_o sickle_n in_o the_o ripe_a corn_n yet_o god_n have_v a_o great_a and_o plentiful_a harvest_n to_o be_v gather_v into_o his_o barn_n math_n 8_o 11_o and_o 9.37_o and_o likewise_o 26_o 28._o at_o the_o institution_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n this_o the_o apostle_n show_v to_o the_o hebrew_n chap._n 2_o 10._o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n answer_v evident_o at_o one_o time_n when_o elias_n think_v he_o have_v be_v alone_o that_o he_o have_v reserve_v to_o himself_o seven_o thousand_o that_o never_o bow_v their_o knee_n to_o baal_n 1_o king_n 19_o 18._o this_o truth_n be_v reveal_v to_o john_n revel_v 7_o 8_o 9_o so_o then_o the_o church_n be_v store_v with_o many_o believer_n and_o be_v as_o a_o fruitful_a mother_n that_o abound_v with_o many_o child_n the_o reason_n be_v plain_a and_o evident_a for_o reason_n 1_o first_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o a_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n to_o believe_v the_o church_n to_o be_v catholic_a and_o it_o be_v catholic_a in_o three_o respect_n in_o respect_n of_o time_n of_o place_n and_o of_o person_n of_o time_n because_o it_o have_v be_v in_o all_o age_n and_o time_n since_o the_o first_o promise_n make_v to_o our_o first_o parent_n in_o paradise_n heb._n chap._n 13_o verse_n 8._o revel_v chap._n 13_o verse_n 8._o and_o shall_v continue_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n of_o place_n because_o it_o be_v gather_v from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n 35_o act_n 10_o 34_o 35_o whereas_o before_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n it_o be_v include_v within_o the_o territory_n of_o judea_n now_o it_o be_v disperse_v far_o and_o near_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o person_n 28._o gal._n 3_o 28._o because_o it_o stand_v of_o all_o estate_n and_o degree_n of_o man_n high_a and_o low_a rich_a and_o poor_a male_a &_o female_a jew_n and_o gentile_n learned_a &_o unlearned_a whereas_o before_o god_n call_v and_o single_v out_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n to_o be_v his_o people_n if_o then_o the_o church_n be_v thus_o large_a and_o spread_v itself_o to_o all_o time_n to_o all_o place_n and_o to_o all_o person_n if_o it_o be_v so_o general_a and_o universal_a it_o must_v necessary_o follow_v that_o many_o be_v the_o part_n and_o member_n of_o it_o second_o we_o do_v not_o marvel_v that_o there_o be_v many_o member_n of_o the_o church_n make_v partaker_n reason_v 2_o of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n see_v by_o one_o man_n disobedience_n many_o be_v make_v sinner_n for_o we_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o sin_n and_o transgression_n of_o adam_n and_o we_o sin_v in_o his_o sin_n when_o he_o sin_v we_o sin_v &_o be_v make_v guilty_a thereof_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n because_o albeit_o we_o be_v then_o unborn_a and_o without_o a_o be_v yet_o we_o be_v his_o seed_n and_o posterity_n and_o be_v all_o in_o his_o loin_n through_o this_o guiltiness_n it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v 3._o eph._n 2_o 3._o that_o we_o be_v conceive_v in_o original_a sin_n have_v all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o soul_n &_o part_n of_o the_o body_n corrupt_v and_o the_o spawn_n of_o all_o sin_n be_v infuse_v into_o we_o and_o we_o be_v there_o by_o make_v the_o child_n of_o wrath_n as_o well_o as_o other_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n the_o heir_n of_o hell_n and_o condemnation_n if_o then_o the_o power_n of_o adam_n fall_n be_v so_o great_a as_o to_o infect_v &_o corrupt_v all_o his_o posterity_n then_o much_o more_o shall_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n be_v impute_v to_o many_o and_o be_v able_a to_o m●ke_v they_o partaker_n of_o everlasting_a life_n as_o adam_n by_o natural_a propagation_n have_v spread_v his_o fault_n and_o guiltiness_n o●_n his_o fall_n to_o the_o destruction_n of_o many_o so_o christ_n obedience_n have_v by_o grace_n overflow_v to_o many_o who_o be_v appoint_v for_o the_o rise_n again_o of_o many_o in_o israel_n luke_n chapter_n 2_o verse_n 34._o this_o the_o apostle_n teach_v &_o thus_o he_o reason_v ro._n 5_o 14_o 15_o 18_o 19_o as_o by_o one_o man_n disobedience_n many_o be_v make_v sinner_n so_o by_o the_o obedience_n of_o that_o one_o shall_v many_o also_o be_v make_v righteous_a wherefore_o see_v the_o church_n be_v every_o way_n catholic_n in_o
be_v always_o in_o sight_n of_o his_o parent_n the_o servant_n of_o his_o master_n the_o soldier_n of_o his_o captain_n the_o subject_n of_o his_o prince_n they_o will_v not_o have_v a_o unseemly_a gesture_n a_o disorder_a action_n how_o much_o more_o do_v it_o stand_v we_o upon_o to_o behave_v ourselves_o honest_o and_o in_o order_n and_o to_o look_v to_o all_o our_o way_n that_o we_o offend_v not_o before_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n in_o who_o presence_n we_o stand_v when_o the_o minister_n pray_v and_o preach_v when_o the_o people_n attend_v and_o hearken_v we_o must_v know_v that_o god_n look_v upon_o us._n if_o any_o thing_n be_v do_v unreverent_o and_o wicked_o he_o see_v it_o and_o behold_v it_o when_o it_o be_v commit_v we_o can_v hide_v it_o from_o his_o sight_n and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v do_v nothing_o that_o may_v grieve_v he_o this_o be_v that_o use_n which_o moses_n set_v down_o in_o give_v direction_n to_o the_o people_n when_o they_o go_v to_o war_n deut._n 23_o 12_o 14_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o place_n without_o the_o host_n whither_o they_o shall_v resort_v for_o the_o necessity_n of_o nature_n and_o cover_v their_o excrement_n for_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n say_v he_o walk_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o thy_o camp_n to_o deliver_v thou_o and_o to_o give_v thou_o thy_o enemy_n before_o thou_o therefore_o thy_o host_n shall_v be_v holy_a that_o he_o see_v no_o filthy_a thing_n in_o thou_o and_o turn_v away_o from_o thou_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o ceremony_n lead_v we_o as_o it_o do_v they_o to_o a_o far_a matter_n let_v we_o let_v the_o figure_n pass_v &_o come_v to_o the_o substance_n which_o teach_v that_o we_o must_v be_v a_o holy_a people_n to_o god_n in_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o take_v heed_n of_o stain_v and_o defile_v ourselves_o and_o what_o be_v it_o that_o do_v defile_v we_o it_o be_v not_o that_o which_o enter_v into_o man_n but_o that_o which_o come_v out_o of_o a_o man_n as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o the_o meat_n we_o eat_v matth._n 15_o 18._o all_o the_o evil_a affection_n that_o we_o have_v within_o we_o be_v so_o many_o staining_n of_o we_o before_o god_n evil_a thought_n murder_n adultery_n fornication_n theft_n false_a witness_n slander_n be_v so_o many_o infection_n and_o as_o filthy_a dirt_n and_o dung_n in_o his_o sight_n we_o must_v all_o of_o we_o learn_v to_o purge_v ourselves_o from_o such_o foul_a and_o filthy_a corruption_n if_o we_o will_v have_v god_n to_o rule_v and_o be_v resident_a among_o us._n if_o a_o man_n be_v to_o receyve_v any_o honourable_a guest_n or_o stranger_n into_o his_o house_n he_o will_v have_v it_o sweep_v and_o keep_v clean_o that_o he_o offend_v not_o those_o that_o he_o will_v entertain_v it_o be_v a_o great_a honour_n unto_o we_o that_o god_n will_v dwell_v with_o we_o and_o rest_n among_o we_o and_o vouchsafe_v so_o to_o abase_v himself_o as_o to_o walk_v among_o we_o ought_v not_o we_o then_o to_o be_v careful_a how_o we_o walk_v before_o he_o and_o to_o be_v wary_a every_o one_o of_o we_o lest_o we_o shall_v displease_v he_o ought_v we_o not_o to_o behave_v ourselves_o with_o all_o fear_n and_o reverence_n see_v he_o behold_v we_o and_o ey_v whatsoever_o we_o do_v throughout_o our_o whole_a life_n for_o as_o he_o be_v come_v near_o unto_o we_o james_n 4_o 8_o so_o unless_o we_o draw_v never_o unto_o he_o cleanse_v our_o hand_n and_o purge_v our_o heart_n he_o will_v withdraw_v himself_o from_o we_o if_o we_o make_v not_o our_o soul_n and_o body_n pure_a temple_n for_o he_o to_o lodge_v and_o abide_v in_o he_o will_v dwell_v with_o we_o upon_o no_o other_o condition_n if_o we_o do_v not_o mark_v and_o observe_v this_o we_o make_v our_o soul_n guilty_a of_o drive_v god_n away_o that_o he_o shall_v no_o long_o remain_v among_o we_o to_o bless_v us._n last_o we_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n by_o his_o presence_n use_v 4_o to_o wait_v and_o stay_v ourselves_o upon_o his_o providence_n in_o all_o thing_n depend_v upon_o his_o protection_n and_o deliverance_n stephen_n a_o faithful_a witness_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v persuade_v of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n stand_v out_o to_o death_n and_o bold_o maintain_v the_o cause_n of_o god_n against_o all_o his_o adversary_n act_n 7_o 56._o we_o be_v always_o in_o such_o sort_n under_o his_o protection_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o fear_v that_o his_o power_n will_v fail_v to_o maintain_v and_o preserve_v us._n when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n say_v unto_o his_o disciple_n matth._n 28_o 20._o go_v into_o all_o nation_n preach_v unto_o they_o and_o baptize_v they_o he_o add_v loe_o i_o be_o with_o you_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n whereby_o he_o mean_v to_o confirm_v and_o strengthen_v they_o in_o all_o the_o combat_n they_o be_v to_o suffer_v and_o conflict_n which_o they_o be_v to_o endure_v in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o christ_n appear_v unto_o paul_n and_o promise_v his_o presence_n to_o be_v with_o he_o give_v he_o boldness_n to_o undergo_v great_a danger_n and_o not_o to_o account_v his_o own_o life_n precious_a and_o dear_a unto_o he_o so_o long_o as_o he_o may_v do_v service_n unto_o god_n he_o say_v unto_o he_o act_v 18_o 9.10_o fear_v not_o but_o speak_v and_o hold_v not_o thy_o peace_n for_o i_o be_o with_o thou_o and_o no_o man_n shall_v lay_v hand_n on_o thou_o to_o hurt_v thou_o for_o i_o have_v much_o people_n in_o this_o city_n thus_o the_o lord_n speak_v to_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n be_v not_o afraid_a of_o their_o face_n for_o i_o be_o with_o thou_o to_o deliver_v thou_o here_o we_o see_v the_o presence_n of_o god_n be_v make_v as_o a_o reason_n to_o strengthen_v he_o in_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o call_n we_o meet_v with_o many_o danger_n and_o encumbrance_n that_o assault_v we_o and_o set_v upon_o we_o in_o the_o run_n of_o our_o race_n and_o find_v many_o enemy_n that_o seek_v to_o stop_v our_o course_n &_o such_o be_v our_o weakness_n that_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o overmastet_fw-la they_o and_o to_o go_v lusty_o forward_a in_o a_o resolute_a and_o constant_a course_n unless_o we_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n this_o doctrine_n that_o balaam_n publish_v as_o a_o privilege_n belong_v unto_o the_o church_n that_o god_n be_v with_o we_o and_o will_v never_o forsake_v us._n let_v we_o therefore_o consider_v 13._o rom._n 8_o 13._o if_o he_o be_v with_o we_o we_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o fear_v who_o be_v against_o us._n he_o will_v smite_v our_o enemy_n upon_o the_o cheek_n bone_n &_o break_v the_o tooth_n of_o the_o wicked_a he_o will_v scatter_v their_o counsel_n and_o device_n and_o cast_v down_o whatsoever_o rise_v up_o against_o our_o peace_n and_n the_o joyful_a shout_n of_o a_o king_n be_v among_o they_o this_o be_v the_o three_o prerogative_n grant_v to_o the_o church_n which_o god_n as_o king_n of_o the_o church_n grant_v unto_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o sceptre_n of_o his_o kingdom_n &_o the_o law_n by_o which_o it_o be_v govern_v for_o as_o no_o kingdom_n can_v stand_v without_o statute_n nor_o the_o subject_n be_v govern_v without_o law_n so_o it_o be_v in_o god_n kingdom_n he_o be_v the_o king_n the_o church_n be_v the_o kingdom_n the_o word_n be_v the_o statute_n law_n the_o devil_n &_o all_o his_o instrument_n be_v traitor_n to_o this_o kingdom_n the_o faithful_a and_o elect_a be_v the_o natural_a subject_n which_o willing_o yield_v obedience_n to_o the_o word_n 1._o esay_n 13_o 1._o this_o word_n be_v the_o arm_n of_o god_n and_o the_o kingdom_n must_v be_v preach_v to_o draw_v the_o elect_a into_o his_o kingdom_n this_o balaam_n call_v a_o joyful_a shout_n and_o the_o prophet_n be_v command_v of_o god_n esay_n 58_o 1_o to_o cry_v aloud_o and_o not_o spare_v to_o lift_v up_o his_o voice_n like_o a_o trumpet_n show_v to_o the_o people_n their_o sin_n and_o the_o house_n of_o jacob_n their_o transgression_n this_o teach_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a honour_n and_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n to_o have_v the_o joyful_a shout_n of_o the_o word_n to_o sound_v among_o they_o word_n doctrine_n it_o be_v the_o church_n privilege_n to_o have_v the_o pure_a use_n of_o the_o word_n the_o scripture_n or_o word_n of_o god_n be_v a_o privilege_n belong_v proper_o to_o the_o church_n &_o the_o use_n thereof_o when_o god_n give_v his_o law_n in_o sinai_n it_o be_v give_v only_o to_o israel_n as_o appear_v deut._n 4_o 1._o exod._n 20_o 11_o 2._o where_o moses_n stir_v up_o israel_n to_o hearken_v to_o the_o statute_n &_o ordinance_n that_o shall_v be_v deliver_v unto_o they_o so_o the_o prophet_n speak_v psal_n 147_o 19_o 20._o he_o show_v his_o word_n
therefore_o to_o be_v esteem_v above_o all_o the_o glory_n riches_n pleasure_n and_o profit_n of_o this_o world_n this_o make_v the_o prophet_n david_n say_v many_o say_v lord_n who_o will_v show_v we_o any_o good_a but_o lord_n lift_v thou_o up_o the_o light_n of_o thy_o countenance_n upon_o we_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o more_o joy_n of_o heart_n than_o they_o have_v have_v when_o their_o wheat_n and_o their_o wine_n do_v abound_v psal_n 4_o 6_o 7._o hereunto_o accord_v the_o apostle_n phil._n 3_o 20._o so_o then_o they_o be_v convince_v &_o condemn_v to_o be_v profane_a beast_n possess_v with_o the_o evil_a spirit_n of_o esau_n that_o will_v not_o keep_v the_o lord_n sabbath_n nor_o attend_v upon_o his_o worship_n but_o make_v that_o day_n a_o time_n of_o toil_n and_o travail_v about_o their_o worldly_a business_n and_o a_o day_n to_o be_v spend_v in_o dance_v and_o dally_v in_o surfeit_v and_o drunkenness_n in_o game_n &_o idleness_n thereby_o make_v that_o which_o be_v the_o lord_n day_n by_o his_o institution_n to_o be_v to_o they_o the_o devil_n day_n by_o their_o profanation_n the_o gospel_n and_o all_o thing_n of_o a_o better_a life_n be_v light_o regard_v of_o all_o such_o as_o be_v give_v to_o their_o profit_n and_o pleasure_n and_o delight_n to_o pamper_v up_o the_o flesh_n no_o religion_n can_v enter_v into_o the_o rich_a glutton_n that_o be_v clad_v in_o purple_a and_o fare_v delicious_o every_o day_n luk._n 16_o 19_o the_o rich_a man_n who_o ground_n bring_v forth_o fruit_n plenteous_o who_o tongue_n promise_v to_o he_o perpetuity_n and_o who_o heart_n breed_v in_o he_o security_n never_o think_v what_o shall_v become_v of_o his_o soul_n never_o dream_v of_o sudden_a death_n never_o mind_v his_o own_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o god_n say_v unto_o he_o o_o fool_n this_o night_n will_v they_o fetch_v away_o thy_o soul_n from_o thou_o than_o who_o shall_v those_o thing_n be_v which_o thou_o have_v provide_v luk_n 12_o 16._o the_o apostle_n peter_n make_v it_o a_o special_a mark_n of_o the_o profane_a beast_n in_o that_o time_n 13._o 2_o pet._n 2_o 13._o that_o they_o account_v it_o their_o chief_a pleasure_n to_o live_v delicious_o for_o a_o season_n and_o the_o apostle_n jude_n speak_v of_o the_o like_a liver_n say_v 11._o jude_n 11._o they_o be_v feast-hunter_n fill_v &_o pamper_v themselves_o of_o this_o sort_n be_v all_o drunkard_n glutton_n epicure_n and_o belly-god_n speak_v unto_o they_o to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n to_o mind_v heavenly_a thing_n to_o consider_v wherefore_o they_o be_v create_v and_o to_o remember_v the_o shortness_n of_o their_o life_n they_o can_v hear_v the_o belly_n have_v no_o ear_n they_o be_v ready_a to_o answer_v with_o carnal_a mind_a man_n what_o will_v the_o gospel_n advantage_n i_o why_o shall_v i_o be_v a_o professor_n and_o become_v a_o by_o word_n of_o the_o world_n what_o good_a come_v to_o a_o man_n by_o hear_v the_o word_n by_o read_v the_o scripture_n or_o by_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n it_o can_v get_v i_o neither_o many_o in_o my_o purse_n nor_o clothes_n to_o my_o back_n nor_o food_n to_o my_o belly_n nor_o any_o other_o pleasure_n to_o my_o heart_n i_o have_v rather_o have_v the_o company_n of_o good_a fellow_n and_o a_o draught_n of_o wine_n or_o strong_a drink_n then_o to_o hear_v the_o best_a sermon_n that_o can_v be_v preach_v and_o here_o consider_v with_o i_o profane_a esau_n once_o again_o when_o jacob_n demand_v of_o he_o the_o sale_n of_o his_o birthright_n the_o say_v loe_o i_o be_o almost_o dead_a what_o be_v then_o this_o birthright_n to_o i_o gen._n 25_o 31._o thus_o the_o atheist_n speak_v in_o the_o book_n of_o job_n chap._n 21_o 15._o who_o be_v the_o almighty_a that_o we_o shall_v serve_v he_o and_o what_o profit_n shall_v we_o have_v if_o we_o shall_v pray_v unto_o he_o such_o profane_a esave_n there_o be_v many_o in_o the_o world_n monster_n among_o the_o son_n of_o man_n proud_a giant_n that_o be_v at_o open_a defiance_n with_o god_n that_o regard_v the_o cup_n and_o can_n the_o pot_n and_o good_a fellowship_n before_o heaven_n and_o heavenly_a thing_n that_o prize_n the_o most_o precious_a pearl_n of_o god_n most_o base_o like_o judas_n the_o son_n of_o perdition_n that_o value_v christ_n at_o thirty_o penny_n so_o these_o sell_v everlasting_a life_n and_o give_v heaven_n &_o depart_v from_o salvation_n some_o for_o their_o whore_n some_o for_o their_o drink_n some_o for_o their_o money_n and_o other_o for_o other_o base_a and_o beastly_a pleasure_n all_o these_o shall_v one_o day_n know_v the_o price_n of_o their_o folly_n and_o confess_v with_o their_o own_o mouth_n that_o they_o be_v worse_o than_o fool_n and_o mad_a man_n that_o every_o one_o be_v ready_a to_o point_v at_o with_o the_o finger_n every_o one_o be_v ready_a to_o sit_v in_o judgement_n upon_o esau_n &_o to_o condemn_v the_o profaneness_n of_o his_o hart_n because_o he_o regard_v more_o the_o satsfy_n of_o his_o present_a lust_n and_o moment_n any_o pleasure_n then_o to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o his_o father_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n yet_o of_o this_o number_n there_o be_v infinite_a thousand_o in_o the_o world_n that_o prize_v the_o precious_a treasure_n of_o god_n heavenly_a grace_n the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o frame_n of_o christian_a religion_n the_o glorious_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n the_o hope_n of_o a_o better_a life_n and_o the_o endless_a joy_n of_o god_n kingdom_n thing_n more_o of_o value_n then_o the_o whole_a world_n beside_o as_o brutish_o &_o base_o as_o ever_o esau_n do_v his_o birthright_n &_o be_v ready_a to_o sell_v they_o for_o every_o filthy_a gain_n &_o drudgery_n pleasure_n they_o think_v of_o no_o other_o life_n then_o this_o present_a and_o know_v no_o other_o god_n but_o mammon_n and_o therefore_o howsoever_o they_o have_v oftentimes_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o commendation_n to_o be_v civil_a &_o honest_a man_n they_o be_v not_o only_a enemy_n unto_o their_o soul_n but_o to_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n 18._o 〈◊〉_d 3_o 18._o and_o be_v in_o the_o fearful_a estate_n of_o condemnation_n verse_n 14._o come_v i_o will_v counsel_v thou_o such_o thing_n as_o this_o people_n shall_v do_v to_o thy_o people_n in_o the_o latter_a day_n here_o we_o have_v set_v down_o unto_o we_o the_o chief_a occasion_n of_o that_o great_a judgement_n which_o fall_v upon_o the_o people_n wherein_o four_o &_o twenty_o thousand_o perish_v as_o appear_v in_o the_o chap_a follow_v namely_o the_o devilish_a counsel_n of_o balaam_n which_o he_o give_v unto_o balak_n to_o draw_v the_o people_n into_o fornication_n but_o it_o may_v seem_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n that_o balaam_n speak_v very_o unproper_o for_o whereas_o he_o say_v i_o will_v counsel_v thou_o such_o thing_n as_o this_o people_n shall_v do_v to_o thy_o people_n some_o may_v suppose_v he_o shall_v rather_o have_v say_v i_o will_v counsel_v thou_o such_o thing_n as_o thou_o and_o thy_o people_n shall_v do_v to_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n notwithstanding_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o word_n aright_o we_o shall_v see_v his_o meaning_n to_o be_v so_o in_o effect_n so_o then_o if_o we_o mark_v what_o the_o people_n of_o god_n shall_v do_v to_o they_o we_o shall_v find_v what_o they_o shall_v do_v to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n the_o israelite_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o seventeenth_o verse_n shall_v smite_v the_o coast_n of_o moab_n and_o destroy_v they_o subdue_v they_o and_o bring_v they_o under_o so_o be_v the_o drift_n of_o his_o counsel_n to_o lay_v a_o plot_n and_o prepare_v a_o snare_n whereby_o the_o israelite_n shall_v be_v weaken_v and_o many_o thousand_o of_o they_o destroy_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o know_v this_o people_n who_o thou_o hate_v shall_v waste_v and_o weaken_v thy_o posterity_n in_o time_n to_o come_v but_o harken_v unto_o i_o and_o obey_v my_o counsel_n i_o will_v show_v thou_o how_o thou_o shall_v ruin_v they_o and_o compass_v their_o destruction_n and_o so_o do_v unto_o they_o that_o which_o they_o shall_v do_v unto_o thy_o people_n thus_o we_o see_v the_o wickedness_n of_o balaams_n heart_n to_o be_v exceed_o great_a who_o when_o he_o be_v restrain_v from_o curse_v open_v his_o mouth_n to_o wicked_a counsel_n &_o thereby_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n fall_v into_o horrible_a sin_n and_o draw_v upon_o themselves_o heavy_a punishment_n counsel_n ●ctrine_n 〈◊〉_d a_o horri●_n 〈◊〉_d to_o give_v 〈◊〉_d counsel_n hereby_o we_o learn_v that_o to_o give_v evil_a counsel_n be_v a_o grievous_a sin_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o we_o to_o abstain_v from_o do_v evil_a but_o we_o must_v beware_v of_o this_o great_a sin_n that_o we_o do_v not_o counsel_v any_o to_o
commit_v evil_a this_o the_o scripture_n set_v before_o we_o in_o the_o sin_n of_o jezabel_n who_o be_v a_o furtherer_n of_o ahabs_n wickedness_n when_o his_o covetous_a eye_n lust_v after_o nabothe_n vineyard_n she_o say_v unto_o he_o 17._o 1_o king_n 2_o 17._o do_v thou_o sway_v the_o sceptre_n rule_v the_o kingdom_n and_o manage_v the_o state_n arise_v and_o eat_v bread_n i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o vineyard_n and_o afterward_o she_o move_v he_o to_o go_v and_o take_v possession_n this_o be_v likewise_o set_v down_o in_o prover._n 1_o 11._o where_o he_o express_v the_o sin_n of_o seducer_n this_o also_o appear_v further_o in_o joseph_n brethren_n plot_v his_o overthrow_n come_v let_v we_o slay_v he_o and_o cast_v he_o into_o some_o pit_n and_o we_o will_v say_v a_o wicked_a beast_n have_v devour_v he_o etc._n etc._n gen._n 37_o 20._o so_o do_v pharaoh_n counsel_n and_o encourage_v the_o egyptian_n to_o deal_v wise_o with_o the_o israelite_n lest_o they_o multiply_v and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o if_o there_o be_v war_n they_o shall_v join_v themselves_o with_o their_o enemy_n and_o get_v they_o out_o of_o the_o land_n exod._n 1_o 10._o this_o we_o see_v also_o in_o ahithophel_n who_o rebel_v with_o absalon_n against_o david_n and_o fear_v the_o reconcilement_n of_o the_o son_n to_o the_o father_n and_o thereby_o his_o own_o just_a confusion_n for_o his_o unjust_a rebellion_n he_o give_v such_o counsel_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v oracle_n thereby_o to_o take_v away_o all_o hope_n of_o agreement_n &_o atonement_n between_o they_o go_v in_o to_o thy_o father_n concubine_n which_o he_o have_v leave_v to_o keep_v the_o house_n and_o when_o all_o israel_n shall_v hear_v thou_o be_v abhor_v of_o thy_o father_n the_o hand_n of_o all_o that_o be_v with_o thou_o shall_v be_v strong_a 2_o sam._n 16_o 21._o so_o the_o high_a priest_n move_v the_o people_n to_o desire_v that_o barrabas_n may_v be_v deliver_v rather_o than_o christ_n mark_v 15_o 11_o persuade_v judas_n for_o a_o sum_n of_o money_n to_o betray_v he_o gather_v themselves_o in_o a_o council_n to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n and_o entice_v the_o soldier_n with_o large_a reward_n to_o noise_n it_o abroad_o that_o his_o disciple_n come_v by_o night_n and_o steal_v he_o away_o while_o they_o sleep_v mat._n 28_o 12._o the_o reason_n follow_v and_o first_o of_o all_o it_o be_v to_o reason_n 1_o be_v consider_v that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o be_v a_o tempter_n it_o be_v one_o of_o his_o name_n to_o note_v unto_o we_o his_o nature_n for_o he_o be_v call_v the_o tempter_n because_o his_o continual_a study_n &_o desire_n have_v be_v be_v and_o will_v be_v by_o all_o the_o mean_n he_o can_v to_o tempt_v all_o man_n he_o omit_v no_o time_n he_o spare_v no_o pain_n he_o leave_v no_o mean_n unassayed_a to_o draw_v man_n from_o god_n &_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o destruction_n this_o the_o apostle_n teach_v 1_o thes_n 3_o 5._o i_o send_v to_o know_v of_o your_o faith_n lest_o the_o tempter_n have_v tempt_v you_o in_o any_o sort_n so_o he_o tempt_v euah_n in_o the_o begin_n through_o his_o subtlety_n to_o eat_v of_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n and_o beguile_v she_o through_o hypocrisy_n 2_o cor._n 11_o 3._o so_o he_o tempt_v christ_n to_o draw_v he_o into_o infidelity_n to_o distrust_v and_o to_o presumption_n and_o the_o evangelist_n say_v the_o tempter_n come_v unto_o he_o matth._n 4_o 3._o wherefore_o this_o be_v a_o note_n and_o property_n of_o the_o devil_n such_o as_o crafty_o seduce_v other_o unto_o wickedness_n or_o hold_v they_o back_o from_o godliness_n such_o as_o keep_v man_n from_o the_o love_n or_o practice_v of_o religion_n and_o hinder_v the_o mean_n whereby_o it_o be_v foster_v and_o further_v in_o they_o be_v become_v tempter_n and_o the_o very_a child_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o quality_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v find_v in_o they_o they_o bear_v his_o mark_n they_o be_v stamp_v with_o his_o image_n and_o they_o do_v notorious_o resemble_v their_o father_n so_o that_o we_o may_v say_v true_o of_o such_o and_o to_o such_o as_o christ_n speak_v to_o the_o jew_n john_n 8_o 44._o you_o be_v of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n thus_o when_o elimas_n seek_v to_o turn_v away_o the_o deputy_n from_o the_o faith_n paul_n call_v he_o a_o enemy_n to_o all_o righteousness_n full_a of_o all_o subtlety_n and_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n act_v 13_o 10._o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n that_o make_v the_o devil_n kinsman_n yea_o devil_n incarnate_a reason_n 2_o second_o from_o evil_a counsel_n follow_v most_o dangerous_a effect_n as_o filthy_a puddle_n from_o a_o unclean_a fountain_n from_o hence_o many_o time_n proceed_v idolatry_n adultery_n rebellion_n murder_n robbery_n false_a testimony_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o evil_a work_n this_o may_v be_v amplify_v by_o sundry_a example_n the_o daughter_n of_o lot_n late_o deliver_v as_o a_o small_a remnant_n out_o of_o the_o destruction_n of_o sodom_n the_o fire_n whereof_o be_v yet_o scarce_o quench_v say_v one_o to_o another_o come_v we_o will_v make_v our_o father_n drink_v wine_n and_o lie_v with_o he_o that_o we_o may_v preserve_v seed_n of_o our_o father_n for_o our_o father_n be_v old_a and_o there_o be_v not_o a_o man_n in_o the_o earth_n to_o come_v in_o unto_o we_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n gen._n 19_o 32_o and_o from_o this_o wicked_a counsel_n of_o the_o daughter_n follow_v horrible_a incest_n of_o the_o father_n the_o like_a we_o see_v in_o jonadab_n a_o subtle_a companion_n who_o behold_v amnon_n the_o king_n son_n become_v so_o lean_a and_o perceive_v he_o fall_v in_o love_n or_o rather_o in_o lust_n with_o his_o sister_n tamar_n say_v unto_o he_o lie_v down_o on_o thy_o bed_n 5._o 2_o sam._n 13_o 5._o and_o make_v thyself_o sick_a and_o when_o thy_o father_n shall_v come_v to_o thou_o say_v unto_o he_o i_o pray_v thou_o let_v my_o sister_n tamar_n come_v and_o give_v i_o meat_n and_o let_v she_o dress_v meat_n in_o my_o sight_n etc._n etc._n and_o from_o this_o devilish_a counsel_n follow_v also_o detestable_a incest_n use_v 1_o the_o use_n follow_v first_o we_o may_v gather_v from_o hence_o another_o truth_n to_o be_v diligent_o mark_v namely_o that_o mischievous_a counsel_n shall_v fall_v out_o to_o the_o great_a mischief_n of_o the_o first_o contriver_n and_o deviser_n of_o it_o it_o be_v as_o a_o stone_n that_o shall_v roll_v upon_o he_o that_o first_o move_v &_o stir_v it_o it_o be_v as_o a_o sword_n which_o with_o the_o rebound_v of_o the_o stroke_n shall_v return_v with_o great_a violence_n to_o wound_v he_o that_o first_o do_v draw_v it_o this_o we_o see_v in_o the_o history_n of_o malicious_a haman_n who_o think_v to_o have_v glut_v himself_o &_o satisfy_v his_o long_a thirst_n with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o jew_n he_o take_v counsel_n with_o his_o wife_n and_o all_o his_o friend_n and_o they_o persuade_v he_o to_o make_v a_o tree_n of_o fifty_o cubit_n high_a and_o to_o speak_v unto_o the_o king_n that_o mordecai_n may_v be_v hang_v thereon_o ester_n 5_o 14._o this_o be_v the_o counsel_n but_o it_o become_v a_o snare_n to_o entrap_v the_o counsellor_n he_o make_v a_o pit_n and_o dig_v it_o and_o be_v fall_v into_o the_o pit_n which_o he_o make_v psal_n 7_o 15._o daniel_n by_o the_o subtle_a suggestion_n of_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o counsellor_n of_o the_o king_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o den_n of_o lion_n because_o he_o be_v find_v too_o faithful_a to_o god_n but_o daniel_n be_v deliver_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lion_n be_v stop_v and_o his_o accuser_n by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n &_o commandment_n of_o the_o king_n be_v devour_v by_o those_o lion_n dan._n 6_o 24._o this_o shall_v serve_v to_o give_v wisdom_n and_o warning_n to_o all_o man_n and_o to_o terrify_v they_o from_o plot_v evil_a devise_n &_o from_o persuade_v unto_o wickedness_n god_n will_v find_v they_o out_o in_o their_o own_o way_n and_o pay_v they_o the_o wage_n of_o their_o own_o work_n thus_o will_v the_o lord_n be_v know_v by_o execute_v judgement_n upon_o these_o tempter_n and_o enticer_n to_o ungodliness_n 18._o psal_n 9_o 18._o so_o that_o the_o wicked_a be_v snare_v in_o the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o his_o foot_n be_v take_v in_o the_o same_o net_n which_o he_o hide_v for_o another_o it_o be_v unpossible_a as_o we_o see_v in_o continual_a experience_n that_o such_o master_n of_o mischief_n shall_v escape_v unpunished_a second_o we_o see_v they_o be_v great_o deceive_v use_v 2_o and_o wander_v wide_a out_o of_o the_o way_n that_o think_v themselves_o excuse_v and_o exempt_v from_o sin_n if_o they_o do_v not_o execute_v
lyra._n in_o numb_a cap._n 24._o ferus_fw-la annot_fw-mi in_o numb_a cap._n 24._o which_o they_o understand_v that_o christ_n shall_v convert_v all_o nation_n and_o all_o mankind_n to_o the_o catholic_n faith_n for_o sh_v be_v the_o son_n of_o adam_n out_o of_o who_o loin_n the_o whole_a world_n spring_v which_o be_v a_o wrest_a and_o far-fetched_a interpretation_n other_o pass_v by_o it_o as_o if_o they_o see_v it_o not_o histor_n anal._n typ_n in_o libros_fw-la histor_n or_o as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o stranger_n to_o they_o and_o they_o to_o it_o and_o therefore_o will_v claim_v no_o acquaintance_n of_o it_o wherein_o we_o may_v better_o praise_v their_o wisdom_n then_o their_o knowledge_n as_o those_o which_o have_v rather_o not_o shoot_v their_o arrow_n then_o miss_v the_o mark_n and_o stand_v still_o rather_o than_o go_v out_o of_o the_o way_n other_o make_v these_o word_n all_o one_o with_o the_o former_a &_o understand_v they_o of_o the_o subversion_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o moab_n mosis_fw-la call_z har_z in_o lib._n mosis_fw-la which_o be_v without_o all_o sap_n or_o sense_n and_o beside_o they_o shall_v set_v that_o down_o obscure_o &_o dark_o which_o before_o have_v be_v express_v evident_o and_o plain_o or_o suppose_v that_o some_o prince_n among_o they_o may_v be_v call_v by_o this_o name_n which_o be_v to_o wander_v without_o a_o guide_n to_o sail_v without_o a_o compass_n and_o to_o conjecture_v without_o ground_n or_o warrant_v other_o among_o which_o some_o of_o the_o jew_n also_o be_v take_v it_o to_o be_v some_o town_n of_o the_o moabite_n numer_n d_o chytr_n enar_fw-mi rat_n in_o numer_n which_o be_v here_o special_o threaten_v these_o interpretation_n to_o which_o we_o may_v join_v sundry_a other_o be_v mere_a imagination_n without_o reason_n or_o fond_a collection_n without_o truth_n or_o new_a conceit_n without_o credit_n be_v not_o to_o be_v receyve_v of_o we_o or_o approve_v by_o us._n so_o then_o all_o thing_n be_v due_o consider_v num._n analy_n jun._n in_o num._n we_o be_v rather_o to_o follow_v they_o that_o understand_v the_o word_n appellative_o then_o proper_o both_o because_o such_o as_o take_v they_o proper_o 24._o pelarg_n cöment_n in_o lib._n num_fw-la cap_n 24._o run_v into_o a_o unproper_a and_o impertinent_a interpretation_n and_o also_o because_o the_o word_n be_v so_o take_v in_o other_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o esay_n 24_o 4._o 2_o sam._n 10_o 4_o in_o which_o place_n the_o word_n sh_v both_o without_o any_o affix_v sanct_n pagni_n thesaur_n ling_n sanct_n &_o with_o his_o affix_v join_v to_o it_o signifi_v the_o hinder_a part_n nates_fw-la sedes_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la nates_fw-la which_o the_o physician_n by_o a_o honest_a and_o clean_a term_n do_v call_v the_o fundament_n and_o that_o place_n which_o we_o sit_v upon_o wherefore_o by_o this_o borrow_a and_o unproper_a speech_n we_o may_v gather_v not_o unproper_o that_o balaam_n understand_v those_o people_n that_o be_v behind_o he_o or_o situate_v at_o his_o hinder_a part_n have_v relation_n to_o the_o situation_n of_o his_o body_n as_o than_o it_o be_v place_v for_o when_o he_o utter_v this_o pprophecy_n he_o look_v towards_o the_o west_n where_o he_o behold_v the_o israelite_n pitch_v their_o tent_n beside_o jordan_n and_o jericho_n as_o we_o see_v before_o num._n 22_o 1_o so_o that_o turn_v his_o face_n towards_o the_o israelite_n the_o people_n of_o the_o east_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v behind_o he_o the_o east_n and_o west_n be_v two_o contrary_a position_n of_o the_o heaven_n so_o that_o he_o which_o turn_v too_o the_o one_o turn_v from_o the_o other_o and_o if_o the_o one_o be_v before_o he_o the_o other_o must_v needs_o be_v behind_o he_o so_o then_o as_o he_o stand_v at_o that_o time_n he_o may_v have_v call_v the_o israelite_n the_o child_n of_o his_o face_n or_o forepart_n be_v then_o before_o he_o as_o he_o stand_v as_o he_o do_v the_o ammonite_n midianite_n and_o other_o easterling_n the_o son_n of_o his_o backpart_n be_v then_o situate_v behind_o he_o who_o afterward_o the_o israelite_n subdue_v thus_o much_o touch_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o hard_a place_n in_o this_o pprophecy_n touch_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o this_o pprophecy_n it_o be_v fulfil_v double_o first_o temporal_o then_o spiritual_o first_o proper_o then_o typical_o temporal_o it_o be_v begin_v in_o david_n ●_o 2_o sam_n 8_o ●_o who_o overcome_v the_o moabite_n and_o put_v they_o to_o tribute_n and_o figurative_o finish_v in_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o true_a daystar_n arise_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o the_o king_n of_o king_n who_o sceptre_n be_v a_o sceptre_n of_o righteousness_n of_o who_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v none_o end_n who_o dominion_n shall_v be_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n and_o from_o the_o river_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o land_n psal_n 72_o 8._o &_o 60_o 10._o hitherto_o of_o the_o four_o pprophecy_n the_o next_o pprophecy_n follow_v be_v against_o the_o amalekite_n which_o be_v the_o five_o in_o number_n bal●●_n the_o 5_o pro●sie_n of_o bal●●_n but_o the_o second_o that_o concern_v the_o gentile_n for_o his_o eye_n be_v cast_v towards_o they_o and_o their_o country_n he_o pronounce_v two_o thing_n of_o they_o the_o one_o past_a and_o the_o other_o to_o come_v and_o yet_o one_o the_o forerunner_n and_o procurer_n of_o the_o other_z they_o begin_v to_o fall_v already_o by_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o israelite_n as_o moses_n have_v declare_v exod._n 17_o 19_o this_o word_n here_o utter_v shall_v pursue_v they_o and_o persecute_v they_o unto_o the_o death_n until_o they_o be_v utter_o consume_v god_n have_v determine_v by_o a_o unchangeable_a decree_n to_o have_v war_n with_o amalek_n for_o ever_o and_o utter_o to_o put_v out_o his_o remembrance_n from_o under_o heaven_n the_o amalekite_v descend_v of_o the_o race_n of_o amalek_n the_o nephew_n of_o esau_n as_o it_o be_v testify_v in_o gen._n 36_o 12._o they_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o nation_n that_o first_o vex_v and_o assault_v the_o people_n of_o god_n after_o they_o be_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n they_o be_v the_o first_o enemy_n that_o come_v out_o against_o they_o to_o stop_v their_o way_n and_o passage_n towards_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n &_o therefore_o they_o be_v command_v to_o have_v war_n with_o they_o and_o to_o destroy_v they_o with_o the_o edge_n of_o the_o sword_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n deut._n 25_o 17_o 18_o 19_o the_o amalekite_n at_o this_o time_n think_v nothing_o less_o than_o of_o their_o destruction_n to_o come_v yet_o the_o sentence_n of_o death_n be_v pronounce_v against_o they_o four_o hundred_o year_n before_o and_o they_o can_v escape_v the_o danger_n thereof_o this_o be_v accomplish_v partly_o in_o saul_n 1_o sam._n 15_o 7_o who_o put_v many_o of_o they_o to_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o sword_n partly_o and_o especial_o in_o christ_n whose_o glorious_a kingdom_n be_v the_o utter_a overthrow_n and_o ruin_n of_o all_o the_o reprobate_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o five_o pprophecy_n against_o the_o amalekite_n who_o kingdom_n then_o flourish_v the_o sixth_o pprophecy_n of_o balaam_n be_v against_o the_o kenites_n their_o next_o neighbour_n bal●●_n the_o 6_o pro●●sy_n of_o bal●●_n border_v upon_o the_o amalekite_n of_o who_o jethro_n the_o father_n in_o law_n of_o moses_n come_v as_o appeareth_z in_o judg._n 1_o 16._o 1_o sam._n 15_o 16_o which_o be_v part_n of_o the_o midianite_n by_o who_o we_o may_v understand_v the_o midianite_n themselves_o one_o member_n be_v put_v for_o the_o whole_a one_o principal_a family_n be_v take_v for_o the_o whole_a nation_n these_o be_v here_o describe_v not_o only_o by_o their_o present_a estate_n but_o also_o by_o their_o future_a condition_n their_o present_a state_n be_v peaceable_a and_o prosperous_a and_o seem_v to_o promise_v a_o continuance_n of_o their_o glory_n and_o be_v therefore_o compare_v to_o a_o sure_a nest_n build_v in_o a_o strong_a rock_n as_o in_o a_o place_n of_o safety_n &_o defence_n touch_v their_o future_a condition_n he_o show_v that_o notwithstanding_o their_o secure_a dwell_n &_o quiet_a habitation_n and_o that_o they_o be_v without_o fear_n of_o danger_n to_o be_v hurt_v of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n who_o never_o disturb_v their_o peace_n nor_o offer_v they_o wrong_n yet_o in_o process_n of_o time_n destruction_n likewise_o shall_v come_v upon_o they_o when_o once_o the_o fire_n of_o war_n shall_v be_v kindle_v and_o break_v in_o among_o they_o to_o wit_n in_o part_n 22._o 〈◊〉_d 7_o 22._o when_o gideon_n with_o three_o hundred_o man_n put_v to_o flight_v a_o great_a host_n of_o they_o but_o most_o especial_o when_o the_o assyrian_n and_o babylonian_n carry_v they_o captive_a out_o of_o their_o own_o country_n for_o when_o the_o assyrian_n come_v up_o with_o a_o army_n to_o waste_n
their_o eye_n and_o will_v not_o see_v his_o brightness_n yet_o remain_v he_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o sun_n shine_v in_o the_o firmament_n howsoever_o some_o be_v blind_a and_o can_v see_v and_o other_o may_v see_v yet_o make_v themselves_o blind_a therefore_o the_o prophet_n i_o say_v say_v chap._n 60.1_o 2_o 19_o arise_v o_o jerusalem_n be_v bright_a for_o thy_o light_n be_v come_v and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v rise_v upon_o thou_o thou_o shall_v have_v no_o more_o sun_n to_o shine_v by_o day_n neither_o shall_v the_o brightness_n of_o the_o moon_n shine_v unto_o thou_o for_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v thy_o everlasting_a light_n and_o the_o day_n of_o thy_o sorrow_n shall_v be_v end_v when_o the_o sun_n which_o be_v call_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o day_n rise_v upon_o we_o and_o come_v towards_o we_o it_o do_v quicken_v and_o rejoice_v we_o it_o cause_v life_n &_o fruit_n to_o appear_v in_o those_o creature_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v dead_a &_o dry_a before_o so_o if_o this_o daystar_n do_v true_o rise_v up_o in_o our_o heart_n it_o will_v not_o only_o enlighten_v our_o understanding_n but_o so_o heat_n our_o freeze_a and_o dead_a heart_n as_o that_o it_o will_v put_v the_o life_n of_o righteousness_n into_o we_o and_o make_v we_o walk_v as_o child_n of_o light_n that_o need_v not_o be_v ashamed_a who_o mark_v their_o step_n and_o behold_v their_o way_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n speak_v to_o every_o one_o of_o we_o that_o consider_v the_o season_n it_o be_v now_o time_n that_o we_o shall_v arise_v from_o sleep_n for_o now_o be_v our_o salvation_n near_o than_o when_o we_o believe_v it_o the_o night_n be_v past_a &_o the_o day_n be_v at_o hand_n let_v we_o therefore_o cast_v away_o the_o work_n of_o darkness_n and_o let_v we_o put_v on_o the_o armour_n of_o light_n walk_v honest_o as_o in_o the_o day_n not_o in_o gluttony_n and_o drunkenness_n not_o in_o chamber_v and_o wantonness_n not_o in_o strife_n and_o envy_v rom._n 13_o 11_o 12._o we_o have_v here_o a_o notable_a direction_n how_o to_o know_v whether_o this_o star_n be_v rise_v upon_o we_o or_o not_o if_o he_o have_v wrought_v these_o effect_n &_o fruit_n in_o we_o if_o by_o the_o bright_a beam_n of_o his_o spirit_n &_o sweet_a influence_n of_o his_o grace_n he_o have_v cast_v out_o of_o our_o mind_n the_o dark_a cloud_n of_o ignorance_n and_o blindness_n and_o cause_v we_o to_o see_v what_o the_o acceptable_a will_n of_o god_n be_v if_o he_o have_v sanctify_v we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereby_o the_o kingdom_n of_o sin_n be_v every_o day_n more_o and_o more_o suppress_v and_o we_o reform_v according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n to_o serve_v he_o in_o holiness_n &_o true_a righteousness_n if_o these_o thing_n be_v in_o some_o measure_n in_o we_o we_o may_v be_v well_o assure_v that_o this_o star_n of_o jacob_n have_v shine_v upon_o us._n but_o if_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o wrought_v and_o effect_v in_o we_o but_o that_o we_o remain_v still_o in_o our_o sin_n and_o ignorances_n we_o have_v no_o part_n in_o christ_n we_o have_v no_o portion_n in_o this_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n he_o have_v never_o enter_v into_o our_o heart_n his_o beam_n of_o grace_n and_o mercy_n have_v never_o shine_v upon_o we_o we_o be_v still_o hold_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o darkness_n and_o in_o the_o condemnation_n of_o he_o who_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n to_o wit_n the_o devil_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v all_o of_o we_o awake_v thou_o that_o sleep_v and_o stand_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o christ_n shall_v give_v thou_o light_v walk_v circumspect_o not_o as_o fool_n bu●_n as_o wise_a redeem_v the_o time_n because_o the_o day_n be_v evil_a ephes_n chap_v 5_o verse_n 14._o and_o the_o same_o apostle_n in_o another_o place_n say_v if_o any_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n 2_o cor._n 5_o 17._o if_o you_o have_v hear_v he_o and_o have_v be_v teach_v by_o he_o cast_v off_o the_o old_a man_n which_o be_v corrupt_a and_o put_v on_o the_o new_a man_n which_o after_o god_n be_v create_v unto_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n eph_n 4_o 21_o 22._o let_v we_o all_o remember_v this_o truth_n and_o no_o more_o deceive_v our_o own_o soul_n in_o persuade_v ourselves_o to_o be_v in_o christ_n when_o as_o yet_o we_o never_o taste_v of_o his_o spirit_n nor_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o heavenly_a grace_n verse_n 20._o and_o when_o he_o look_v on_o amalek_n he_o utter_v his_o parable_n and_o say_v amalek_n be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o nation_n etc._n etc._n hitherto_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o balaam_n against_o the_o moabite_n now_o follow_v his_o pprophecy_n against_o the_o amalekite_n in_o these_o word_n which_o be_v the_o five_o in_o number_n and_o the_o second_o among_o they_o that_o concern_v the_o heathen_a that_o be_v not_o of_o israel_n wherein_o we_o have_v already_o see_v in_o what_o sense_n the_o amalekite_n be_v call_v the_o first_o of_o the_o nation_n not_o that_o simple_o they_o be_v first_o of_o all_o people_n for_o they_o come_v of_o esau_n as_o moses_n witness_v gen._n 36_o 16_o but_o because_o they_o be_v the_o first_o that_o fight_v against_o israel_n after_o they_o be_v come_v out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n &_o therefore_o shall_v be_v themselves_o destroy_v in_o set_v down_o this_o practice_n of_o the_o amalekites_n antiquity_n doctrine_n war_n be_v of_o great_a antiquity_n we_o find_v it_o warrant_v that_o war_n in_o the_o world_n have_v be_v ancient_a among_o man_n to_o gather_v army_n and_o to_o muster_v man_n to_o battle_n be_v no_o new_a device_n but_o a_o old_a and_o ancient_a practice_n among_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n verse_n 9_o nimrod_n begin_v to_o be_v mighty_a upon_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o mighty_a hunter_n before_o the_o lord_n the_o beginning_n of_o his_o kingdom_n be_v babel_n and_o in_o the_o 14_o chap._n we_o have_v mention_n of_o two_o army_n one_o raise_v by_o chedor-laom_a and_o his_o confederate_n the_o other_o by_o the_o king_n of_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n these_o rebel_a the_o other_o punish_v their_o rebellion_n between_o who_o be_v a_o cruel_a battle_n fight_v this_o we_o see_v in_o the_o son_n of_o jacob_n raise_v a_o force_n against_o the_o sheehemite_n 25._o gen._n 34_o 25._o under_o the_o conduct_n of_o simeon_n &_o levi_n who_o be_v the_o firebrand_n of_o war_n and_o the_o trumpet_n of_o sedition_n they_o come_v upon_o they_o on_o a_o sudden_a and_o slay_v all_o the_o may_v among_o they_o and_o after_o this_o violence_n offer_v unto_o their_o person_n they_o spoil_v the_o city_n we_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o stand_v further_o upon_o this_o point_n the_o book_n of_o joshua_n &_o of_o judge_n the_o book_n of_o the_o king_n and_o of_o the_o chronicle_n together_o with_o lamentable_a experience_n of_o all_o age_n and_o time_n confirm_v this_o to_o have_v be_v a_o common_a practice_n among_o man_n of_o old_a to_o raise_v war_n one_o against_o another_o and_o to_o try_v their_o cause_n and_o quarrel_n by_o the_o dint_n of_o the_o sword_n the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o find_v reason_n 1_o for_o first_o howsoever_o man_n be_v carry_v headlong_o with_o rage_n and_o revenge_v one_o against_o another_o yet_o the_o devil_n be_v the_o bellows_n to_o kindle_v the_o coal_n who_o be_v a_o murderer_n and_o a_o manslayer_n from_o the_o beginning_n as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v unto_o the_o jew_n john_n 8_o 44._o you_o be_v of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n and_o the_o lust_n of_o your_o father_n you_o will_v do_v he_o have_v be_v a_o murderer_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o truth_n because_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o he_o this_o he_o declare_v to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o smyrnian_o that_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o devil_n shall_v cast_v some_o of_o they_o into_o prison_n reu._n 2_o 10_o and_o afterward_o chap._n 12_o 17_o it_o be_v say_v the_o dragon_n be_v wrath_n with_o the_o woman_n &_o go_v and_o make_v war_n with_o the_o remnant_n of_o her_o seed_n which_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n this_o be_v it_o that_o michaiah_n speak_v to_o ahab_n who_o shall_v entice_v ahab_n that_o he_o may_v go_v and_o fall_v at_o ramoth_n gilead_n then_o there_o come_v forth_o a_o spirit_n and_o stand_v before_o the_o lord_n and_o say_v i_o will_v entice_v he_o 1_o king_n 22_o 20._o see_v then_o the_o devil_n be_v the_o stirrer_n of_o division_n and_o the_o kindler_n of_o contention_n between_o man_n and_o man_n
of_o moab_n have_v devise_v and_o what_o balaam_n the_o son_n of_o beor_n answer_v he_o that_o you_o may_v know_v the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o have_v hear_v what_o great_a preparation_n be_v make_v what_o charge_v the_o king_n defray_v to_o bring_v his_o purpose_n to_o pass_v and_o yet_o prevail_v nothing_o against_o the_o israelite_n his_o only_a refuge_n be_v patience_n a_o cold_a comfort_n to_o rest_v in_o his_o only_a revenge_n be_v complaint_n a_o weak_a weapon_n to_o fight_v withal_o we_o have_v hear_v of_o balaam_n come_v to_o curse_v the_o people_n of_o his_o divination_n sacrifice_n and_o prophecy_n his_o chief_a wage_n be_v the_o king_n wrath_n a_o cold_a contentment_n his_o high_a honour_n whereto_o he_o be_v advance_v be_v to_o take_v his_o heel_n and_o be_v go_v a_o poor_a preferment_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o order_n observe_v in_o these_o word_n touch_v the_o doctrine_n that_o arise_v from_o this_o division_n we_o have_v already_o handle_v at_o large_a such_o as_o be_v here_o offer_v to_o our_o consideration_n when_o balaam_n speak_v of_o great_a affliction_n that_o shall_v fall_v upon_o sundry_a place_n and_o people_n say_v that_o god_n shall_v do_v this_o chapter_n 21_o verse_n 6._o he_o teach_v that_o god_n be_v author_n of_o all_o chastening_n and_o punishment_n there_o be_v no_o evil_a in_o the_o city_n which_o he_o have_v not_o do_v beside_o he_o declare_v that_o god_n raise_v up_o one_o evil_a man_n to_o scourge_v another_o chapter_n 21_o verse_n 25._o last_o he_o set_v down_o the_o manner_n of_o god_n punishment_n to_o be_v proportionable_a and_o answerable_a to_o the_o offence_n and_o deal_n of_o man_n chapter_n 24_o verse_n 20._o god_n punish_v in_o the_o same_o kind_n as_o man_n sin_v they_o that_o take_v away_o the_o empire_n from_o other_o have_v the_o empire_n take_v from_o themselves_o god_n deal_v with_o they_o as_o they_o have_v deal_v with_o other_o and_o cause_v they_o to_o perish_v with_o the_o sword_n that_o draw_v the_o sword_n upon_o other_o now_o let_v we_o proceed_v to_o the_o handle_n of_o other_o doctrine_n which_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o hence_o verse_n 14._o the_o ship_n also_o shall_v come_v from_o the_o coast_n of_o chittim_n and_o subdue_v ashur_n and_o shall_v subdue_v eber_n and_o he_o also_o shall_v come_v to_o destruction_n in_o these_o word_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v in_o set_v down_o the_o method_n and_o meaning_n of_o they_o balaam_n prophesi_v of_o the_o rise_n and_o fall_v of_o great_a prince_n and_o empire_n they_o have_v their_o head_n lift_v upon_o high_a and_o be_v advance_v unto_o the_o great_a honour_n but_o sudden_o they_o come_v tumble_v down_o and_o all_o their_o glory_n lie_v in_o the_o dust_n from_o hence_o we_o learn_v sudden_o doctrine_n such_o as_o be_v in_o great_a place_n of_o honour_n many_o time_n fall_v sudden_o that_o great_a man_n &_o mighty_a prince_n sometime_o in_o great_a honour_n sudden_o decay_v &_o come_v to_o nothing_o they_o be_v in_o a_o moment_n cast_v down_o and_o leave_v destitute_a when_o they_o little_o think_v of_o it_o and_o come_v to_o great_a extremity_n this_o we_o see_v verify_v often_o in_o fight_v great_a battle_n such_o as_o not_o long_o afore_o be_v in_o great_a pomp_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o soldier_n man_n of_o might_n and_o great_a command_n have_v strong_a army_n and_o many_o chariot_n be_v sudden_o bring_v low_a into_o great_a misery_n fly_v for_o their_o life_n and_o be_v glad_a of_o a_o poor_a harbour_n to_o save_v their_o life_n as_o we_o see_v in_o sisera_n in_o saneherib_n and_o sundry_a other_o judg._n 4_o 16._o behold_v this_o in_o proud_a haman_n he_o glory_v in_o his_o favour_n with_o the_o people_n in_o his_o greatness_n with_o the_o king_n in_o his_o grace_n with_o the_o queen_n who_o have_v none_o to_o the_o feast_n but_o the_o king_n and_o he_o he_o repine_v and_o be_v even_o consume_v with_o envy_n to_o see_v one_o look_n upon_o he_o and_o not_o do_v reverence_n unto_o he_o but_o on_o the_o sudden_a he_o lose_v both_o honour_n and_o life_n and_o be_v hang_v himself_o on_o the_o gibbet_n which_o he_o have_v set_v up_o for_o mordecai_n that_o speak_v good_a for_o the_o king_n ester_n 7_o 10._o this_o we_o see_v in_o agag_n king_n of_o the_o amalekite_n he_o flourish_v in_o his_o kingdom_n and_o his_o people_n live_v secure_o in_o their_o city_n but_o saul_n come_v sudden_o upon_o they_o slay_v the_o people_n and_o take_v the_o king_n alive_a and_o when_o he_o think_v the_o danger_n go_v he_o say_v merry_o and_o pleasant_o true_o the_o bitterness_n of_o death_n be_v pass_v then_o do_v samuel_n hew_v he_o in_o piece_n before_o the_o lord_n in_o gilgal_n 1._o sam._n 15_o 32._o this_o likewise_o appear_v in_o nabuchadnezzar_n who_o daniel_n compare_v unto_o a_o great_a and_o strong_a tree_n the_o height_n thereof_o reach_v up_o unto_o heaven_n the_o sight_n thereof_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o bough_n thereof_o be_v fair_a and_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o much_o it_o make_v a_o shadow_n under_o it_o for_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n and_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o heaven_n dwell_v in_o the_o bough_n thereof_o and_o all_o flesh_n feed_v of_o it_o dan._n 4_o 18.19_o who_o as_o he_o walk_v in_o the_o royal_a palace_n of_o babel_n and_o glory_v in_o the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n say_v be_v not_o this_o great_a babel_n that_o i_o have_v build_v etc._n etc._n while_o the_o word_n be_v in_o the_o king_n mouth_n this_o voice_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n thy_o kingdom_n be_v depart_v from_o thou_o so_o they_o drive_v he_o from_o man_n they_o turn_v he_o out_o of_o his_o kingom_n they_o make_v he_o eat_v grass_n as_o ox_n &_o his_o body_n be_v wet_a with_o the_o dew_n of_o heaven_n this_o sudden_a alteration_n in_o a_o moment_n sometime_o befall_v the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n david_n be_v make_v a_o great_a man_n in_o israel_n belove_v of_o the_o prince_n honour_v of_o the_o king_n advance_v to_o be_v his_o son_n in_o law_n of_o who_o they_o sing_v by_o course_n in_o their_o play_n and_o say_v saul_n have_v slay_v his_o thousand_o and_o david_n his_o ten_o thousand_o 1._o sam._n 18_o 7._o but_o on_o 〈◊〉_d sudden_a he_o be_v in_o exile_n among_o the_o wild_a goat_n and_o constrain_v to_o put_v his_o life_n in_o hazard_n in_o a_o strange_a country_n so_o job_n be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a and_o rich_a man_n in_o all_o the_o east_n who_o in_o the_o turn_n of_o a_o hand_n become_v one_o of_o the_o low_a and_o poor_a so_o that_o they_o mock_v and_o deride_v he_o 30.1_o job_n 30.1_o who_o father_n he_o refuse_v to_o set_v with_o the_o dog_n of_o his_o flock_n that_o be_v with_o the_o mean_a of_o his_o house_n reason_n 1_o neither_o can_v we_o much_o marvel_n at_o this_o change_n of_o the_o place_n and_o estate_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n confirm_v unto_o we_o by_o all_o experience_n in_o the_o example_n of_o pharaoh_n achitophel_n saul_n sifera_n saneherib_n herod_n and_o of_o infinite_a other_o in_o the_o act_n and_o monument_n of_o the_o church_n see_v this_o fall_v not_o out_o by_o chance_n or_o fortune_n but_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n do_v and_o the_o work_n of_o his_o right_a hand_n this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o job_n express_v now_o i_o be_o their_o song_n i_o be_o their_o common_a talk_n they_o abhor_v i_o and_o fly_v far_o from_o i_o and_o spare_v not_o to_o spit_v in_o my_o face_n because_o that_o god_n have_v loose_v my_o cord_n and_o humble_v i_o job_n 30_o 9_o 10._o this_o hannah_n in_o her_o song_n touch_v 1._o sam._n 2_o 7.8_o where_o we_o see_v the_o lord_n lift_v up_o he_o pull_v and_o put_v down_o according_a to_o his_o own_o will_n and_o pleasure_n who_o make_v the_o high_a tide_n to_o have_v the_o low_a ebb_n reason_n 2_o second_o as_o he_o work_v his_o own_o will_n so_o he_o will_v humble_v and_o abase_v the_o son_n of_o man_n to_o make_v they_o know_v themselves_o we_o think_v ourselves_o great_a man_n we_o will_v ascend_v above_o the_o height_n of_o the_o cloud_n and_o exalt_v ourselves_o above_o the_o star_n we_o lift_v up_o our_o heart_n above_o our_o brethren_n and_o will_v be_v like_o the_o most_o high_a so_o that_o god_n be_v constrain_v to_o bring_v we_o down_o to_o the_o grave_n &_o lay_v our_o honour_n in_o the_o dust_n that_o we_o may_v know_v we_o be_v but_o man_n who_o life_n be_v but_o vanity_n &_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n we_o shall_v never_o be_v humble_a and_o lowly_a in_o our_o own_o eye_n unless_o we_o see_v how_o god_n cast_v down_o the_o mighty_a from_o their_o seat_n scatter_v the_o proud_a in_o the_o imagination_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o send_v the_o rich_a
thing_n for_o a_o man_n to_o climb_v aloft_o and_o not_o consider_v that_o the_o high_a he_o climb_v the_o great_a be_v his_o fall_n to_o covet_v the_o fruit_n &_o not_o consider_v the_o height_n of_o the_o tree_n whereon_o it_o grow_v we_o must_v take_v heed_n lest_o while_o we_o labour_v to_o attain_v unto_o the_o top_n we_o fall_v down_o with_o the_o bough_n that_o we_o do_v embrace_v all_o thing_n be_v here_o turn_v and_o toss_v with_o uncertainty_n and_o nothing_o continue_v in_o one_o stay_n or_o state_n there_o be_v nothing_o so_o sure_a that_o be_v not_o in_o danger_n of_o his_o inferior_a the_o lion_n have_v be_v sometime_o the_o food_n of_o small_a beast_n and_o the_o rust_n do_v consume_v the_o iron_n let_v we_o therefore_o like_a and_o look_v after_o better_a thing_n that_o do_v continue_v earthly_a thing_n although_o we_o have_v they_o in_o great_a abundance_n can_v save_v we_o in_o the_o day_n of_o danger_n let_v we_o not_o trust_v in_o they_o who_o help_n be_v in_o vain_a verse_n 25._o then_o balaam_n rise_v up_o and_o go_v and_o return_v to_o his_o place_n here_o be_v brief_o the_o conclusion_n set_v down_o as_o the_o event_n and_o issue_n of_o all_o the_o device_n and_o purpose_n of_o balak_n and_o balaam_n they_o rise_v up_o and_o go_v their_o way_n without_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o they_o intend_v and_o first_o touch_v balaam_n we_o have_v often_o note_v that_o the_o mark_n which_o he_o aim_v at_o be_v his_o wage_n yet_o see_v here_o how_o covet_v a_o evil_a covetousness_n and_o thirst_v after_o money_n which_o he_o make_v his_o god_n he_o be_v deceive_v &_o lose_v his_o wage_n yea_o and_o his_o life_n too_o at_o length_n as_o appear_v afterward_o in_o this_o book_n deceive_v num_fw-la 31_o 8._o doctrine_n such_o as_o covet_v after_o a_o evil_a covetousness_n be_v oftentimes_o deceive_v hereby_o we_o learn_v for_o our_o instruction_n that_o they_o which_o gape_v after_o unlawful_a gain_n and_o the_o deceitful_a wage_n of_o wickedness_n be_v oftentimes_o deceive_v of_o that_o which_o they_o look_v for_o and_o find_v contrary_a to_o their_o expectation_n loss_n instead_o of_o gain_n and_o hindrance_n in_o stead_n of_o advantage_n this_o be_v confirm_v unto_o we_o by_o sundry_a example_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n look_v upon_o the_o example_n of_o achan_n record_v in_o the_o book_n of_o joshua_n he_o think_v to_o enrich_v himself_o by_o the_o wedge_n of_o gold_n and_o the_o babylonish_n garment_n which_o he_o have_v purloin_v contrary_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n who_o will_v have_v all_o those_o destroy_v not_o convert_v to_o the_o private_a profit_n of_o any_o but_o it_o fall_v out_o to_o his_o own_o destruction_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o those_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o josh_n 7_o 25_o the_o like_a judgement_n come_v upon_o gehazi_n he_o turn_v after_o naaman_n and_o take_v of_o he_o a_o bribe_n to_o enrich_v himself_o but_o the_o leprosy_n of_o naaman_n do_v cleave_v unto_o he_o so_o that_o his_o loss_n be_v great_a than_o his_o gain_n 2._o king_n 5.27_o ahab_n rise_v up_o and_o take_v possession_n of_o naboth_n vineyard_n which_o lie_v commodious_o for_o he_o but_o withal_o he_o purchase_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n the_o destruction_n of_o his_o person_n the_o ruin_n of_o his_o house_n the_o loss_n of_o his_o kingdom_n the_o undoo_n of_o all_o his_o posterity_n 1._o king_n 21_o 16._o judas_n betray_v his_o master_n 27_o mat._n 26_o &_o 27_o and_o sell_v he_o for_o thirty_o penny_n he_o be_v carry_v after_o his_o covetousness_n and_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n even_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o immaculate_a lamb_n of_o god_n but_o how_o he_o be_v enrich_v hereby_o the_o evangelist_n declare_v when_o he_o see_v that_o christ_n be_v condemn_v he_o repent_v himself_o and_o bring_v again_o the_o thirty_o piece_n of_o silver_n to_o the_o high-priest_n and_o elder_n say_v i_o have_v sin_v betray_v the_o innocent_a blood_n hereunto_o accord_v solomon_n in_o his_o proverb_n who_o say_v he_o that_o be_v greedy_a of_o gain_n trouble_v his_o own_o house_n but_o he_o that_o hate_v gift_n shall_v live_v prou._n 15_o 16._o where_o he_o teach_v that_o such_o as_o increase_v their_o riches_n by_o hook_n and_o by_o crook_n they_o care_v not_o how_o or_o gain_v by_o wrongful_a mean_n be_v the_o cause_n and_o occasion_n of_o many_o evil_n in_o their_o estate_n and_o family_n this_o appear_v also_o by_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o rich_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n luke_n 12.20_o thou_o fool_n this_o night_n shall_v they_o take_v away_o thy_o soul_n from_o thou_o and_o then_o who_o shall_v all_o these_o be_v that_o thou_o have_v gather_v together_o all_o which_o place_n of_o scripture_n serve_v direct_o to_o prove_v that_o such_o as_o be_v give_v to_o unlawful_a gain_n and_o get_v the_o good_n of_o this_o life_n wrongful_o be_v oftentimes_o deceive_v of_o their_o hope_n and_o expectation_n which_o make_v the_o apostle_n jude_n speak_v of_o the_o matter_n that_o now_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n to_o call_v the_o hire_n that_o balaam_n seek_v after_o the_o deceitful_a wage_n of_o balaam_n jude_n 11._o reason_n 1_o the_o reason_n may_v easy_o be_v discern_v of_o we_o if_o we_o consider_v that_o god_n will_v have_v his_o wisdom_n and_o justice_n to_o appear_v in_o cross_v their_o cark_n and_o care_v for_o these_o transitory_a thing_n this_o we_o see_v in_o all_o the_o example_n before_o allege_a of_o achan_n judas_n of_o gehazi_n ahab_n and_o of_o the_o rich_a man_n for_o god_n know_v to_o deliver_v the_o godly_a out_o of_o tentation_n and_o to_o reserve_v the_o unjust_a unto_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n under_o punishment_n 2._o pet._n 2.9_o how_o can_v it_o be_v therefore_o that_o such_o as_o fill_v their_o house_n with_o the_o riches_n of_o iniquity_n and_o with_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o righteous_a shall_v prosper_v and_o bring_v a_o blessing_n with_o they_o when_o as_o god_n which_o be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n shall_v set_v himself_o against_o they_o &_o root_v out_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v wrongful_o get_v reason_n 2_o second_o every_o sin_n be_v deceitful_a and_o profit_v nothing_o whatsoever_o show_v of_o profit_n and_o commodity_n it_o make_v this_o be_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o in_o the_o book_n of_o job_n i_o have_v see_v the_o foolish_a well_o root_v and_o sudden_o i_o curse_v his_o habitation_n his_o child_n shall_v be_v far_o from_o salvation_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v destroy_v in_o the_o gate_n and_o none_o shall_v deliver_v they_o job_n 5_o 3_o 4._o all_o sin_n to_o the_o natural_a man_n be_v sweet_a and_o pleasant_a he_o find_v it_o sweet_a to_o his_o taste_n but_o it_o be_v as_o sweet_a meat_n that_o have_v poison_n mingle_v and_o temper_v with_o it_o job_n 20_o 12_o 13._o and_o as_o poison_v though_o it_o be_v sweet_a in_o the_o mouth_n bring_v death_n and_o destruction_n with_o it_o when_o it_o enter_v into_o the_o body_n so_o it_o be_v with_o sin_n it_o delight_v in_o the_o commit_n but_o it_o bit_v at_o the_o latter_a end_n for_o god_n turn_v it_o to_o destruction_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o shall_v take_v heed_n we_o be_v not_o seduce_v and_o deceive_v through_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o sin_n use_v 1_o the_o use_n be_v to_o be_v think_v upon_o that_o we_o may_v apply_v the_o doctrine_n to_o ourselves_o first_o we_o see_v here_o the_o common_a proverb_n true_o verify_v that_o covetousness_n bring_v nothing_o home_n so_o may_v it_o be_v say_v of_o all_o other_o sin_n of_o profaneness_n of_o contempt_n of_o the_o word_n of_o abuse_v the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o his_o sabbath_n of_o uncleanness_n of_o whoredom_n of_o drunkenness_n and_o of_o all_o sinful_a pleasure_n whatsoever_o which_o natural_a man_n make_v their_o happiness_n and_o felicity_n they_o may_v delight_v for_o a_o time_n and_o please_v the_o carnal_a desire_n of_o natural_a man_n but_o they_o bring_v a_o heavy_a account_n and_o reckon_n in_o the_o end_n so_o then_o we_o may_v say_v to_o all_o the_o man_n of_o this_o world_n who_o portion_n be_v in_o this_o life_n as_o abner_n say_v in_o one_o case_n know_v thou_o not_o that_o it_o will_v be_v bitterness_n in_o the_o latter_a end_n 2._o sam._n 2_o 26._o we_o hear_v how_o naboth_n vineyard_n be_v a_o eyesore_n to_o ahab_n and_o make_v he_o enter_v into_o ungodly_a course_n and_o bloody_a practice_n he_o destroy_v naboth_n and_o his_o child_n he_o seem_v to_o have_v make_v his_o title_n strong_a &_o secure_v his_o estate_n but_o what_o bring_v it_o in_o the_o end_n the_o utter_a ruin_n of_o his_o whole_a house_n every_o man_n can_v say_v ready_o when_o a_o man_n grow_v prodigal_a and_o spend_v excessive_o and_o hold_v a_o right_a course_n and_o
there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o turn_v away_o his_o wrath_n from_o they_o and_o their_o kingdom_n but_o by_o turn_v unto_o god_n and_o by_o entreat_v he_o to_o spare_v they_o as_o their_o place_n be_v great_a so_o their_o sin_n be_v great_a and_o many_o time_n draw_v many_o to_o follow_v after_o they_o if_o they_o will_v blot_v out_o their_o offence_n against_o god_n and_o call_v in_o his_o judgment_n go_v out_o against_o they_o they_o must_v show_v their_o subjection_n to_o he_o and_o give_v he_o the_o reverence_n that_o be_v due_a to_o his_o holy_a name_n last_o our_o trust_n must_v not_o be_v in_o man_n our_o use_n 3_o confidence_n must_v not_o be_v in_o prince_n who_o can_v deliver_v their_o own_o soul_n from_o the_o sentence_n of_o death_n nor_o discharge_v themselves_o of_o the_o punishment_n which_o they_o have_v deserve_v much_o less_o can_v they_o give_v safety_n and_o assurance_n unto_o other_o this_o be_v that_o duty_n which_o the_o prophet_n esay_n conclude_v in_o the_o second_o and_o three_o chapter_n of_o his_o prophecy_n where_o threaten_v that_o god_n will_v take_v away_o from_o jerusalem_n and_o from_o judah_n the_o st●y_n and_o the_o strength_n the_o strong_a man_n and_o the_o man_n of_o war_n the_o judge_n and_o the_o prophet_n the_o prudent_a and_o the_o age_a the_o captain_n of_o fifty_o and_o the_o honourable_a and_o the_o counsellor_n and_o the_o eloquent_a man_n he_o say_v cease_v from_o the_o man_n who_o breath_n be_v in_o his_o nostril_n for_o wherein_o be_v he_o to_o be_v esteem_v esay_n 2.21_o &_o 3_o 1_o 2_o 3._o whereby_o we_o see_v that_o we_o must_v not_o put_v our_o trust_n in_o weak_a man_n nor_o ralye_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v our_o defence_n but_o put_v our_o whole_a trust_n in_o god_n alone_o he_o that_o put_v confidence_n in_o he_o shall_v be_v bless_v and_o be_v like_o the_o tree_n plant_v by_o the_o river_n side_n jer._n 17_o 7_o whatsoever_o change_n and_o alteration_n other_o do_v find_v in_o the_o world_n he_o shall_v continue_v in_o a_o fruitful_a and_o flourish_a condition_n the_o stay_n of_o ourselves_o on_o man_n power_n arise_v from_o the_o forgetfulness_n of_o our_o duty_n towards_o god_n who_o have_v command_v we_o to_o trust_v in_o he_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n prou._n 3_o 5_o and_o have_v promise_v that_o if_o we_o stay_v upon_o he_o he_o will_v give_v we_o our_o heart_n desire_v psal_n 37_o 4._o this_o trust_n we_o shall_v attain_v unto_o if_o we_o use_v these_o mean_n the_o meditation_n of_o man_n weakness_n that_o can_v help_v we_o the_o consideration_n of_o god_n power_n that_o be_v able_a to_o strengthen_v we_o and_o the_o experience_n of_o his_o mercy_n that_o have_v deliver_v other_o of_o his_o child_n from_o great_a affliction_n if_o these_o thing_n as_o help_n to_o our_o faith_n be_v lay_v up_o in_o our_o heart_n we_o shall_v be_v assure_v to_o build_v upon_o a_o good_a and_o certain_a foundation_n that_o shall_v never_o be_v remove_v verse_n 5_o then_o moses_n say_v to_o the_o judge_n of_o israel_n every_o one_o slay_v his_o man_n that_o be_v join_v unto_o baal-peor_a the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v so_o fierce_a against_o ●hose_n that_o sin_v that_o he_o command_v they_o to_o be_v destroy_v to_o this_o end_n we_o see_v moses_n as_o the_o chief_a magistrate_n take_v order_n that_o the_o guilty_a shall_v not_o be_v suffer_v to_o lue_n but_o suffer_v punishment_n according_a to_o their_o offence_n from_o hence_o arise_v this_o doctrine_n maiefactor_n doctrine_n magistrate_n must_v punish_v maiefactor_n that_o magistrate_n be_v appoint_v of_o god_n to_o govern_v mankind_n in_o the_o civil_a affair_n of_o this_o life_n to_o be_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n for_o punish_v and_o cut_v off_o the_o wicked_a and_o for_o the_o support_v and_o maintain_v of_o the_o godly_a it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o magistrate_n to_o do_v justice_n upon_o evil_a doer_n and_o to_o give_v comfort_n and_o countenance_n to_o the_o faithful_a this_o be_v it_o which_o david_n promise_v unto_o god_n when_o he_o shall_v bring_v he_o unto_o the_o kingdom_n and_o set_v he_o upon_o the_o throne_n i_o will_v sing_v mercy_n and_o judgement_n unto_o thou_o o_o lord_n will_v i_o sing_v psal_n 101_o 1._o this_o be_v the_o charge_n that_o he_o give_v to_o solomon_n his_o son_n concern_v diverse_a man_n as_o appear_v 1._o king_n ●_z 6_o for_o he_o tell_v he_o he_o shall_v remember_v the_o blood_n of_o battle_n that_o joab_n shed_v in_o peace_n and_o therefore_o not_o suffer_v his_o hoar_a head_n to_o go_v down_o to_o the_o grave_n in_o peace_n the_o like_a direction_n he_o give_v he_o to_o show_v kindness_n unto_o the_o son_n of_o barzillai_n the_o gileadite_n and_o to_o let_v he_o be_v among_o they_o that_o eat_v at_o his_o table_n because_o they_o come_v unto_o he_o when_o he_o flee_v from_o absolom_n this_o direction_n do_v solomon_n precise_o follow_v he_o slay_v joab_n shemei_n and_o adoniah_n and_o set_v up_o godly_a man_n in_o the_o place_n of_o such_o as_o be_v remove_v from_o their_o office_n be_v more_o able_a than_o his_o father_n be_v all_o the_o precept_n that_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o to_o execute_v justice_n tend_v direct_o to_o this_o point_n whosoever_o shed_v man_n blood_n must_v not_o be_v spare_v but_o ha●e_v his_o blood_n shed_v by_o the_o magistrate_n gen._n 9.6_o if_o a_o man_n say_v moses_n cause_v any_o blemish_n in_o his_o neighbour_n as_o he_o have_v do_v so_o shall_v it_o be_v do_v to_o he_o breach_n for_o breach_n eye_n for_o eye_n tooth_n for_o tooth_n such_o a_o blemish_n as_o he_o have_v make_v in_o any_o such_o shall_v be_v repay_v to_o he_o levit._n 24_o 19_o these_o example_n and_o precept_n serve_v to_o teach_v we_o this_o truth_n that_o the_o end_n of_o magistrate_n appoint_v of_o god_n over_o his_o people_n be_v not_o to_o rule_v as_o they_o listen_v not_o to_o be_v idle_a and_o do_v nothing_o not_o to_o tyrannize_v or_o to_o be_v high_o account_v of_o not_o to_o lift_v up_o their_o heart_n or_o to_o please_v themselves_o in_o the_o title_n of_o honour_n give_v unto_o they_o but_o to_o do_v good_a in_o help_v the_o good_a and_o punish_v the_o evil_a reason_n 1_o the_o reason_n to_o enforce_v this_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v weigh_v &_o consider_v first_o they_o have_v to_o these_o end_n and_o purpose_n the_o sword_n of_o justice_n commit_v unto_o they_o not_o to_o let_v it_o rust_v in_o the_o scabbard_n but_o to_o remove_v all_o such_o as_o the_o land_n for_o their_o outrageousness_n be_v not_o able_a to_o bear_v for_o when_o they_o grow_v obstinate_a in_o their_o sin_n enemy_n to_o god_n plague_n to_o the_o godly_a burden_n to_o the_o earth_n and_o a_o infection_n to_o all_o with_o who_o they_o live_v they_o must_v be_v cut_v off_o as_o rot_a member_n sweep_v away_o as_o filthy_a dung_n and_o purge_v as_o evil_a humour_n out_o of_o the_o body_n this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o apostle_n teach_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n that_o be_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n for_o thy_o wealth_n &_o bear_v not_o the_o sword_n for_o nought_o for_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o take_v vengeance_n on_o he_o that_o do_v evil_a rom._n 13_o 4._o so_o then_o they_o be_v god_n lieutenant_n in_o his_o stead_n the_o judgement_n be_v god_n and_o not_o man_n for_o there_o be_v no_o iniquity_n with_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n neither_o respect_n of_o person_n nor_o receive_v of_o reward_n 2._o chro._n 19_o 7._o deut._n 1.16_o 17_o so_o that_o it_o be_v require_v of_o they_o to_o hear_v the_o controversy_n that_o come_v before_a they_o indifferent_o to_o judge_v righteous_o to_o heat_v the_o small_a as_o well_o as_o the_o great_a and_o not_o to_o stand_v in_o fear_n of_o the_o face_n of_o man_n reason_n 3_o second_o they_o be_v as_o bulwark_n of_o brass_n as_o wall_n of_o defence_n &_o as_o maintainer_n of_o peace_n among_o man_n for_o albeit_o man_n be_v of_o one self_o same_o nature_n yet_o they_o can_v abide_v one_o another_o unless_o they_o be_v hold_v in_o as_o with_o a_o bit_n and_o bridle_n wolf_n know_v one_o another_o in_o the_o wood_n the_o lion_n know_v one_o another_o in_o the_o forest_n so_o do_v other_o wild_a and_o savage_a beast_n in_o the_o field_n but_o man_n have_v such_o a_o corrupt_a and_o savage_a nature_n that_o hardly_o they_o can_v love_v another_o or_o suffer_v the_o company_n one_o of_o another_o unless_o they_o have_v ruler_n &_o magistrate_n set_v over_o they_o this_o the_o apostle_n teach_v he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n for_o thy_o wealth_n rom._n 13_o 4._o and_o the_o apostle_n peter_n he_o be_v send_v for_o
promise_v not_o only_o to_o be_v his_o god_n but_o also_o to_o be_v the_o god_n of_o his_o seed_n this_o promise_n do_v peter_n rehearse_v to_o the_o believe_a jew_n to_o you_o be_v the_o promise_n make_v and_o to_o your_o child_n and_o to_o all_o that_o be_v a_o far_o off_o even_o as_o many_o as_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n shall_v call_v act_v 2_o 39_o baptism_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n succeed_v circumcision_n use_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n they_o have_v both_o one_o and_o the_o same_o promise_n the_o same_o signification_n the_o same_o foundation_n the_o same_o end_n but_o the_o infant_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v command_v to_o be_v circumcise_v and_o therefore_o infant_n ought_v to_o be_v baptize_v hereupon_o the_o apostle_n say_v to_o the_o colossian_n you_o be_v circumcise_v in_o christ_n with_o circumcision_n make_v without_o hand_n by_o put_v off_o the_o sinful_a body_n of_o the_o flesh_n through_o the_o circumcision_n of_o c●rist_n etc._n etc._n col_n 2_o 11._o last_o unto_o infant_n belong_v the_o promise_n of_o grace_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n the_o regeneration_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o imputation_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o they_o ought_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v deny_v the_o outward_a sign_n and_o ceremony_n which_o be_v the_o least_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n cleanse_v they_o shall_v the_o minister_n deny_v to_o wash_v they_o with_o water_n if_o the_o thing_n signify_v do_v belong_v unto_o they_o who_o shall_v dare_v to_o debar_v they_o of_o the_o outward_a sign_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o our_o saviour_n command_v infant_n to_o be_v bring_v unto_o he_o reprove_v the_o disciple_n that_o forbid_v it_o embrace_v they_o in_o his_o arm_n commend_v they_o to_o his_o father_n and_o declare_v that_o to_o such_o belong_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n math_n 19_o object_n 14._o and_o if_o any_o ask_v the_o question_n what_o profit_n can_v possible_o come_v by_o baptism_n to_o a_o child_n and_o suckling_n that_o be_v without_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n answer_v i_o answer_v that_o the_o profit_n be_v not_o small_a but_o the_o benefit_n great_a if_o we_o consider_v either_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n or_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o parent_n or_o the_o edification_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o child_n for_o hereby_o god_n be_v great_o honour_v the_o parent_n himself_o be_v wonderful_o comfort_v and_o the_o child_n be_v exceed_o confirm_v and_o encourage_v god_n be_v glorify_v in_o this_o that_o he_o show_v himself_o true_a in_o his_o promise_n who_o have_v assure_v the_o faithful_a that_o he_o will_v show_v mercy_n unto_o they_o to_o a_o thousand_o generation_n he_o be_v not_o as_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v lie_v neither_o as_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v deceive_v he_o be_v find_v faithful_a in_o all_o the_o word_n that_o be_v go_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n numb_a 23_o 19_o again_o the_o parent_n be_v comfort_v and_o great_o assure_v of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o themselves_o that_o he_o will_v never_o leave_v they_o nor_o forsake_v they_o but_o that_o his_o gift_n &_o grace_n towards_o they_o shall_v be_v without_o repentance_n rom._n 11_o 29._o for_o they_o see_v not_o only_o that_o they_o be_v belove_v of_o god_n but_o also_o that_o the_o love_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v derive_v and_o convey_v unto_o their_o child_n wherein_o they_o be_v strengthen_v by_o that_o visible_a sign_n use_v in_o the_o sacrament_n last_o concern_v child_n they_o have_v a_o double_a benefit_n bestow_v upon_o they_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o encourage_v in_o the_o duty_n of_o godliness_n for_o when_o they_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o they_o so_o soon_o obtain_v the_o communion_n of_o christ_n the_o partake_n of_o his_o benefit_n and_o the_o inheritance_n of_o eternal_a life_n they_o be_v ground_v and_o establish_v in_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n and_o assure_v that_o he_o will_v continue_v to_o love_v they_o unto_o the_o end_n that_o begin_v to_o show_v his_o love_n unto_o they_o so_o soon_o when_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o he_o &_o be_v not_o able_a to_o inquire_v after_o he_o john_n 13_o 1_o and_o when_o they_o remember_v that_o god_n so_o much_o regard_v they_o and_o esteem_v of_o they_o even_o from_o their_o first_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o while_o they_o hang_v on_o their_o mother_n breast_n that_o present_o they_o obtain_v fellowship_n in_o his_o covenant_n they_o be_v embolden_v in_o all_o well_o do_v and_o provoke_v to_o walk_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o his_o name_n and_o see_v he_o take_v they_o for_o his_o child_n when_o th●●_n through_o want_n of_o knowledge_n and_o tenderness_n of_o age_n be_v not_o able_a to_o call_v he_o father_n let_v they_o remember_v their_o creator_n and_o redeemer_n in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o youth_n and_o pass_v the_o time_n of_o their_o dwell_n here_o in_o fear_n know_v that_o they_o be_v not_o redeem_v with_o corruptible_a thing_n as_o silver_n and_o gold_n from_o their_o vain_a conversation_n receive_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o father_n but_o with_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n 1._o pet._n 1.17_o 18._o let_v we_o also_o learn_v from_o hence_o to_o detest_v the_o error_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n that_o deny_v baptism_n unto_o infant_n thereby_o diminish_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n weaken_v the_o comfort_n of_o godly_a parent_n and_o abolish_n the_o assurance_n of_o child_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v touch_v the_o free_a love_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o second_o we_o be_v teach_v on_o the_o other_o side_n use_v 2_o that_o evil_a parent_n bring_v the_o curse_n of_o god_n into_o their_o house_n and_o upon_o their_o posterity_n we_o see_v this_o in_o cain_n when_o he_o give_v himself_o to_o murder_n and_o impiety_n he_o bring_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o his_o whole_a race_n that_o be_v raze_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n mark_v the_o posterity_n of_o ishmael_n who_o mock_v isaac_n and_o raise_v persecution_n against_o he_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o house_n of_o abraham_n out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o his_o issue_n be_v alien_n from_o the_o faith_n and_o stranger_n from_o the_o promise_n of_o salvation_n the_o like_a we_o see_v and_o may_v say_v of_o esau_n that_o profane_a person_n who_o for_o a_o mess_n of_o pottage_n sell_v his_o birthright_n and_o hate_v his_o brother_n his_o posterity_n be_v the_o great_a enemy_n to_o the_o true_a israelite_n and_o be_v a_o curse_a generation_n heb._n 12_o 16._o consider_v with_o i_o the_o fearful_a example_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la the_o son_n of_o nebat_fw-la that_o make_v israel_n to_o sin_n and_o provoke_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n to_o wrath_n 2._o king_n 15_o 30._o this_o seducer_n wrought_v wickedness_n and_o establish_a idolatry_n and_o thereby_o think_v to_o establish_v the_o kingdom_n to_o himself_o and_o to_o settle_v it_o in_o his_o posterity_n that_o it_o shall_v never_o be_v remove_v from_o his_o offspring_n but_o follow_v from_o father_n to_o son_n in_o a_o continue_a succession_n notwithstanding_o this_o fall_v out_o not_o only_o to_o his_o own_o confusion_n but_o to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o his_o stock_n and_o lineage_n the_o judgement_n of_o god_n do_v not_o rest_n in_o his_o person_n but_o pursue_v he_o in_o his_o progeny_n and_o posterity_n this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o lord_n denounce_v by_o the_o prophet_n behold_v i_o will_v bring_v evil_a upon_o the_o house_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la and_o will_v cut_v off_o from_o jeroboam_fw-la he_o that_o piss_v against_o the_o wall_n as_o well_o he_o that_o be_v shut_v up_o as_o he_o that_o be_v leave_v in_o israel_n and_o will_v sweep_v away_o the_o remnant_n of_o the_o house_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la as_o a_o man_n sweep_v away_o dung_a until_o it_o be_v all_o go_v 1._o king_n 14_o 10._o where_o the_o prophet_n show_v and_o declare_v that_o god_n respect_v evil_a man_n as_o filthy_a beast_n and_o those_o that_o come_v of_o they_o as_o dung_n and_o excrement_n which_o defile_v the_o place_n where_o they_o abide_v and_o therefore_o with_o the_o bosom_n of_o his_o vengeance_n he_o will_v sweep_v they_o away_o that_o they_o shall_v no_o long_o offend_v the_o nostril_n of_o god_n and_o his_o people_n thus_o it_o be_v with_o ahab_n that_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n and_o take_v possession_n of_o the_o vineyard_n of_o naboth_n he_o do_v the_o great_a injury_n and_o wrong_n to_o his_o posterity_n that_o can_v be_v offer_v the_o kingdom_n be_v take_v from_o his_o house_n and_o his_o child_n be_v slay_v with_o the_o sword_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o eliah_n i_o will_v bring_v evil_a upon_o thou_o and_o will_v take_v away_o thy_o posterity_n 2d_o 1_o king_n 21_o 2d_o i_o will_v make_v thy_o
house_n like_o the_o house_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la &c_n &c_n and_o also_o of_o jezabel_n speak_v the_o lord_n say_v the_o dog_n shall_v eat_v jezabel_n by_o the_o wall_n of_o izreel_n who_o be_v then_o the_o great_a enemy_n to_o their_o child_n but_o ungodly_a parent_n and_o who_o bring_v upon_o they_o a_o great_a woe_n and_o ruin_n than_o they_o that_o shall_v build_v they_o up_o and_o leave_v a_o blessing_n behind_o they_o when_o moses_n describe_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n that_o he_o be_v abundant_a in_o mercy_n towards_o the_o righteous_a he_o add_v hold_v not_o the_o wicked_a innocent_a but_o visit_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o father_n on_o the_o child_n to_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n exod._n 34_o 8._o this_o must_v move_v parent_n and_o governor_n to_o make_v conscience_n of_o their_o carriage_n and_o conversation_n and_o to_o bewail_v their_o sin_n that_o have_v endanger_v their_o offspring_n for_o god_n may_v and_o do_v in_o justice_n visit_v with_o sundry_a and_o diverse_a judgment_n those_o family_n and_o society_n where_o wicked_a parent_n and_o profane_a governor_n be_v all_o they_o be_v cruel_a &_o tygerlike_a parent_n that_o be_v ungodly_a parent_n for_o they_o be_v the_o murderer_n and_o butcher_n of_o their_o child_n &_o overthrow_v of_o their_o posterity_n in_o time_n howsoever_o they_o be_v spare_v for_o a_o season_n what_o unmerciful_a &_o unnatural_a parent_n be_v cain_n cham_n canaan_n jeroboam_fw-la jezabel_n ahab_n &_o such_o like_a that_o cause_v every_o one_o of_o their_o house_n that_o can_v water_v a_o wall_n to_o be_v destroy_v and_o utter_o to_o have_v their_o race_n and_o remembrance_n root_v out_o it_o be_v therefore_o a_o devilish_a and_o wicked_a proverb_n happy_a be_v those_o child_n who_o father_n go_v to_o the_o devil_n proverb_n a_o devilish_a proverb_n nay_o rather_o curse_a be_v those_o child_n who_o father_n fall_v into_o hell_n for_o there_o be_v a_o great_a presumption_n that_o they_o will_v follow_v they_o without_o the_o great_a mercy_n and_o special_a grace_n of_o god_n yea_o it_o be_v a_o bless_a thing_n to_o spring_v from_o a_o godly_a stock_n &_o to_o rise_v from_o faithful_a parent_n for_o often_o do_v the_o lord_n spare_v israel_n for_o abraham_n isaack_n and_o jacobs_n sake_n when_o the_o posterity_n of_o david_n become_v wicked_a he_o continue_v they_o in_o their_o kingdom_n deliver_v they_o from_o their_o enemy_n &_o do_v not_o destroy_v they_o for_o david_n sake_n when_o the_o lord_n be_v angry_a with_o solomon_n because_o he_o have_v turn_v his_o heart_n from_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n which_o have_v appear_v unto_o he_o twice_o and_o charge_v he_o not_o to_o follow_v strange_a god_n he_o threaten_v to_o rend_v the_o kingdom_n from_o he_o &_o to_o give_v it_o to_o his_o servant_n notwithstanding_o in_o thy_o day_n i_o will_v not_o do_v it_o say_v the_o lord_n because_o of_o david_n thy_o father_n 1._o king_n 11_o 12._o this_o appear_v more_o plain_o afterward_o in_o abiiam_fw-la the_o son_n of_o rehoboam_n who_o walk_v in_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o father_n which_o he_o have_v do_v before_o he_o yet_o for_o david_n sake_n do_v the_o lord_n his_o god_n give_v he_o a_o light_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o set_v up_o his_o son_n after_o he_o and_o establish_v jerusalem_n because_o david_n do_v that_o which_o be_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o turn_v from_o nothing_o that_o he_o command_v he_o all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n save_v only_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o vriah_n the_o hittite_n 1._o king_n 15.4_o 5._o 2._o chron._n 21_o 7._o this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o lord_n promise_v in_o the_o second_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n that_o he_o will_v show_v mercy_n to_o thousand_o of_o they_o that_o love_v he_o and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n exod._n 20.6_o see_v then_o wicked_a and_o wretched_a parent_n be_v most_o deadly_a enemy_n unto_o their_o child_n who_o bear_v the_o curse_n of_o god_n upon_o they_o for_o many_o generation_n for_o the_o impiety_n of_o their_o father_n this_o serve_v as_o a_o great_a terror_n to_o those_o parent_n that_o go_v about_o by_o fraud_n and_o oppression_n by_o wrongful_a and_o injurious_a deal_n to_o enrich_v themselves_o to_o set_v up_o their_o name_n and_o make_v their_o posterity_n to_o be_v great_a upon_o the_o earth_n after_o they_o for_o this_o be_v the_o ready_a way_n to_o bring_v the_o curse_n of_o god_n upon_o they_o and_o to_o pull_v down_o their_o house_n where_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n enter_v it_o make_v havoc_n and_o waste_v all_o before_o it_o god_n be_v a_o avenger_n of_o all_o such_o thing_n 1._o thes_n 4_o 6._o sure_o if_o man_n be_v not_o altogether_o faithless_a but_o have_v faith_n to_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o all_o wicked_a course_n and_o vile_a practice_n will_v overthrow_v their_o house_n and_o not_o build_v they_o up_o that_o they_o can_v not_o fill_v they_o with_o evil_a thing_n but_o they_o will_v pull_v down_o the_o plague_n of_o god_n upon_o they_o and_o all_o they_o it_o will_v make_v they_o fear_v to_o offend_v by_o fraud_n and_o unjust_a deal_n which_o cry_v for_o vengeance_n unto_o heaven_n and_o the_o cry_v thereof_o enter_v into_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n james_n 5_o 4_o all_o man_n by_o nature_n have_v a_o love_n unto_o their_o child_n and_o a_o desire_n to_o leave_v they_o great_a man_n in_o the_o world_n but_o many_o be_v great_o deceive_v in_o the_o mean_n and_o wander_v far_o and_o wide_o out_o of_o the_o way_n for_o if_o we_o will_v leave_v they_o a_o sure_a inheritance_n and_o settle_v they_o in_o a_o estate_n to_o continue_v we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o do_v not_o enrich_v ourselves_o with_o the_o spoil_n of_o other_o nor_o fill_v our_o house_n with_o the_o riches_n of_o iniquity_n lest_o we_o fill_v they_o also_o with_o the_o vengeance_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o iniquity_n let_v we_o eat_v our_o own_o bread_n which_o we_o have_v get_v by_o lawful_a mean_n there_o be_v more_o comfort_n in_o a_o little_a true_o get_v then_o in_o great_a riches_n and_o revenue_n that_o carry_v with_o they_o god_n mark_n and_o curse_n be_v wrongful_o obtain_v and_o unjust_o retain_v last_o it_o be_v require_v of_o we_o to_o repent_v &_o believe_v use_v 3_o the_o gospel_n that_o so_o we_o may_v procure_v a_o blessing_n upon_o ourselves_o and_o our_o child_n this_o duty_n the_o apostle_n peter_n preach_v unto_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v prick_v in_o their_o heart_n amend_v your_o life_n &_o be_v baptize_v every_o one_o of_o you_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n for_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v unto_o you_o and_o to_o your_o child_n etc._n etc._n act_v 2_o 38_o 39_o when_o god_n promise_v to_o abraham_n to_o make_v a_o covenant_n with_o he_o and_o to_o multiply_v his_o seed_n exceed_o he_o require_v this_o condition_n at_o his_o hand_n walk_v before_o i_o and_o be_v thou_o upright_o gen._n 17_o 1._o we_o must_v walk_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o our_o house_n with_o pure_a and_o perfect_a heart_n and_o guide_v they_o with_o a_o watchful_a eye_n we_o must_v look_v to_o their_o way_n and_o to_o our_o government_n this_o will_v be_v a_o great_a help_n to_o the_o ministry_n and_o a_o singular_a furtherance_n to_o his_o labour_n the_o neglect_n of_o this_o care_n bring_v utter_a ruin_n to_o father_n and_o child_n this_o appear_v in_o the_o example_n of_o eli_n who_o through_o his_o indulgence_n and_o negligence_n overthrow_v himself_o and_o his_o posterity_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o so_o many_o curse_a youth_n so_o many_o riotous_a man_n &_o woman_n which_o procure_v the_o ruin_n of_o so_o many_o excellent_a house_n their_o tender_a age_n be_v not_o sanctify_v neither_o they_o season_v by_o their_o parent_n with_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n so_o then_o godly_a parent_n must_v have_v a_o care_n to_o bring_v up_o their_o child_n &_o family_n in_o godliness_n &_o righteousness_n it_o may_v be_v a_o mean_n by_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n to_o save_v thy_o son_n from_o death_n and_o to_o deliver_v his_o soul_n from_o destruction_n the_o lord_n himself_o speak_v of_o abraham_n that_o he_o know_v he_o that_o he_o will_v teach_v his_o son_n and_o his_o household_n after_o he_o that_o they_o keep_v the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o do_v righteousness_n and_o judgement_n gen._n 18_o 19_o the_o apostle_n charge_v parent_n to_o bring_v up_o their_o child_n in_o the_o nurture_n and_o information_n of_o the_o lord_n eph._n 6_o 4._o no_o parent_n must_v presume_v that_o because_o they_o have_v obtain_v to_o be_v faithful_a therefore_o their_o child_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v so_o also_o faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o nature_n it_o be_v not_o
no_o minister_n or_o teacher_n to_o instruct_v they_o matth._n 9_o 36_o for_o as_o the_o one_o sort_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o body_n so_o be_v the_o other_o of_o the_o loss_n of_o the_o soul_n whereby_o subject_n shall_v learn_v to_o be_v obedient_a to_o their_o magistrate_n &_o to_o be_v thankful_a to_o god_n where_o he_o have_v set_v they_o and_o under_o they_o to_o profit_v in_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n lest_o for_o our_o unthankfulness_n and_o other_o sin_n they_o be_v take_v away_o from_o us._n but_o the_o point_n which_o be_v chief_o here_o intend_v god_n doctrine_n magistrate_n have_v their_o call_n immediate_o from_o god_n be_v this_o that_o magistrate_n have_v their_o call_n and_o hold_v their_o place_n immediate_o from_o god_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o people_n 2_o chro._n 9_o 8._o solomon_n be_v set_v in_o his_o throne_n by_o god_n himself_o not_o by_o the_o high_a priest_n or_o the_o people_n dan._n 2_o 21_o 37._o it_o be_v say_v of_o david_n that_o god_n choose_v he_o to_o be_v king_n he_o delight_v in_o he_o to_o make_v he_o king_n 1_o chron._n 28_o 4._o he_o choose_v he_o from_o the_o sheepfold_a to_o feed_v his_o people_n jacob_n and_o israel_n his_o inheritance_n psal_n 78_o 71._o it_o be_v say_v of_o saul_n the_o lord_n have_v anoint_v thou_o to_o be_v governor_n of_o his_o inheritance_n 1_o sam._n 10_o 1._o god_n say_v to_o the_o prophet_n touch_v hazael_n &_o jehu_n anoint_v hazael_n king_n of_o syria_n and_o jehu_n shall_v thou_o anoint_v king_n of_o israel_n 1_o king_n 19_o 15._o so_o then_o they_o hold_v of_o god_n in_o chief_a and_o not_o of_o man_n reason_n 1_o the_o ground_n hereof_o follow_v first_o of_o all_o the_o scripture_n call_v king_n the_o lieutenant_n and_o minister_n of_o god_n rom._n 13_o 4._o there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n the_o power_n that_o be_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n etc._n etc._n for_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o thou_o for_o good_a and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o they_o be_v call_v god_n on_o earth_n psa_n 82_o 6._o exod._n 22_o 28_o because_o they_o sit_v in_o his_o place_n and_o be_v to_o execute_v his_o judgement_n reason_n 2_o second_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o give_v a_o account_n only_o to_o god_n and_o not_o to_o man_n for_o as_o they_o be_v next_o and_o immediate_a to_o god_n and_o inferior_a to_o none_o but_o to_o he_o so_o for_o all_o their_o action_n they_o shall_v reckon_v with_o he_o the_o officer_n send_v out_o by_o he_o the_o judge_n that_o execute_v justice_n the_o minister_n and_o all_o that_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o all_o that_o rule_n in_o the_o church_n in_o commonwealth_n or_o in_o the_o house_n must_v give_v a_o account_n to_o he_o but_o he_o to_o none_o save_v to_o he_o that_o have_v call_v he_o tertullian_n say_v well_o he_o make_v he_o emperor_n 30._o apolog._n cap._n 30._o who_o make_v he_o a_o man_n before_o he_o be_v emperor_n from_o he_o he_o hold_v his_o sceptre_n of_o who_o he_o have_v his_o soul_n object_n but_o it_o may_v be_v object_v that_o peter_n call_v it_o a_o ordinance_n of_o man_n 1_o pet._n 2_o 13_o submit_v yourselves_o to_o every_o ordinance_n of_o man_n for_o the_o lord_n sake_n if_o then_o it_o be_v a_o humane_a ordinance_n how_o may_v it_o be_v divine_a i_o answer_v answer_v the_o magistrate_n be_v so_o call_v not_o because_o man_n be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o or_o may_v dissolve_v it_o but_o first_o because_o man_n do_v execute_v it_o not_o god_n or_o the_o angel_n second_o because_o it_o be_v ordain_v for_o the_o use_n benefit_n and_o profit_n of_o man_n it_o be_v ordain_v for_o man_n as_o heb._n 5_o 1._o so_o we_o may_v say_v of_o the_o king_n he_o be_v take_v from_o among_o man_n and_o he_o be_v ordain_v for_o man_n use_v 1_o this_o reprove_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n together_o with_o the_o great_a bishop_n &_o mighty_a advancer_n of_o that_o see_v that_o give_v temporal_a power_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o make_v he_o the_o sovereign_a monarch_n of_o the_o earth_n as_o if_o all_o the_o world_n be_v one_o body_n and_o he_o the_o soul_n that_o quicken_v move_v nourish_v and_o uphold_v that_o body_n or_o as_o if_o king_n and_o prince_n hold_v their_o temporal_a possession_n dominion_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o he_o as_o it_o be_v their_o land_n in_o capite_fw-la and_o as_o if_o that_o proud_a bishop_n have_v power_n to_o cite_v these_o as_o his_o subject_n or_o vassal_n judicial_o to_o appear_v before_o his_o consistory_n howbeit_o the_o pope_n himself_o have_v no_o more_o than_o he_o can_v claim_v from_o peter_n if_o so_o much_o neither_o can_n peter_n have_v any_o more_o than_o he_o can_v derive_v from_o christ_n but_o christ_n himself_o while_o he_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n take_v upon_o he_o no_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n he_o refuse_v to_o be_v make_v a_o king_n john_n 6_o he_o refuse_v to_o be_v a_o judge_n in_o civil_a cause_n and_o in_o divide_v inheritance_n luke_n 12_o 13._o he_o pay_v pol-mony_n as_o other_o do_v matth._n 17_o he_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o pilate_n and_o command_v all_o to_o give_v unto_o cesar_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n mat._n 22._o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o peter_n &_o his_o example_n also_o what_o then_o shall_v the_o servant_n be_v above_o his_o master_n or_o will_v he_o that_o call_v himself_o the_o servant_n of_o servant_n usurp_v that_o which_o neither_o peter_n the_o suppose_a founder_n of_o that_o supremacy_n nor_o yet_o christ_n himself_o ever_o challenge_v or_o usurp_v the_o answer_n of_o bellarmine_n to_o this_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v which_o be_v as_o the_o egg_n whereof_o the_o treason_n and_o rebellion_n be_v hatch_v that_o have_v abound_v in_o these_o last_o day_n 6._o de_fw-fr pont_n ro●_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 6._o for_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n sound_v out_o the_o trumpet_n of_o sedition_n and_o secret_o instill_v damnable_a poison_n into_o the_o heart_n and_o ear_n of_o their_o hearer_n and_o reader_n that_o christ_n refuse_v to_o divide_v the_o inheritance_n lest_o the_o office_n of_o the_o prelacy_n shall_v be_v stain_v with_o such_o base_a and_o abject_a office_n and_o that_o peter_n submit_v himself_o to_o cesar_n because_o than_o he_o be_v weak_a and_o not_o able_a to_o recover_v his_o right_n but_o if_o he_o have_v be_v strong_a enough_o he_o will_v never_o have_v yield_v to_o he_o i_o answer_v first_o it_o be_v no_o base_a call_n to_o be_v a_o judge_n of_o inheritance_n it_o be_v a_o honourable_a place_n to_o sit_v in_o the_o court_n of_o justice_n and_o in_o the_o seat_n of_o judgement_n again_o as_o christ_n refuse_v to_o be_v a_o judge_n so_o he_o refuse_v to_o be_v a_o king_n also_o &_o teach_v they_o that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n be_v it_o a_o base_a office_n to_o be_v a_o king_n or_o dishonourable_a to_o rule_v a_o kingdom_n beside_o as_o he_o refuse_v civil_a honour_n so_o he_o perform_v civil_a subjection_n and_o thereby_o acknowledge_v his_o obedience_n and_o homage_n unto_o cesar_n by_o his_o doctrine_n &_o practice_n wherefore_o it_o be_v certain_a he_o refuse_v to_o deal_v in_o these_o cause_n because_o they_o be_v not_o befit_v his_o call_n who_o come_v to_o preach_v not_o to_o rule_v to_o divide_v the_o word_n aright_o not_o the_o wealth_n of_o the_o world_n second_o where_o they_o teach_v that_o peter_n put_v the_o church_n in_o mind_n of_o obedience_n because_o it_o be_v not_o then_o able_a to_o resist_v this_o be_v to_o despise_v government_n to_o arm_v the_o subject_n against_o the_o prince_n &_o to_o make_v way_n for_o treason_n &_o insurrection_n and_o be_v contrary_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o former_a time_n as_o we_o have_v show_v at_o large_a elsewhere_o second_o it_o reprove_v such_o as_o teach_v that_o prince_n use_v 2_o excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n sentence_n be_v not_o to_o be_v obey_v and_o that_o their_o subject_n be_v discharge_v of_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n towards_o they_o so_o long_o as_o they_o lie_v under_o that_o censure_n but_o the_o apostle_n will_v that_o obedience_n shall_v be_v yield_v even_o to_o wicked_a and_o idolatrous_a prince_n such_o as_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o for_o conscience_n sake_n rom._n 13_o 5._o the_o christian_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n want_v not_o number_v nor_o strength_n to_o have_v resist_v and_o depose_v pagan_a emperor_n as_o tertullian_n teach_v apolog._n tertul._n apolog._n for_o they_o have_v fill_v every_o town_n and_o city_n every_o camp_n and_o corner_n yet_o they_o never_o stir_v or_o offer_v to_o make_v insurrection_n but_o offer_v themselves_o to_o be_v kill_v for_o
of_o the_o church_n in_o what_o weak_a and_o desolate_a estate_n have_v it_o be_v if_o mordecai_n and_o ester_n have_v not_o procure_v the_o safety_n of_o it_o be_v it_o not_o take_v out_o of_o the_o jaw_n of_o the_o lion_n and_o pull_v out_o of_o the_o pit_n of_o death_n in_o such_o time_n we_o must_v cast_v anchor_n in_o heaven_n and_o make_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n our_o only_a confidence_n use_v 3_o three_o conclude_v from_o hence_o that_o it_o be_v a_o fearful_a thing_n when_o man_n become_v oppressor_n of_o the_o church_n for_o if_o every_o one_o from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a shall_v be_v a_o succourer_n &_o defender_n thereof_o then_o none_o bring_v up_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v a_o oppressor_n of_o it_o but_o how_o many_o have_v there_o be_v who_o have_v lift_v up_o themselves_o against_o it_o not_o only_o open_a enemy_n but_o close_a underminer_n who_o kindle_v the_o coal_n of_o their_o own_o confusion_n and_o have_v be_v consume_v in_o the_o flame_n that_o they_o have_v raise_v the_o prophet_n obadiah_n conclude_v this_o point_n ver_fw-la 10_o for_o thy_o violence_n against_o thy_o brother_n jacob_n shame_n shall_v cover_v thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o for_o ever_o etc._n etc._n as_o thou_o have_v do_v it_o shall_v be_v do_v to_o thou_o thy_o reward_n shall_v return_v upon_o thy_o own_o head_n obad._n verse_n 10_o 15._o and_o touch_v the_o persecute_v babylonian_n that_o carry_v the_o people_n away_o captive_n and_o scoff_v at_o they_o in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o calamity_n the_o prophet_n foretell_v their_o final_a overthrow_n psalm_n 137_o 8_o 9_o o_o daughter_n of_o babylon_n who_o be_v to_o be_v destroy_v happy_a shall_v he_o be_v that_o reward_v thou_o as_o thou_o have_v serve_v we_o happy_a shall_v he_o be_v that_o take_v and_o dash_v thy_o little_a one_o against_o the_o stone_n wo_n therefore_o to_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_a or_o to_o any_o particular_a soul_n that_o serve_v the_o lord_n they_o be_v also_o enemy_n to_o god_n himself_o use_v 4_o last_o none_o live_v in_o the_o church_n must_v be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n every_o one_o must_v take_v notice_n how_o thing_n go_v in_o it_o whether_o it_o go_v forward_o or_o backward_o increase_n or_o decrease_v grow_v better_o or_o worse_o we_o be_v come_v for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o this_o to_o content_v ourselves_o with_o look_v to_o our_o private_a wealth_n &_o particular_a estate_n as_o if_o we_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o think_v upon_o but_o to_o follow_v our_o profit_n and_o delight_n so_o it_o be_v with_o the_o people_n after_o their_o return_n from_o captivity_n they_o build_v their_o own_o house_n but_o they_o let_v the_o house_n of_o god_n alone_o they_o be_v very_o busy_a in_o seek_v their_o own_o commodity_n but_o they_o be_v whole_o unmindful_a of_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o they_o say_v the_o time_n be_v not_o come_v the_o time_n that_o the_o lord_n house_n shall_v be_v build_v who_o the_o prophet_n reprove_v say_v be_v it_o time_n for_o you_o o_o you_o to_o dwell_v in_o your_o siel_v house_n &_o this_o house_o waste_v hag._n 1_o 2_o 3._o other_o there_o be_v that_o shrink_v back_o for_o fear_n and_o dare_v not_o adventure_v and_o be_v move_v they_o plead_v ignorance_n they_o pretend_v they_o know_v nothing_o but_o the_o prophet_n denounce_v a_o woe_n against_o they_o that_o be_v at_o ease_n in_o zion_n amos_n 6_o 1._o if_o every_o one_o ought_v to_o be_v helpful_a to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o put_v on_o the_o bowel_n of_o pity_n and_o compassion_n how_o shall_v we_o excuse_v ourselves_o &_o say_v we_o know_v not_o what_o be_v want_v or_o what_o be_v amiss_o or_o out_o of_o course_n for_o every_o one_o at_o his_o own_o peril_n must_v know_v the_o peril_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v touch_v with_o a_o feel_n of_o they_o and_o ignorance_n shall_v excuse_v no_o man_n it_o be_v a_o excellent_a say_n of_o solomon_n prou._n 24_o 11_o 12_o 13._o if_o thou_o faint_v in_o the_o day_n of_o adversity_n thy_o strength_n be_v small_a if_o thou_o forbear_v to_o deliver_v they_o that_o be_v draw_v forth_o to_o death_n and_o those_o that_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v slay_v if_o thou_o say_v behold_v we_o know_v not_o of_o it_o do_v not_o he_o that_o ponder_v the_o heart_n consider_v it_o and_o he_o that_o keep_v thy_o soul_n do_v not_o he_o know_v it_o and_o shall_v not_o he_o render_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n the_o lord_n suffer_v his_o people_n to_o fall_v into_o sundry_a tentation_n and_o into_o great_a danger_n not_o only_o to_o try_v their_o faith_n and_o to_o prove_v their_o constancy_n but_o likewise_o to_o manifest_v their_o love_n &_o affection_n that_o seem_v to_o be_v out_o of_o gunshot_n as_o ester_n 4_o 14._o 2_o tim._n 1_o 16_o 17_o 18._o jer._n 39_o 16_o 17_o 18._o 33_o and_o moses_n give_v unto_o they_o even_o to_o the_o child_n of_o gad_n and_o to_o the_o child_n of_o reuben_n &_o unto_o half_a the_o tribe_n of_o manasseh_n the_o son_n of_o joseph_n the_o kingdom_n of_o sihon_n king_n of_o the_o amorites_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o og_n king_n of_o bashan_n etc._n etc._n 34_o 35_o 36._o and_o the_o child_n of_o gad_n build_v dibon_n and_o etc._n etc._n 37_o 38_o 39_o and_o the_o child_n of_o reuben_n etc._n etc._n 40._o and_o moses_n give_v gilead_n etc._n etc._n the_o inheritance_n that_o be_v give_v unto_o these_o tribe_n be_v here_o particular_o describe_v to_o wit_n what_o city_n befall_v unto_o they_o which_o they_o diligent_o fortify_v and_o courageous_o expel_v the_o enemy_n that_o dwell_v in_o they_o out_o of_o these_o word_n some_o question_n be_v brief_o to_o be_v decide_v and_o first_o touch_v the_o change_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o city_n which_o befall_v to_o the_o child_n of_o reuben_n verse_n 38_o the_o question_n may_v be_v ask_v wherefore_o their_o name_n be_v change_v the_o answer_n be_v that_o without_o question_n the_o cause_n of_o this_o change_n be_v that_o the_o former_a name_n give_v of_o ancient_a time_n be_v mere_o idolatrous_a for_o both_o of_o they_o have_v their_o name_n of_o the_o idol_n which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v have_v in_o remembrance_n neither_o to_o be_v hear_v out_o of_o their_o mouth_n exod_n 23_o 13._o objection_n psal_n 16_o 4._o second_o from_o hence_o a_o doubt_n arise_v how_o moses_n can_v be_v say_v to_o give_v gilead_n to_o machir_n the_o son_n of_o manasseh_n and_o how_o he_o dwell_v therein_o for_o may_v we_o think_v that_o machir_n be_v then_o alive_a i_o answer_v answ_n it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o he_o live_v unto_o this_o time_n rather_o we_o must_v understand_v the_o son_n and_o posterity_n that_o come_v of_o he_o so_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n be_v call_v israel_n and_o the_o son_n of_o edom_n by_o the_o name_n of_o edom._n he_o that_o know_v not_o this_o know_v nothing_o thus_o it_o be_v say_v that_o judah_n speak_v unto_o simeon_n his_o brother_n judg._n 1_o 3_o yet_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v alive_a in_o many_o age_n before_o &_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o their_o posterity_n the_o like_a we_o see_v gen._n 48_o 22._o i_o give_v unto_o thou_o one_o portion_n above_o thy_o brethren_n which_o i_o have_v take_v out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o amorite_n with_o my_o sword_n and_o with_o my_o bow_n where_o jacob_n bequeathe_v unto_o joseph_n by_o his_o last_o will_n and_o testament_n a_o double_a portion_n of_o the_o land_n 1_o chron._n 5_o 2._o by_o joseph_n we_o must_v understand_v his_o posterity_n for_o in_o his_o own_o person_n he_o inherit_v nothing_o but_o die_v long_o before_o and_o by_o the_o sword_n and_o bow_n of_o jacob_n we_o must_v understand_v the_o ephraimite_n which_o help_v to_o conquer_v the_o land_n and_o be_v a_o mighty_a people_n in_o josuahs_n time_n josh_n 17_o 14_o 18._o object_n but_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a question_n to_o determine_v how_o jaer_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o manasseh_n who_o doubtless_o do_v belong_v to_o another_o tribe_n for_o in_o the_o genealogy_n mention_v in_o the_o book_n of_o chronicle_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o segub_n the_o son_n of_o hetzron_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n 1_o chron._n 2_o 22._o i_o answer_v answ_n he_o be_v reckon_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o manasseh_n by_o the_o mother_n side_n not_o by_o the_o father_n for_o it_o be_v plain_a in_o the_o chapter_n before_o name_v that_o hetzron_n the_o son_n of_o judah_n marry_v the_o daughter_n of_o machir_n the_o son_n of_o manasseh_n 1_o chro._n 7_o 13._o 131._o ad_fw-la difficil_n loca_fw-la in_o num._n c._n 131._o
11_o 13_o they_o die_v in_o faith_n and_o receive_v not_o the_o promise_n but_o see_v they_o afar_o off_o and_o believe_v they_o and_o receive_v they_o thankful_o and_o confess_v that_o they_o be_v stranger_n and_o pilgrim_n on_o the_o earth_n stranger_n be_v not_o inhabitant_n and_o traveller_n be_v not_o leiger_n and_o continuer_n in_o one_o place_n this_o shall_v teach_v we_o to_o use_v this_o world_n as_o though_o we_o use_v it_o not_o to_o buy_v as_o though_o we_o possess_v not_o consider_v that_o the_o fashion_n of_o this_o world_n go_v away_o and_o the_o glory_n of_o man_n fade_v as_o the_o flower_n we_o must_v cast_v off_o all_o let_v that_o may_v stay_v and_o hinder_v we_o in_o our_o journey_n like_v unto_o traveller_n who_o will_v carry_v nothing_o with_o they_o in_o the_o way_n but_o that_o which_o may_v help_v and_o further_o they_o to_o their_o journey_n end_n if_o they_o find_v by_o experience_n any_o thing_n to_o clog_n they_o they_o will_v cast_v it_o from_o they_o as_o the_o blind_a man_n cast_v away_o his_o cloak_n mark_v 10_o 50_o that_o he_o may_v run_v with_o speed_n to_o he_o that_o call_v he_o and_o rather_o lose_v their_o present_a profit_n then_o lack_v the_o place_n of_o blessedness_n to_o which_o we_o be_v go_v for_o our_o light_a affliction_n which_o be_v but_o for_o a_o moment_n cause_v unto_o we_o a_o far_o more_o excellent_a and_o a_o eternal_a weight_n of_o glory_n while_o we_o look_v not_o on_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v but_o on_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o see_v for_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v be_v temporal_a but_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o see_v be_v eternal_a let_v we_o therefore_o learn_v contentation_n of_o heart_n in_o every_o estate_n of_o life_n which_o god_n will_v bring_v upon_o us._n let_v we_o while_o we_o converse_v upon_o the_o earth_n have_v our_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n and_o live_v as_o citizen_n of_o that_o kingdom_n account_v ourselves_o here_o to_o be_v from_o home_n esteem_v this_o life_n a_o place_n of_o banishment_n and_o sigh_v to_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n and_o restore_v to_o the_o glorious_a liberty_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n we_o all_o desire_n to_o inherit_v god_n kingdom_n as_o balaam_n desire_v to_o die_v the_o death_n of_o the_o righteous_a but_o we_o will_v not_o willing_o be_v sojourner_n here_o sojourn_v import_v a_o temporary_a abode_n not_o a_o settle_a life_n but_o a_o pass_v forward_o in_o hope_n of_o translation_n to_o a_o better_a estate_n we_o must_v all_o embrace_v and_o receive_v this_o as_o a_o rule_v case_n earth_n a_o citizen_n of_o heaven_n be_v a_o pilgrim_n on_o the_o earth_n that_o every_o citizen_n of_o heaven_n be_v a_o pilgrim_n on_o earth_n genes_n 47_o 9_o 1_o chronic._n 29_o 15._o 1_o peter_n 1_o 17_o and_o 2_o 11_o 12._o if_o then_o we_o desire_v to_o be_v citizen_n of_o god_n kingdom_n we_o must_v behave_v ourselves_o as_o pilgrim_n on_o the_o earth_n we_o be_v as_o it_o be_v exile_n and_o banish_a man_n in_o a_o foreign_a land_n ought_v we_o not_o then_o to_o desire_v earnest_o and_o hearty_o to_o come_v into_o our_o own_o country_n and_o among_o our_o own_o people_n whosoever_o have_v a_o rich_a patrimony_n in_o his_o own_o country_n great_a wealth_n much_o honour_n noble_a friend_n and_o be_v force_v for_o a_o season_n to_o sojourn_v in_o a_o strange_a land_n among_o stranger_n nay_o enemy_n where_o he_o be_v evil_o entreat_v reproach_v revile_v disturb_v and_o persecute_v on_o every_o side_n certain_o he_o will_v set_v his_o heart_n and_o affection_n upon_o nothing_o there_o but_o all_o his_o mind_n be_v set_v upon_o his_o country_n desire_v above_o all_o thing_n to_o return_v and_o come_v again_o thither_o thus_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v with_o we_o our_o country_n be_v in_o heaven_n where_o we_o have_v a_o everlasting_a inheritance_n and_o a_o incorruptible_a treasure_n and_o be_v pilgrim_n upon_o the_o earth_n where_o we_o be_v hate_v and_o assault_v by_o satan_n the_o world_n and_o the_o flesh_n and_o be_v daily_a subject_n to_o sundry_a trouble_n and_o infirmity_n what_o folly_n therefore_o be_v it_o to_o place_v our_o happiness_n and_o felicity_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o set_v our_o heart_n upon_o earthly_a thing_n use_v 3_o three_o the_o people_n of_o god_n during_o their_o abode_n in_o the_o wilderness_n after_o they_o be_v call_v out_o of_o the_o bondage_n of_o egypt_n do_v not_o go_v forward_o towards_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n with_o a_o constant_a and_o a_o settle_a course_n but_o make_v many_o stay_v and_o delay_n sometime_o they_o march_v forward_o with_o a_o courageous_a resolution_n under_o the_o banner_n of_o god_n and_o his_o servant_n moses_n and_o sometime_o they_o retire_v backward_o by_o the_o way_n of_o the_o red_a sea_n towards_o egypt_n and_o often_o wish_v themselves_o again_o in_o egypt_n when_o they_o remember_v the_o fish_n which_o they_o do_v eat_v in_o egypt_n free_o the_o cucumber_n and_o the_o melon_n and_o the_o leek_n the_o onion_n and_o the_o garlic_n numb_a 14_o 25_o and_o 11_o 5._o these_o do_v the_o jew_n delight_n in_o to_o this_o day_n which_o make_v they_o loathsome_a and_o unsavoury_a which_o diet_n their_o father_n learned_a in_o egypt_n so_o it_o be_v with_o we_o be_v call_v with_o a_o holy_a call_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n true_a it_o be_v we_o do_v here_o run_v for_o a_o prize_n this_o life_n be_v the_o race_n the_o runner_n in_o it_o be_v every_o true_a christian_a the_o angel_n be_v the_o beholder_n eternal_a life_n be_v the_o crown_n for_o which_o we_o strive_v the_o high_a judge_n of_o all_o be_v god_n the_o enemy_n that_o seek_v to_o subvert_v and_o supplant_v we_o be_v satan_n the_o world_n and_o our_o corruption_n against_o which_o we_o be_v to_o wrestle_v with_o might_n and_o main_a as_o for_o life_n and_o death_n yet_o we_o begin_v slow_o and_o set_v forward_o faint_o and_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o way_n we_o make_v many_o startinghole_n that_o stay_v we_o in_o our_o course_n that_o we_o do_v not_o proceed_v with_o such_o a_o good_a courage_n and_o settle_a resolution_n as_o become_v us._n the_o truth_n hereof_o we_o may_v behold_v in_o all_o the_o faithful_a throughout_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n who_o have_v find_v hard_a beginning_n in_o their_o first_o calling_n a_o unwillingnes_n to_o yield_v a_o difficulty_n to_o resolve_v a_o untowardness_n to_o enter_v a_o backwardness_n to_o proceed_v and_o a_o dulness_n to_o persevere_v the_o lord_n appear_v unto_o moses_n in_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n out_o of_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o bush_n and_o call_v he_o to_o speak_v to_o pharaoh_n and_o to_o bring_v his_o people_n the_o child_n of_o israel_n out_o of_o egypt_n exodus_fw-la 3_o 2_o and_z 4_o 1_o but_o he_o make_v many_o exception_n and_o reply_n to_o the_o call_v of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o end_n to_o pull_v his_o neck_n out_o of_o the_o yoke_n sometime_o he_o allege_v theit_n infidelity_n that_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o god_n appear_v unto_o he_o sometime_o he_o object_v his_o own_o infirmity_n that_o he_o be_v not_o eloquent_a but_o slow_a of_o speech_n &_o slow_a of_o tongue_n and_o sometime_o he_o break_v out_o into_o open_a obstinacy_n deny_v to_o yield_v unto_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n say_v send_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o he_o who_o thou_o shall_v send_v so_o jeremy_n have_v many_o excuse_n and_o exception_n when_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o have_v sanctify_v and_o ordain_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n unto_o the_o nation_n for_o he_o reply_v by_o and_o by_o o_o lord_n god_n behold_v i_o can_v speak_v for_o i_o be_o a_o child_n jer_n 1_o 3_o the_o like_a we_o see_v in_o jonah_n who_o flee_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n because_o of_o the_o charge_n enjoin_v to_o he_o to_o go_v to_o nineve_v jonah_n 1_o 3._o lot_z albeit_o a_o righteous_a man_n who_o heart_n be_v grieve_v for_o the_o unclean_a conversation_n of_o the_o sodomite_n yet_o be_v call_v to_o depart_v out_o of_o sodom_n do_v linger_v and_o loiter_v behind_o in_o his_o departure_n his_o pleasure_n whisper_v he_o in_o one_o ear_n and_o his_o profit_n round_v he_o in_o the_o other_o so_o that_o he_o prolong_v the_o time_n and_o the_o angel_n catch_v he_o his_o wife_n and_o two_o daughter_n by_o the_o hand_n the_o lord_n be_v merciful_a unto_o he_o they_o bring_v he_o forth_o and_o set_v he_o without_o the_o city_n gen._n 19_o 16._o the_o disciple_n that_o be_v call_v of_o christ_n make_v sundry_a delay_n one_o will_v first_o go_v and_o bury_v his_o father_n and_o afterward_o he_o will_v return_v and_o attend_v upon_o christ_n luke_n 9_o 39_o another_o will_v first_o
and_o marrow_n and_o be_v a_o discerner_n of_o the_o thought_n and_o intent_n of_o the_o heart_n much_o more_o must_v we_o acknowledge_v the_o author_n and_o giver_n thereof_o to_o be_v the_o searcher_n of_o the_o heart_n so_o that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o creature_n that_o be_v not_o manifest_a in_o his_o sight_n but_o all_o thing_n be_v naked_a and_o open_a unto_o the_o eye_n of_o he_o with_o who_o we_o have_v to_o do_v hebrew_n 4_o 12_o 13._o will_v any_o that_o be_v bring_v before_o a_o judge_n and_o stand_v in_o his_o presence_n begin_v to_o mock_v and_o jest_v as_o with_o a_o child_n but_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o he_o will_v reward_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n genes_n 18_o 25_o and_o 21_o 49._o deuteronom_n 10_o 17_o act_v 17_o 31._o roman_n 2_o 5_o 6_o and_z 3_o 6._o so_o then_o they_o be_v desperate_o evil_a that_o dally_v with_o their_o own_o salvation_n halt_v on_o both_o side_n swim_v between_o two_o stream_n and_o lose_v their_o first_o love_n whereby_o they_o glorify_a god_n and_o adorn_v the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n last_o it_o be_v require_v of_o every_o good_a and_o use_v 3_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n to_o be_v zealous_a and_o amend_v this_o serve_v to_o give_v a_o watch_n word_n and_o warning_n to_o the_o great_a number_n of_o our_o professor_n among_o we_o such_o as_o be_v account_v the_o most_o peaceable_a of_o the_o kingdom_n honest_a man_n just_a dealer_n and_o civil_a liver_n who_o can_v say_v with_o the_o pharisee_n in_o the_o gospel_n they_o be_v no_o thief_n nor_o adulterer_n nor_o drunkard_n nor_o extortioner_n they_o hurt_v no_o man_n they_o wrong_v no_o man_n they_o mean_v well_o to_o all_o they_o follow_v their_o business_n quiet_o they_o live_v among_o their_o neighbour_n peaceable_o they_o be_v no_o meddler_n nor_o busie-bodye_n in_o other_o man_n matter_n these_o think_v themselves_o therefore_o to_o be_v in_o good_a case_n to_o be_v assure_v of_o god_n love_n and_o favour_n to_o need_v no_o particular_a repentance_n yet_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n they_o have_v no_o zeal_n nor_o care_n of_o religion_n in_o they_o but_o some_o will_v say_v be_v not_o the_o former_a point_n that_o you_o have_v name_v good_a thing_n do_v you_o shall_v pass_v but_o no_o far_o and_o here_o shall_v thy_o proud_a wave_n be_v stay_v job_n 38_o 11._o use_v 1_o this_o serve_v to_o reprove_v the_o curse_a sect_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n who_o bring_v in_o a_o confusion_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o set_v the_o heaven_n out_o of_o their_o course_n and_o remove_v the_o earth_n out_o of_o his_o place_n and_o break_v up_o the_o bar_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o turn_v the_o order_n that_o god_n have_v settle_v upside_o down_o for_o they_o can_v abide_v no_o private_a man_n possession_n but_o will_v have_v all_o thing_n common_a thus_o they_o think_v to_o make_v themselves_o like_a to_o the_o apostle_n but_o indeed_o they_o thereby_o resemble_v rather_o some_o of_o the_o philosopher_n if_o we_o shall_v see_v a_o man_n come_v into_o his_o neighbour_n ground_n &_o pull_v up_o the_o hedge_n tear_v up_o the_o enclosure_n rend_v up_o the_o fence_n fill_v up_o the_o ditch_n take_v away_o the_o pale_n through_o down_o the_o wall_n and_o remove_v the_o bound_n we_o will_v hold_v he_o a_o enemy_n to_o humane_a society_n and_o to_o the_o express_a ordinance_n of_o god_n for_o wherefore_o have_v god_n sever_v and_o divide_a people_n from_o people_n with_o bro●d_a sea_n deep_a river_n and_o high_a mountain_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o pass_v those_o bound_n nor_o invade_v the_o possession_n of_o other_o and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o in_o this_o place_n he_o bound_v so_o exact_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n and_o teach_v they_o where_o it_o shall_v begin_v and_o where_o it_o shall_v end_v on_o the_o east-side_n and_o on_o the_o west_n on_o the_o north-side_n and_o on_o the_o south_n and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o joshua_n the_o several_a bound_n &_o limit_n of_o every_o tribe_n be_v several_o and_o large_o express_v and_o describe_v hence_o it_o be_v that_o solomon_n say_v prou._n 22_o 28._o remove_v not_o the_o ancient_a landmark_n which_o thy_o father_n have_v set_v this_o be_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n a_o law_n under_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n to_o continue_v for_o ever_o true_a it_o be_v the_o romanist_n will_v conclude_v from_o hence_o object_n that_o their_o error_n which_o have_v get_v foot_n for_o a_o few_o hundred_o year_n &_o climb_v up_o into_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n aught_o to_o prevail_v and_o take_v place_n but_o this_o be_v no_o better_a than_o to_o draw_v the_o word_n from_o the_o literal_a meaning_n to_o a_o allegory_n answer_n which_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o own_o school_n can_v be_v sound_a aquinas_n tho_n aquinas_n again_o howsoever_o in_o worldly_a possession_n prescription_n of_o time_n may_v carry_v some_o credit_n and_o be_v of_o some_o force_n judg._n 11_o 26_o yet_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o god_n no_o time_n though_o the_o hair_n be_v never_o so_o gray_a can_v prescribe_v against_o the_o ancient_a of_o day_n 22._o dan._n 7_o 22._o for_o if_o it_o be_v a_o prerogative_n royal_a in_o a_o temporal_a kingdom_n as_o the_o lawyer_n teach_v that_o nullum_fw-la tempus_fw-la occurrit_fw-la regi_fw-la that_o be_v no_o time_n shall_v bar_v the_o king_n nor_o prejudice_n he_o of_o his_o right_n then_o much_o more_o must_v we_o hold_v that_o no_o time_n shall_v bar_v the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o lord_n of_o his_o right_n but_o his_o law_n must_v take_v place_n for_o ever_o against_o all_o other_o law_n custom_n immunity_n privilege_n and_o prescription_n whatsoever_o last_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o we_o profess_v be_v more_o ancient_a than_o all_o the_o device_n and_o invention_n of_o man_n which_o have_v be_v receyve_v and_o believe_v from_o the_o infancy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o the_o late_a and_o new_o start_v up_o religion_n of_o popery_n must_v rise_v up_o before_o the_o hoary_a head_n thereof_o as_o the_o young_a man_n be_v command_v to_o honour_v the_o face_n of_o the_o old_a man_n moreover_o object_n whereas_o they_o allege_v this_o and_o urge_v it_o to_o procure_v credit_n and_o authority_n unto_o the_o work_n and_o writing_n of_o man_n as_o if_o the_o say_n of_o the_o father_n be_v to_o stand_v for_o a_o law_n it_o be_v of_o no_o great_a weight_n than_o the_o former_a and_o albeit_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o say_v let_v god_n be_v true_a and_o every_o man_n a_o liar_n rom._n 3_o 4_o yet_o we_o answer_v answer_n far_o that_o the_o father_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n against_o they_o and_o refuse_v to_o be_v witness_n for_o they_o as_o may_v easy_o appear_v in_o the_o main_a controversy_n between_o they_o and_o us._n again_o as_o they_o dissent_v from_o they_o so_o sometime_o they_o dissent_v from_o themselves_o last_o all_o the_o prophet_n &_o apostle_n as_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n stand_v on_o our_o side_n and_o we_o teach_v nothing_o but_o what_o we_o have_v receyve_v of_o they_o and_o they_o be_v our_o warrant_n to_o return_v then_o unto_o the_o former_a point_n we_o see_v the_o anabaptist_n be_v just_o reproove_v who_o can_v abide_v any_o bound_n or_o buttelle_n or_o landmark_n neither_o that_o any_o shall_v be_v master_n of_o his_o own_o possession_n but_o will_v have_v all_o go_v to_o spoil_v and_o havoc_n and_o as_o god_n will_v have_v just_a weight_n and_o measure_v observe_v between_o man_n and_o man_n that_o they_o may_v buy_v &_o sell_v one_o with_o another_o so_o he_o will_v have_v bound_n and_o mark_n also_o unchanged_a that_o equity_n and_o uprightness_n in_o all_o our_o deal_n may_v take_v place_n for_o this_o cause_n moses_n say_v curse_v be_v he_o that_o remove_v his_o neighbour_n landmark_n and_o all_o the_o people_n shall_v say_v amen_n deut_n 27_o 17_o and_o 19_o 14._o 2._o diony_n halic_fw-mi antiq_fw-la lib._n 2._o the_o very_a heathen_a by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n see_v that_o such_o mark_n ought_v to_o be_v inviolable_a which_o of_o old_a time_n have_v be_v set_v in_o inheritance_n and_o they_o all_o thought_n that_o god_n himself_o be_v wrong_v and_o injury_v in_o such_o false_a deal_n and_o because_o it_o shall_v be_v account_v a_o holy_a matter_n they_o make_v a_o god_n of_o it_o according_a to_o their_o common_a manner_n which_o they_o call_v terminus_n and_o dedicate_v a_o feast_n to_o he_o which_o they_o call_v terminalia_fw-la true_a it_o be_v this_o be_v a_o devilish_a invention_n to_o set_v up_o a_o idol_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o equity_n yet_o nature_n teach_v &_o engrave_v this_o
principle_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n that_o if_o mark_n and_o bound_n be_v not_o keep_v and_o maintain_v a_o horrible_a confusion_n and_o disorder_n of_o all_o thing_n will_v follow_v in_o humane_a society_n and_o no_o man_n can_v know_v what_o be_v his_o own_o neither_o possess_v that_o which_o he_o have_v in_o peace_n second_o this_o condemn_v all_o encroach_a use_n 2_o &_o usurpation_n one_o upon_o another_o in_o kingdom_n and_o lordship_n as_o well_o as_o in_o private_a possession_n when_o man_n can_v be_v content_a with_o their_o own_o but_o will_v stretch_v the_o wing_n of_o their_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n far_o moses_n say_v notable_o in_o his_o song_n deut._n 32_o verse_n 8_o that_o the_o most_o high_o divide_v to_o the_o nation_n their_o inheritance_n when_o he_o separate_v the_o son_n of_o adam_n he_o set_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o people_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n howbeit_o the_o ambition_n and_o unsatiable_a greediness_n of_o great_a man_n have_v put_v all_o out_o of_o order_n and_o nothing_o be_v so_o holy_a which_o can_v stay_v they_o creep_v and_o encroach_a upon_o the_o bound_n and_o border_n of_o their_o neighbour_n thus_o they_o break_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n in_o seek_v to_o enlarge_v and_o increase_v their_o own_o dominion_n these_o just_o incur_v the_o curse_n of_o the_o prophet_n woe_n unto_o they_o that_o join_v house_n to_o house_n and_o lay_v field_n to_o field_n till_o there_o be_v no_o place_n that_o they_o may_v be_v place_v alone_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o earth_n esay_n 5_o 8._o hab._n 2_o 9_o 12._o jer._n 22.13_o mich._n 2_o 2._o for_o wherefore_o have_v god_n separate_v nation_n from_o nation_n and_o one_o kingdom_n from_o another_o people_n but_o that_o all_o shall_v live_v quiet_o &_o communicate_v one_o with_o another_o &_o that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o confusion_n or_o division_n and_o therefore_o ought_v all_o to_o be_v content_v with_o their_o own_o bound_n god_n have_v make_v they_o great_a but_o they_o always_o seek_v to_o make_v themselves_o great_a he_o have_v set_v they_o bound_n but_o they_o will_v know_v no_o bound_n so_o then_o from_o hence_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o the_o war_n which_o be_v take_v in_o hand_n upon_o ambition_n and_o the_o enlarge_n of_o the_o bound_n of_o their_o empire_n only_o be_v a_o despight_v of_o god_n a_o shed_n of_o innocent_a blood_n and_o a_o pervert_v of_o the_o order_n which_o he_o have_v set_v in_o nature_n and_o nation_n every_o man_n therefore_o aught_o to_o abide_v in_o his_o own_o possession_n and_o inheritance_n &_o not_o to_o trouble_v or_o molest_v one_o another_o the_o ambition_n of_o nimrod_n first_o begin_v with_o set_v up_o the_o kingdom_n of_o babylon_n 10._o gen._n 10_o 10._o and_o afterward_o many_o follow_v his_o example_n become_v desirous_a to_o win_v one_o from_o another_o so_o it_o be_v with_o chedarlaomor_n who_o spread_v out_o his_o arm_n and_o subdue_v the_o king_n of_o sodom_n &_o gomorrha_n gen._n 14_o 4._o thus_o man_n pervert_v the_o order_n that_o god_n have_v set_v in_o the_o world_n like_o unsatiable_a gulf_n and_o mighty_a hunter_n before_o the_o lord_n that_o hunt_v for_o the_o precious_a life_n of_o man_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o be_v pride_n and_o ambition_n we_o all_o know_v how_o in_o the_o begin_n the_o earth_n be_v cover_v with_o water_n and_o natural_o the_o sea_n will_v stand_v above_o the_o mountain_n so_o that_o all_o will_v be_v overflowen_v it_o be_v the_o special_a goodness_n of_o god_n and_o a_o testimony_n of_o his_o almighty_a power_n that_o the_o dry_a land_n appear_v whereon_o we_o set_v foot_v and_o build_v and_o plant_v and_o dwell_v &_o commerce_n one_o with_o another_o see_v then_o we_o live_v here_o and_o that_o the_o earth_n do_v succour_n and_o sustain_v we_o let_v we_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o god_n show_v his_o pity_n towards_o we_o let_v we_o serve_v he_o with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n and_o with_o a_o willing_a mind_n and_o let_v all_o man_n content_v themselves_o with_o that_o which_o they_o have_v without_o intermeddle_v within_o the_o bound_n of_o other_o man_n and_o as_o he_o have_v restrain_v we_o by_o sundry_a closure_n &_o as_o it_o be_v lock_v we_o up_o with_o bar_n not_o to_o be_v break_v so_o let_v we_o not_o seek_v to_o break_v they_o and_o so_o encroach_v upon_o that_o which_o he_o have_v not_o give_v unto_o us._n use_v 3_o three_o this_o reprove_v the_o greedy_a and_o covetous_a affection_n of_o private_a man_n that_o covet_v to_o be_v rich_a they_o care_v not_o by_o what_o mean_v but_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o desire_n of_o get_v gain_n be_v settle_v in_o they_o they_o be_v inflame_v to_o rake_v to_o themselves_o by_o hook_n or_o by_o crook_n all_o man_n do_v shun_v and_o abhor_v the_o name_n of_o thief_n and_o robber_n they_o can_v abide_v they_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o sue_v they_o that_o brand_v they_o with_o such_o odious_a title_n but_o if_o we_o detest_v they_o indeed_o we_o must_v lay_v aside_o covetousness_n also_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o solomon_n say_v prou._n 15_o 27._o he_o that_o be_v greedy_a of_o gain_n trouble_v his_o own_o house_n but_o he_o that_o hate_v gift_n shall_v live_v covetousness_n be_v a_o corrupt_a affection_n of_o the_o mind_n greedy_o desire_v and_o too_o much_o gape_v after_o the_o riches_n of_o this_o life_n they_o dream_v of_o long_a life_n forget_v that_o no_o man_n life_n consist_v in_o the_o abundance_n of_o his_o riches_n luke_n 12_o 15._o they_o think_v they_o shall_v exceed_o profit_v they_o but_o by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n they_o turn_v to_o their_o hurt_n they_o think_v they_o will_v be_v as_o a_o shield_n or_o buckler_n to_o defend_v they_o from_o the_o injury_n of_o this_o life_n but_o they_o be_v turn_v into_o sword_n whereby_o they_o be_v wound_v and_o destroy_v they_o have_v conceyve_v a_o strong_a opinion_n that_o they_o will_v be_v as_o a_o wall_n on_o every_o side_n to_o underprop_v the_o house_n but_o they_o prove_v as_o a_o double_a cannon_n to_o cast_v it_o down_o to_o the_o ground_n as_o than_o he_o that_o eat_v moderate_o be_v nourish_v by_o the_o meat_n and_o it_o abide_v in_o the_o stomach_n but_o when_o it_o be_v take_v immoderate_o the_o stomach_n be_v choke_v and_o it_o be_v vomit_v up_o again_o so_o he_o that_o greedy_o heap_v up_o riches_n shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o vomit_v they_o up_o again_o job_n 20_o 15._o covetousness_n therefore_o be_v a_o sin_n when_o a_o man_n be_v discontent_v with_o the_o estate_n wherein_o god_n have_v set_v he_o and_o with_o those_o thing_n that_o god_n have_v give_v for_o the_o sustenance_n of_o this_o present_a life_n when_o he_o murmure_v against_o god_n &_o the_o more_o he_o have_v the_o more_o he_o desire_v when_o he_o heap_v they_o up_o and_o keep_v they_o and_o bring_v they_o not_o forth_o to_o any_o godly_a or_o necessary_a use_n but_o he_o distru_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n and_o put_v his_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o his_o riches_n as_o if_o he_o can_v not_o live_v with_o out_o abundance_n of_o they_o neither_o be_n sustain_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n covetousness_n motive_n to_o avoid_v covetousness_n the_o scripture_n offer_v sundry_a good_a meditation_n to_o move_v we_o to_o avoid_v covetousness_n first_o because_o it_o be_v forbid_v of_o god_n matth._n 6_o 19_o luke_n 19_o 13._o hebr._n 13_o 5._o his_o word_n alone_o ought_v to_o be_v of_o great_a force_n to_o persuade_v we_o if_o we_o have_v no_o far_a reason_n second_o because_o it_o be_v no_o less_o sin_n than_o a_o secret_a kind_n of_o idolatry_n col._n 3_o 5_o as_o the_o covetous_a person_n be_v a_o idolater_n because_o he_o trust_v in_o his_o riches_n not_o in_o the_o live_a god_n eph._n 5_o 5._o mark_v 10_o 24._o three_o it_o can_v agree_v with_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n but_o one_o of_o they_o expel_v another_o as_o it_o be_v with_o contrary_n with_o cold_a and_o heat_n with_o light_n and_o darkness_n psal_n 119_o 36._o matth._n 6_o 24._o luke_n 16_o 13._o you_o can_v serve_v god_n and_o mammon_n four_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o root_n of_o all_o evil_a and_o that_o because_o it_o drive_v and_o enforce_v to_o many_o sin_n to_o apostasy_n to_o iniquity_n to_o lie_v to_o treachery_n 1_o tim._n 6_o 10._o 2_o king_n 5_o 22._o mat._n 28_o 13_o 14_o 15._o five_o no_o man_n life_n consist_v in_o the_o multitude_n of_o his_o possession_n lu._n 12_o 15._o six_o we_o be_v call_v to_o a_o better_a life_n and_o we_o have_v a_o kingdom_n promise_v unto_o we_o that_o can_v be_v shake_v reserve_v for_o we_o in_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v set_v our_o affection_n above_o where_o christ_n sit_v
it_o be_v say_v of_o kaine_n when_o he_o slay_v his_o brother_n that_o he_o be_v of_o that_o evil_a one_o 1_o john_n 3_o 12._o this_o serve_v for_o reproof_n both_o of_o error_n in_o use_n 1_o doctrine_n and_o of_o corruption_n in_o life_n and_o first_o it_o convince_v the_o popish_a doctrine_n which_o give_v way_n to_o man_n corrupt_a nature_n more_o they_o the_o word_n will_v bear_v for_o in_o the_o point_n of_o love_v our_o enemy_n they_o come_v near_o unto_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o pharisy_n because_o they_o teach_v that_o howsoever_o a_o man_n be_v always_o bind_v not_o to_o hate_v his_o enemy_n yet_o to_o love_v he_o he_o be_v not_o always_o bind_v no_o marvel_n if_o these_o man_n do_v hold_v it_o lawful_a to_o break_v promise_n with_o a_o heretic_n such_o as_o they_o account_v we_o to_o be_v but_o false_o this_o be_v a_o easy_a kind_n of_o religion_n and_o well_o please_v to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o it_o may_v not_o seem_v strange_a though_o multitude_n be_v join_v unto_o their_o church_n for_o what_o carnal_a man_n be_v there_o almost_o that_o will_v not_o be_v a_o papist_n when_o he_o may_v be_v hold_v to_o be_v religious_a &_o yet_o be_v avenge_v upon_o his_o enemy_n also_o indeed_o they_o set_v down_o two_o case_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v think_v to_o be_v too_o profane_a and_o their_o religion_n a_o merciless_a religion_n wherein_o a_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o love_v his_o enemy_n first_o in_o extreme_a necessity_n when_o he_o be_v in_o present_a danger_n of_o his_o life_n than_o he_o be_v to_o be_v help_v and_o relieve_v as_o it_o be_v with_o he_o that_o fall_v among_o thief_n and_o lay_v wound_v and_o half_a dead_a as_o luke_n 10._o verse_n 30._o second_o in_o case_n of_o scandal_n when_o by_o not_o help_v or_o succour_v we_o shall_v give_v offence_n unto_o other_o out_o of_o these_o two_o case_n they_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v a_o counsel_n and_o degree_n of_o perfection_n to_o love_v our_o enemy_n matth._n 5._o ver_fw-la 44._o which_o some_o particular_a person_n as_o monk_n &_o friar_n and_o such_o cloister_n man_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o observe_v who_o have_v forsooth_o obtain_v a_o extraordinary_a gift_n to_o deny_v themselves_o but_o if_o this_o be_v a_o counsel_n than_o the_o rest_n of_o christ_n saying_n in_o that_o chapter_n i_o say_v unto_o you_o whosoever_o be_v angry_a with_o his_o brother_n without_o a_o cause_n shall_v be_v in_o danger_n of_o the_o judgement_n verse_n 22._o and_o whosoever_o look_v on_o a_o woman_n to_o lust_n after_o she_o have_v commit_v adultery_n as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o verse_n 28._o and_o so_o likewise_o of_o the_o rest_n in_o verse_n 32.34_o 37_o shall_v be_v counsel_n also_o howbeit_o the_o say_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v a_o command_a genesis_n chap_v 1._o verse_n 3._o also_o psalm_n 33._o verse_n 9_o wherefore_o the_o popish_a devotion_n be_v a_o religion_n wherein_o a_o man_n may_v go_v to_o hell_n with_o ease_n maintain_v a_o most_o devilish_a and_o damnable_a doctrine_n clean_o contrary_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n limit_v and_o restrain_v that_o which_o christ_n have_v extend_v general_o unto_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n i_o say_v unto_o you_o love_v your_o enemy_n and_o if_o you_o love_v they_o only_o that_o love_n you_o what_o singular_a thing_n do_v you_o again_o this_o reprove_v such_o as_o think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o note_n of_o a_o high_a and_o generous_a nature_n and_o of_o a_o noble_a and_o notable_a spirit_n to_o put_v uppe_o no_o wrong_a and_o to_o seek_v revenge_n even_o for_o every_o trifle_n and_o small_a matter_n to_o do_v as_o little_a wrong_n as_o they_o can_v but_o to_o resolve_v to_o put_v up_o none_o these_o account_n it_o a_o great_a honour_n and_o glory_n for_o a_o man_n to_o pursue_v his_o enemy_n with_o hatred_n wicked_a lamech_v descend_v from_o the_o curse_a race_n of_o cain_n think_v it_o a_o argument_n of_o virtue_n and_o valour_n and_o a_o point_n of_o much_o credit_n and_o reputation_n unto_o he_o to_o be_v able_a to_o take_v revenge_n yea_o even_o seventy_o time_n seven_o time_n of_o any_o that_o shall_v offend_v and_o provoke_v he_o any_o way_n whereas_o christ_n tell_v peter_n a_o contrary_a lesson_n that_o be_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o great_a honour_n and_o dignity_n before_o god_n and_o all_o good_a man_n to_o forgive_v till_o seventy_o time_n seven_o time_n and_o that_o in_o one_o day_n luke_n 17_o 4._o matth._n 18_o 22._o it_o become_v all_o christian_n therefore_o rather_o to_o follow_v the_o precept_n of_o christ_n than_o the_o practice_n of_o lamech_v and_o to_o learn_v of_o solomon_n prou._n 19_o 11_o that_o the_o discretion_n of_o a_o man_n defer_v his_o anger_n and_o it_o be_v his_o glory_n to_o pass_v over_o a_o transgression_n and_o chapter_n 14_o 29_o and_o 16_o 32_o he_o that_o be_v slow_a to_o anger_n be_v better_a than_o the_o mighty_a and_o he_o that_o rule_v his_o spirit_n than_o he_o that_o take_v a_o city_n if_o then_o we_o desire_v true_a honour_n and_o to_o be_v account_v man_n in_o the_o world_n let_v we_o imitate_v our_o heavenly_a father_n who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v greedy_a of_o revenge_n and_o hasty_a to_o anger_n and_o to_o take_v punishment_n that_o he_o make_v the_o sun_n to_o shine_v and_o the_o rain_n to_o fall_v upon_o good_a and_o bad_a be_v slow_a to_o anger_n and_o of_o great_a kindness_n the_o more_o noble_a sort_n of_o creature_n be_v not_o desirous_a of_o revenge_n but_o only_o the_o base_a and_o vile_a noisome_a flee_v wasp_n hornet_n bee_n and_o such_o like_a among_o man_n none_o more_o testy_a and_o subject_a to_o anger_v then_o sick_a person_n in_o their_o great_a fit_n who_o break_v out_o into_o sundry_a passion_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o weakness_n which_o they_o will_v never_o do_v in_o their_o health_n when_o they_o have_v the_o use_n of_o reason_n let_v we_o account_v it_o to_o be_v a_o shame_n and_o reproach_n to_o be_v like_o the_o weak_a thing_n and_o rather_o imitate_v the_o noble_a creature_n which_o be_v slow_a to_o anger_n and_o moderate_v their_o passion_n with_o discretion_n joseph_n in_o the_o court_n of_o pharaoh_n no_o doubt_n be_v a_o honourable_a man_n he_o be_v next_o in_o the_o state_n to_o the_o king_n he_o have_v what_o he_o will_v at_o his_o commandment_n and_o at_o his_o word_n be_v all_o the_o people_n rule_v gen._n 42_o 40_o yet_o consider_v that_o he_o place_v not_o any_o part_n of_o his_o honour_n in_o take_v revenge_n of_o his_o brethren_n that_o have_v sell_v he_o as_o a_o slave_n to_o a_o idolatrous_a nation_n and_o seek_v after_o his_o life_n but_o in_o forgive_n of_o they_o and_o reward_v they_o good_a for_o evil_n genesis_n 50._o for_o when_o they_o see_v that_o their_o father_n be_v dead_a know_v what_o they_o have_v deserve_v and_o fear_v the_o face_n of_o joseph_n they_o say_v joseph_n will_v peradventure_o hate_v we_o and_o will_v certain_o quit_v we_o all_o the_o evil_n which_o we_o do_v unto_o he_o gen._n 50_o 15_o 17_o and_o they_o desire_v he_o to_o forgive_v the_o trespass_n do_v against_o he_o verse_n 17._o joseph_n weep_v when_o they_o speak_v unto_o he_o and_o say_v fear_v not_o for_o be_o i_o in_o place_n of_o god_n but_o as_o for_o you_o you_o think_v evil_a against_o i_o but_o god_n mean_v it_o unto_o good_a &c_n &c_n now_o therefore_o fear_v not_o i_o will_v nourish_v you_o and_o your_o little_a one_o and_o he_o comfort_v they_o and_o speak_v kind_o unto_o they_o david_n be_v a_o honourable_a man_n yet_o we_o know_v how_o he_o deal_v with_o shimei_n though_o he_o be_v king_n and_o want_v not_o other_o to_o kindle_v the_o coal_n of_o wrath_n and_o revenge_n against_o he_o yea_o though_o the_o wretch_n have_v cast_v stone_n at_o he_o and_o curse_v he_o with_o a_o horrible_a curse_n yet_o afterward_o he_o pardon_v and_o forgive_v he_o and_o seal_v his_o pardon_n with_o a_o oath_n 2_o samuel_n chap_v 19_o verse_n 23._o the_o like_a example_n we_o may_v see_v in_o mephibosheth_n the_o son_n of_o jonathan_n that_o do_v eat_v bread_n at_o david_n own_o table_n show_v he_o favour_n for_o his_o father_n sake_n although_o he_o be_v malicious_o &_o mischeevous_o slander_v by_o ziba_n his_o servant_n and_o that_o of_o no_o less_o crime_n then_o high_a treason_n against_o the_o king_n as_o if_o he_o look_v that_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n shall_v restore_v he_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o father_n 2_o sam._n 16_o 3._o yet_o he_o never_o seek_v any_o revenge_n of_o he_o but_o be_v content_a to_o part_v from_o his_o own_o right_n for_o joy_n that_o the_o king_n be_v return_v in_o peace_n to_o his_o own_o house_n 2_o sam._n 19_o 30._o
1214_o judgement_n corrupt_v p._n 218._o judgement_n be_v instruction_n to_o other_o 526._o none_n can_v be_v free_a from_o they_o that_o sin_n p._n 474_o b._n jubilee_n why_o institute_v p._n 1259._o jubilee_n popish_a p._n 1262_o b_o justification_n by_o faith_n p._n 815_o b._n 817_o b._n k_o kingdom_n of_o god_n first_o seek_v 61._o it_o be_v require_v of_o all_o 226_o b_o 258._o it_o be_v the_o root_n of_o obedience_n ibid._n king_n and_o prince_n our_o duty_n to_o they_o 664_o why_o we_o be_v to_o pray_v for_o they_o p._n 666._o knowledge_n all_o must_v have_v 647._o little_a be_v in_o the_o romish_a church_n ibid._n knowledge_n of_o god_n twofold_n 23_o a_o it_o must_v be_v seek_v 27_o a_o wherein_o it_o consist_v p._n 27_o b._n l_o land_n divide_v why_o the_o high_a priest_n help_v be_v use_v therein_o p._n 1232_o a_o law_n how_o give_v to_o the_o just_a p._n 182_o a_o law_n how_o we_o may_v go_v unto_o 1123_o how_o it_o may_v be_v use_v lawful_o ibid._n lawful_a to_o lay_v up_o 101._o sometime_o to_o reproove_v by_o name_n 1084._o rule_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o it_o p._n 1085_o b._n lawful_a thing_n not_o to_o be_v do_v unlawful_o p._n 1249._o learn_v a_o great_a gift_n 707_o a._n without_o conscience_n a_o great_a plague_n 707_o b_o with_o it_o it_o do_v great_a good_a ibid._n lent_n p._n 1151_o b._n leper_n not_o suffer_v in_o the_o host_n p._n 256_o b_o leprosy_n of_o three_o sort_n p._n 757_o less_o the_o thing_n be_v the_o great_a the_o sin_n p._n 638._o levites_n what_o their_o office_n be_v 144_o b_o why_o number_v from_o a_o month_n old_a p._n 166._o leviticall_a priesthood_n pass_v from_o one_o to_o another_o p._n 771._o liberal_a diet_n provide_v for_o god_n child_n p._n 531_o b._n liberality_n commend_v 95_o objection_n hinder_v it_o 96._o how_o we_o be_v encourage_v unto_o it_o 393_o time_n of_o death_n not_o fit_a for_o a_o p._n 449_o a._n life_n of_o diverse_a sort_n 49_o a_o it_o be_v maintain_v by_o god_n 747_o without_o mean_n ibid._n lord_n thing_n be_v in_o 3_o respect_n p._n 145_o b._n love_n 750_o it_o must_v be_v to_o all_o the_o creature_n 758_o b_o such_o reprove_v be_v without_o it_o p._n 759._o love_n of_o brethren_n 629_o b_o how_o to_o try_v whether_o in_o we_o what_o fruit_n it_o have_v p._n 182_o a._n love_n of_o god_n to_o he_o must_v move_v we_o to_o mercy_n p._n 757_o b._n m_o maccabee_n no_o scriptute_fw-la p._n 1116_o magistracy_n a_o great_a burden_n p._n 534._o magistrate_n must_v do_v justice_n 58_o b._n 60_o a._n punish_v breach_n of_o the_o first_o table_n ibid._n they_o be_v needful_a for_o the_o people_n p._n 63_o b_o 534_o a._n magistrate_n must_v further_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n 202_o their_o office_n 366_o 428_o 429_o 430._o to_o they_o we_o must_v seek_v in_o wrong_n 1211_o they_o must_v be_v upright_o 958_o b._n 1122_o draw_v other_o by_o their_o example_n 432_o how_o qualify_v 1122_o b_o fear_v for_o do_v evil_a 1059_o b_o zealous_a in_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n p._n 1072._o magistrate_n have_v their_o call_n immediate_o from_o god_n 1134_o papist_n be_v enemy_n to_o they_o ibid._n master_n a_o magistrate_n in_o his_o own_o house_n p._n 1242._o magistrate_n duty_n p._n 1256._o maintenance_n of_o the_o ministry_n p._n 446_o 193_o b._n malice_n of_o enemy_n unsatiable_a p._n 1044._o manichees_n p._n 7_o b._n manna_n what_o p._n 531._o manslaughter_n do_v of_o ignorance_n a_o sin_n p._n 1248_o a_o marriage_n in_o may_n 1144_o of_o cousin_n german_n p._n 1263_o marriage_n not_o to_o be_v enforce_v p._n 1257_o b._n marriage_n in_o their_o own_o tribe_n neither_o forbid_v nor_o be_v observe_v p._n 1258_o b._n mass_n 1138._o discommodity_n thereof_o p._n 1220._o master_n must_v reprove_v their_o servant_n p._n 541._o matter_n of_o god_n unknown_a till_o he_o reveal_v they_o p._n 984_o matrimony_n p._n 387._o mean_v to_o keep_v we_o from_o sin_n p._n 577_o 743._o mean_n extraordinary_a not_o to_o be_v look_v after_o p._n 744_o meekness_n p._n 367_o 560_o b._n merit_n p._n 451._o minister_n must_v be_v prove_v 474_o b._n how_o practise_v among_o papist_n 475._o they_o be_v god_n trumpet_n 503_o what_o be_v do_v to_o they_o be_v do_v to_o god_n p._n 328._o minister_n must_v deliver_v god_n word_n 970._o teach_v orderly_o 13_o a._n 168_o b._n work_n of_o their_o call_n 49_o b_o idle_a be_v reprove_v 48_o b._n 189_o 345_o 770._o &_o be_v worldly_a 49._o swallow_v many_o live_n 50_o a_o motive_n to_o their_o duty_n 126_o b._n they_o must_v look_v to_o themselves_o p._n 51_o b._n minister_n must_v be_v diligent_a in_o preach_v 192_o have_v a_o care_n of_o all_o the_o flock_n 199_o b._n 699._o what_o title_n they_o have_v 213_o b._n man_n of_o gravity_n 216_o b._n they_o must_v teach_v with_o reverence_n 231._o come_v prepare_v 232._o not_o reprove_v sin_n in_o jest_n ibid._n must_v be_v understand_v 233_o a._n 700._o continue_v in_o teach_v page_n 236_o 237._o not_o broach_v new_a doctrine_n ibid._n minister_n must_v be_v unblameable_a 467_o b._n they_o be_v god_n servant_n 73._o when_o not_o regard_v god_n deal_v with_o man_n 612._o they_o be_v in_o special_a favour_n with_o god_n 651._o such_o as_o be_v of_o mean_n must_v be_v regard_v 706._o 708_o b._n god_n gift_n p._n 695._o ministry_n must_v be_v plant_v among_o all_o people_n it_o be_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n 120._o 671._o not_o base_a 160_o a._n it_o be_v a_o charge_n 188_o b._n a_o high_a call_n 206_o b._n how_o it_o may_v be_v desire_v 208_o a._n the_o contempt_n of_o it_o ibid._n it_o be_v bless_v of_o god_n 434._o when_o despise_a god_n be_v despise_v 653_o b._n their_o danger_n that_o want_v it_o 672._o how_o to_o promote_v it_o p._n 697._o ministry_n shall_v never_o decay_v 804_o the_o end_n be_v edification_n p._n 707_o a._n minister_n must_v be_v provide_v of_o all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o they_o p._n 1237._o miracle_n what_o 688_o b._n transubstantiation_n no_o miracle_n 960_o b._n god_n only_o can_v work_v they_o 679_o b._n 906_o b._n they_o be_v wrought_v open_o 688._o misery_n of_o the_o church_n must_v move_v pity_n page_n 753_o 755_o misery_n of_o our_o brethren_n we_o must_v have_v a_o fellow-feeling_n p._n 1203._o monkish_a vow_n p._n 420._o morning_n sacrifice_n p._n 1136_o 1137._o moses_n whether_o free_a from_o doubt_v p._n 538_o b._n moses_n his_o wife_n who_o 549._o what_o his_o sin_n be_v p._n 725_o motive_n for_o minister_n to_o be_v diligent_a in_o their_o call_n p._n 1239_o b._n multiplication_n of_o the_o israelite_n p._n 39_o multitude_n no_o note_n of_o the_o church_n 177_o b._n see_v universality_n wicked_a boast_n thereof_o 582._o common_o they_o be_v worst_a 581_o b._n they_o can_v make_v evil_a to_o be_v good_a p._n 583_o b._n multitude_n lie_v open_a to_o judgement_n 1118_o b._n they_o must_v be_v reprove_v 119._o murmur_a 243_o b._n 730_o b._n 523_o b._n how_o to_o prevent_v it_o 524_o b._n remedy_n against_o it_o p._n 732._o murder_v a_o heinous_a sin_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n p._n 1244_o n_n name_n of_o the_o faithful_a know_v to_o god_n p._n 20._o nature_n content_a with_o little_a p._n 98_o b._n nature_n god_n work_v above_o p._n 905_o b._n natural_a estate_n p._n 887_o b_o 874._o natural_a reason_n enemy_n to_o faith_n p._n 539._o natural_o we_o harken_v to_o seducer_n 591._o we_o wax_v weary_a of_o god_n gift_n p._n 794._o natural_o all_o man_n be_v prone_a to_o revenge_v p._n 1240_o b._n nazarite_n the_o sort_n of_o they_o 415._o meaning_n thereof_o p._n 1164._o necessity_n dispense_v with_o holy_a duty_n 486_o a._n we_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o to_o make_v it_o p._n 487._o a._n neglect_v of_o god_n worship_n p._n 489_o b._n 490._o new_a man_n p._n 1145._o new_a moon_n see_v feast_n nonresidency_a 190_o 191_o 345._o how_o colour_v p._n 200_o 711._o note_v of_o the_o church_n not_o outward_a glory_n p._n 1051_o b._n novation_n p._n 793_o b._n book_n of_o number_n authorize_v out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n p._n 2._o number_v of_o the_o people_n 1103._o how_o unlawful_a p._n 29_o o_o oath_n when_o unlawful_a 370._o who_o oath_n may_v be_v refuse_v 372._o what_o it_o be_v 374_o b._n the_o author_n of_o it_o 375._o the_o part_n ibid._n the_o form_n and_o end_n ib._n 376_o b._n the_o property_n p._n 377_o a._n obedience_n require_v of_o all_o 29_o a_o 683_o b._n ground_v upon_o knowledge_n 33_o b._n rule_n direct_v it_o 36._o it_o must_v be_v yield_v to_o all_o 109_o b._n the_o popish_a not_o to_o be_v vow_v p._n 155._o obedience_n to_o the_o word_n require_v 247_o b._n it_o agree_v to_o our_o profession_n p._n 148._o obedience_n to_o god_n p._n 254_o a._n objection_n against_o lay_v